It`s Been a Great Game
Transcription
It`s Been a Great Game
It’s Been a Great Game Sixty Years in Scouting Graham Farley’s Scout Story A BIOGRAPHICAL NOTE Graham Farley was born on 14th June, 1933 in England. He came to Australia in 1937, the family settling down in Glen Iris. He attended Malvern Grammar School, now affiliated with Caulfield Grammar School. Following a trip to the UK in 1951, he was enticed to become an “assistant scoutmaster” with his old school group. About the same time he opted for a career as a teacher, commencing a commerce university course with the Education Department of Victoria. As Graham changed schools, which was the pattern for promotion in those days, he kept up his Scouting interest, as well as his membership of the Citizen Military Force, often in partnership! He retired in the rank of colonel. Having been principal of Birchip High School, he accepted the foundation headmastership of Braemar College at Woodend, from which he retired 21 years later in 1996. Graham married Shirley in 1971, and their son, Roger, was born in 1973. Shirley and Graham live in Macedon on five acres – a piece of turf that keeps them busy, when they are not involved with their Church and other “good turns.” Having held many warrants (certificates of leadership) in Scouting, he is currently an Honorary Commissioner and still on the training team. It’s Been a Great Game Sixty Years in Scouting Graham Farley’s Scout Story Graham joined the Boy Scouts Association in 1952 as an Assistant Scoutmaster. He attended his first troop meeting on 16 February that year. Sixty years later, he is still relatively active in Scouting at the age of 78 years as an Honorary Commissioner and has maintained his interest in Leader Training. Graham has kept a fairly detailed diary since he was 16. A short synopsis of his private and Scouting life is given at the end of his story. As many may know, the first thirty chapters were published in Australian Scout from 2005 to 2009, with a view to those and the rest of the story being available in this CD format. © 1 The author on the occasion of the Scout gathering on the steps of Parliament House, 2007 Graham Farley, OAM, RFD, ED, BCom, BEd (Melb.), MEdAdmin (UNE), ThL (ACT), FACE Scout Leader Trainer 2 Foreword by John Ravenhall AM former Chief Commissioner of Scouts Australia and National Commissioner for Leader Training This is a personal account of a life led in reverence of, and belief in the values and practical application of the educational opportunities provided by the program, involved adults and youth leadership in the Scout Movement. It also provides us with a valued insight into the history of Scouting in Victoria over the period particularly from 1952 into the 1980s and pertinent insights into later developments. The commitment of Graham J. Farley OAM to spiritual, moral, educational, family and Scouting ideals forms the basis of activities that have inspired youth and adults to encourage the physical, intellectual, emotional, social and spiritual development of young people so that they take a constructive place in society as responsible citizens...the very aim of Scouts Australia. It has indeed been a Great Game – “Get out and Get in” – the Gang Show connection epitomises the team work of which the author has been so much a part. The planning, scripts, preparation, coordination of various teams – scenery, lighting, make-up, musical scores, selections and inductions, casting, acting, singing, production, direction, publications, rehearsing and presentation in which all elements come together to give pleasure to others and significant development of every involved individual while working in a team! In the stories we see this taking place, to a greater or lesser extent in all the stages of the experience and development of the author and his “charges.” Scouting is also strong on leadership development taking initiative, taking risks responsibly and nurturing. The early effect of these features clearly influenced the author from age 18 as his account of first camping and leadership experiences show. Together with his academic training Scout’s values most probably led him into his nurturing and educational career as a teacher and school principal. The booklet illustrates the range of opportunities available to people through Scouting and some of the thinking involved in charges made to programs, dress and how Scout training strived to provide the best needs-based preparation for adults and you and leading the way in standards and effectiveness compared to all other voluntary associations or organisations. 3 Chapter Year* Chapter title Page 1 1952 Hip holes and striped paint 2 1953 The “Explan” and a green shoulder knot 14 3 1955 Flags, badges and paper drives 20 4 1956 A city boy goes country 27 5 1957 Mirboo North revisited! 32 6 1958 The Golden Age of Scouting 36 7 1959 Rovering to Success with 6th St. Kilda 41 8 1960 Rovering to Senior Scouts 46 9a 1961 Gang Show – an experience of a lifetime 51 9b 1961 “Jamboreeing” with “Seniors” 51 10 1962 A year of diversity 57 11 1962 The Campfire Club – camaraderie and support 61 12 1963 Will you be our Senior Scout leader? 66 13 1963 The Monte Carlo Hoadley Hide 70 14 1963 Relationships and expeditions 74 15 1963 An element of danger! 77 16 1964 The next crop – “The Lower Eight” 81 17 1964 Senior Scouts reach new heights at 1964 Jamboree 86 18 1964 A magnificent experience – the 1964 Jamboree 91 19 1965 “Unlocking the land” – Hoadley Hide, 1965 95 20 1965 B-P Revue – “Gangster” inspired 9 100 *The chapter describes events commencing with this year 21 1965 A most rewarding time ends 4 106 22 1966 Hiking in England -- a culture shock! 111 23 1966 Upholding Aussie traditions in the UK 116 24 1966 An expedition to the Black Forest 121 25 1966 Fourteen unforgettable days at Gilwell, UK 126 26 1966 Farewell to Old England 132 27 1967 Back in the land of Oz and back into the training scene 136 28 1967 A full Scouting life 140 29 1967 Venturing into a new Area 145 30 1967 Jindalee Jamboree Queensland with its theme of Pirates 152 31* 1968 Multiple warrants and the Axedale Hoadley Hide 157 32 1968 Canoeing expedition to Gippsland Lakes 164 33 1969 A year of this and that – Section, Area and Branch 169 34 1969 The UK Advance Party Report and “Change” in Scouting 174 35 1969 Second Australian Senior Scout Venture, Nunawading 178 36 1970 The River Glenelg expedition 183 37 1970 38 1970 A very active troop, and reconnaissance for the River Goulburn 188 The River Goulburn expedition 193 39 1971 The Design for Tomorrow Report 199 40 1971 Another full year of Scouting activity 203 41 1971 Now for the Upper Murray and its head waters 206 42 1972 43 1973 Back to the Gippsland Lakes for the next canoeing expedition 212 From Barwon to the Kara Kara District to the UK again 218 * This and subsequent chapters were not published in Australian Scout 44 1974 The January continuous woodbadge courses 224 45 1976 A significant career change in my life 229 46 1978 A quiet period and the All Sections Advanced Course 237 5 47 1980 Still involved in leader training – just! 242 48 1982 The Third ASAC course 247 49 1983 Overseas trip and five Scouting landmarks 250 50 1984 Still training 253 51 1986 Just doing enough training to stay on the books! 258 52 1987 World Jamboree and Conference 261 53 1990 Not too old to help on a Hoadley Hide 264 54 1992 268 273 55 1996 More leader training opportunities and the history of training Another career change coming up – retirement! 56 1999 A Silver Koala, a Hoadley Hide and helping at BHQ 278 57 2000 Gilwell visits and the Leaders’ Manual 283 58 2000 The Melbourne Gang Show’s fifty year story 286 59 2002 60 2004 An “elder statesman” and “Fifty years of training in 45-minutes”! 292 Gilwell Reunion, Lodge night, and Ken Brewster’s memorial service 294 61 2005 I write for the Australian Scout 296 62 2007 The Elmore Jamboree and the anniversary city parade 298 63 2010 The Committee for the Far Future 302 64 2010 My Scout membership in review: 1952 to 2010 303 65 2010 A biographical note 306 66 2010 Warrants/Certificates held in Scouting and Postscript 307 Index 308 6 Author’s notes about illustrations I believe I have elsewhere mentioned that in 1952 I had a “Box Brownie” camera that had a fixed lens that took eight pictures on a roll of film. The user manually wound on the film until the next number appeared in a window on the camera. Otherwise, you could expose the same piece of film more than once. In 1964 my parents presented me with a Voigtlander 35-mm camera that could take either 24 or 36 exposures. Colour film had also been introduced and the cost of both this and black and white was greatly reduced, thereby encouraging the photographer to take many photographs, particularly closeups. Digital mobile phones have increased the number exponentially. I not only took prints but also transparencies but these do not lend themselves to good reproduction. I trust that the reader can appreciate my improved ability to take photographs, but again I had to limit myself to the number that is reproduced. Then there came a year when I was not directly involved with youth Scouting and it was not normal to over-photograph on adult training courses. In the final chapters, I have been obliged to descend to including pictures of Gilwell both from my own sources and official books. For those members of the movement who might “read” this CD and know that they were photographed all those years ago and that those images have not been included, I plead the need to cull the many photographs that could have been included. I started writing up a diary of key dates and events when I was 16 and have maintained the habit to the extent that I have a large steel cupboard full of them. As I recorded more detail I was also too busy to write it up immediately. Consequently there was sometimes a six-month delay in typing it up to date. But I had my day-to-day diary as a check. I always knew that dates, places and names must be recorded. Hence the detail that I now can offer in the following “pages.” 7 Scout Hymn1 Now, as I start, upon my chosen way In all I do, my thought, my work, my play, Grant as I promise, courage new for me To be the best, the best that I can be. Help me to keep my honour shining bright, May I be loyal in the hardest fight, Let me be able for my task, and then, To earn a place among my fellow men. Open mine eyes to see things as I should, That I may do my daily turn of good, Let me be ready, waiting for each need, To keep me clean, in thought and word and deed. So, as I journey, on my chosen way, In all I do, my thoughts, my work, my play, Grant as I promise, courage new for me To be the best, the best that I can be. Ralph Reader Source: Australian Scout Song Book 1 Approximately every twenty-five pages I have inserted a song, most of which came from either the London or Melbourne Gang Shows. These songs have been the ones that I have hummed and sung as a shower baritone. They have become part of my Scouting Story. There are many others that I could add, but these are a few of them 8 Chapter 12 had spent 12 years as a student. The Group Scout Master (as a Group Leader was called then) had, for several years, subtly invited me to the annual break up camp fire and there is no feeling like being wanted. Hip holes and striped paint Why get involved at all? I had no valid reason to become a Scout leader in 1952. For instance I did not have a son whom I wanted to get into Cubs! But I had been pursued by the leaders of 15th Malvern, Malvern Grammar School’s sponsored group, and I also wanted to keep in touch with the school where I But when lent a copy of Lord Baden-Powell’s Scouting for Boys, I was sold right there on the spot. Can you imagine an eighteen year-old learning about knots and trying out lashings with bits of string and kitchen brooms! The Scout Promise and Laws seemed to be very much in line with the values I had been taught at school and church. Scouting was about to fill more than just a niche in my life. I admit that I was about to dream about it. University lectures, however boring, could be enlivened with thoughts of planning the next meeting’s program! The author on the eve of the Sydney jamboree, 1952 I was on the edge of starting a commerce degree at the then only university, The University of Melbourne, with a view to becoming a secondary teacher. A few years later I was drafted to do army national service training. Church, Scouting, teaching and military service were to intertwine in my life for many years to come. 2 Published in Australian Scout, April 2005 9 Les Picken, the Scoutmaster, put me through my Tenderfoot badge.3 and I put together a uniform. Foolishly I did not buy a proper Scout shirt but cut off a collar of a khaki one that I already had. These were the days of cotton shirts and shorts, scarf and the traditional “lemon squeezer” felt hat. Uniform was bought from the one Scout Shop4, which was on the ground floor of the then state headquarters at 516 Collins Street. (That was prior to moves to 384 Elizabeth Street, 8 Queen Road, 50 Barry Street, and now Mount Waverley.) that one had to cut down a tree! Nowadays the good Scout plants them. In 1952 I believed that Scouts did good turns, hike, camp and wore badges. 15th Malvern, the sponsored school group, did not have the traditional ten-day annual camp in January but put more emphasis on the Easter camp at Gilwell Park, with supporting weekend and term holiday ones at the Malvern District site at Officer, the G. W. S. Anderson Park. Graham Farley “on parade” before a church service at St. John’s Anglican Church on a Sunday afternoon in Finch Street, Malvern. It was never easy to get a good turn up of Scouts either on a Sunday or for church but the Cubs came in force! Sheath Knives The Scout belt not only kept one’s pants up, but carried the leather pouch for one’s “bowie” knife5. The sheath knife, which every Scout worth his salt wanted to carry, was a must. It was just the thing for cutting rope (and carving one’s initials into the bark of a tree). Fifty years later, such weapons would have to be registered if not outlawed. Readers may recall the Crocodile Dundee film when the hero produces his knife in New York with the words, Now this is a knife. First camp If sheath knives were not enough, all good patrols had an axe in their patrol box. That a saw was much more efficient with which to cut wood was beside the point. How many near misses there were with toes in those days I do not know, but then thongs were not really in. Part of the Scout test system in those days was I recall making my first cup of billy tea. That the fire was not hot enough for it and I had tealeaves floating on the top of the gluey mess did not devalue this great camping experience. Those to whom I offered a mug from it did not flinch but were charitable in the extreme. I had got used to toilets without doors in Air Training Corps camps, but this business of squatting in the bush over an open hole was yet another challenge. The “Scoutmaster,” as the Scout leader was known in those days, arranged for a weekend camp prior to Easter to clean up the campsite. I went along. I was lent a ground sheet and a sleeping bag. The latter was just about warm enough for a summer’s night. I was shown how to dig a “hip hole,” and I did survive the night, fighting off mosquitoes and ignoring the other sounds of the nightlife. 3 No apparent equivalent, but the Link and Scoutcraft Badge have elements of this prerequisite (Promise and Law, basic knotting, make-up of the flag &c) 4 Mr. Harold Williams was quartermaster for the Association 5 The buckle also opened bottles! 10 efficiency of the water proofing of a wellpitched tent fly and tent or the alternative. “Snoopers” Fine weather camping is one thing. Having to make forays into the drizzle for nearly every bodily need is another. As the water continued to drip down, so did the temperature fall. But camps have to eventually come to an end and the Scouts, who had had enough of the wet muddy conditions, dragged their sodden tents to the flag circle area from which they were loaded into the furniture van for the homeward trip. The “Straddy” (as the Stradbroke Cup was known) meant that Easter was a “competition” camp with troops vying for an “A” Grade pennant. Camping standards were the criteria for success. To sort out the winners, teams of experienced Scout leaders, generally commissioners (so they could not be accused of favouritism), would move or snoop about the camp sites. Hence their unofficial title. Campfires and parades Norman Johnson’s Camping for Scouts and Others was probably the authority on camping, but each “snooper” had his individual quirks. One snooper would say that paths should be swept – another that they should remain in their natural state, leaf and twig strewn. The “hollow” at Gilwell was the site for the campfires, the Scouts Own and other paradetype gatherings. The campfires were held on both the Saturday and the Sunday nights. Later on I was to become a leader in such events, but in 1953 they were great spectacles. Even by then, Scouts did not always know the words of their songs to any great extent. The large number of Scouts also presented a great challenge to the campfire leaders. Leaders resorted to very simple songs and they needed all the personality that they could muster for their rôle. Levi Molineux was famous and very competent in this respect. If one fluked an “A,” then one was triumphant. One could cope with being awarded a “B.” But any other grading would lead to comments such as, “Well, we took part,” or “Without the pressure of the standards, the Scouts enjoyed themselves this camp,” &c. One can always justify failure! As it was in the ‘70s. Now the Norm Johnson campfire circle. It was even more primitive in 1952 but “very authentic”! I only attended the last day or two of the Easter camp. That evening, it started to rain. It continued all the next day – the penultimate one in camp. One quickly learnt about the Scout troops traditionally had bugles in their equipment stores but few could tunefully blow any calls on them. Rather, it was the one note 11 blast.6 The assessors would roam around the banks of the hollow endeavouring to silence these amateur buglers, but with about the same success as stopping a Mexican wave at one-day cricket matches. 15th Malvern met on Friday nights in what had been a kitchen in the “servants’ wing” of the Italianate building that the school occupied8. Furniture vans Furniture vans were the principal means by which members of the Scout Movement moved to camp or for hikes.7 Not every one owned a car and there was far less “parent transport” in those days. Not every one owned a car! Furniture removalists would fit out their vans with side windows and provide bench seating. The more utilitarian vans had neither. Readers, who have not experienced such a mode of transport, must visualise the camping equipment (patrol boxes, table-tops, packs of tents and the personal packs,) neatly placed down the centre of the cabin. Well that was the way they went to camp. One of a series of books written by John Thurman, the then director of training or “Camp Chief” at the UK Gilwell Park training centre. They were my “bread and butter” in my early Scouting days. Should I have been an engineer instead of a teacher? The home journey had additional items in the form of wet tentage, dirty tea towels, unconsumed food and grubby Scouts. But the campfire song-books came out again and sometimes these trips were the most memorable part of the camp. How tame it must be nowadays to travel in a plush coach with individual TV sets in the back of the seats in front. Can they still sing? Following flag-break and prayer, there would be inspection, collection of subs and notices. The evening’s program would be split up between games on the parquet floor of the school’s assembly hall, formerly the ballroom of Valentines mansion, badge testing, patrol corners and instruction. Sometimes “wide games” would be organised on the playing field or in the streets of Malvern. Do they have these games now? Or are safety concerns paramount? Leaders just had to have faith in those days that Scouts did not come to grief, not that there was much car traffic then, or many undesirable characters at large. Troop meetings Scouts once met in daylight hours. By 1952, the night meetings were the vogue. That the uniform, designed for active daytime wear, was not varied accordingly was not a matter of concern. One just froze, particularly with “jumpers off” for flag-break. 6 As at one-day cricket matches Or for that matters for church and other picnics. Nowadays it has to be by bus or car 7 8 Now Malvern Campus of Caulfield Grammar School, in Willoby Avenue, Glen Iris 12 Pioneering on the lawn in front of the Malvern Grammar School building on a Saturday afternoon – quite a change from Friday night Scouting! 13 Chapter 29 the accuracy of all railway station clocks in Victoria. Later he was able to arrange for the Association to have a gold pass to assist country leaders to attend training courses. The “Explan” and A Green Shoulder Knot The Explanatory Course But my diary says that in the Scout hall it was cold and the fire was miserable. In one of the breaks between sessions, we reversed the seating putting what there was of a fire behind us and the chap giving the yarn in the colder centre of the hall! In order to hold any warrant in the Boy Scout Association in 1952, the leader had to undertake an Explanatory Course. Why this strange title? B-P introduced the woodbadge as the key training course for Scout leaders. After one or two of these it was found that too many leaders came to it inexperienced in basic Scouting skills. Hence the “Preliminary” course was introduced. But I had attended the course and the GSM could now apply for me to receive a warrant as an ASM (Assistant Scout Master). This came through in September, 1952. But the same feature was observed on these courses, so the “Explanatory” was then brought in. Later training schemes would modernise the title to Stage One. In 1952 country leaders could do a “Mail Bag” course as an alternative if they could not get to one of the listed Explanatory courses. Today’s equivalent of that afternoon and evening course is the “Introduction to Scouting Seminar.” 15th Malvern Scouters: Gerald McNamara, ?, Bob Barrow, ?, Gerald McNamara GSM, the author, Mrs. McNamara and John Cudmore On Saturday, 24th May, 1952, I went with many others, including a 15th Malvern lady cub master, Yvonne Marple, to the 5th Caulfield Scout hall, where some very experienced Scout leaders yarned to us. That bottle drive! If I have one horror memory of 1952 it was the bottle drive10 that I foolishly organised towards the end of the year. Such drives could be efficiently arranged and were quite beneficial in terms of funds, as the bottle merchants, “Bottleohs” as they were known, were very happy to purchase used beer bottles for refilling, at something like a shilling a dozen. I only remember one or two of them. One was “Narse” Lesser (Wesley College), who introduced us to his Scout library. This stimulated me to collect my own Scout library over the years and to make sure that I had read them all. Levi Molineux, Assistant County Commissioner for Training (ACC), arrived with a handful of late applications. Has anything changed? Our drive that Saturday afternoon went well. My Scouts were surprised to see the piles of bottles that some “tea total” families had Ian Hodges was also one of the team. A senior management employee of the Victorian Railways, at one stage he was responsible for 9 10 It is difficult to put a value on them in 2005 terms. In 1952, they were worth ten pence a dozen, which would be far more than a dollar, given that newspapers, now over a dollar, cost less than threepence in those days. Published Ibid, July 2005 14 collected in their sheds or at the back of their gardens. expected to be able to say, “Come here, and he cometh”! Several parents drove their cars so that the Scouts could collect these bottles and bring them back to the school for stacking, preparatory to their being collected, presumably on the following Monday. But our collection had coincided with a strike by the bottle merchants! I soon learnt that it was not like that at all. There was always the spectre of the Group Scoutmaster The strike dragged on and on. The bottles remained stacked behind the cricket nets. No matter how cooperative the headmaster and staff were to us Scouts, there was a limit to how long these bottles could remain uncollected. For they were too tempting to healthy school boys to leave undisturbed! Eventually the strike concluded and the bottles went, but that was the last bottle drive that I would ever conduct. Collecting used newspaper would prove to be a far easier deal. (and all those commissioners stacked above him) giving directions as to this and that. I am a Scoutmaster! “Below” me were the Scouts, who, if they did not like the program offered, they just did not turn up to the meetings! At the end of 1952, the SM, Les Picken, advised that he would be going to Adelaide. There I was, waiting in the wings, for this big moment. At the time I think I was rather taken aback by his decision and its consequences, but then I was a “trained” leader, I had read many of the Scout books that “Narse” had recommended. Additionally being a university student and training to be a teacher, surely being in charge would not be all that bad. Leadership was required. I was no longer school captain or a flight sergeant in the Air Training Corps. It meant a complete reappreciation of the situation. On the other hand there was always that give and take – the Scouts, if they were to have Scouting, needed a leader. There would be compromise. Rather, one found oneself very ‘naked’ and alone with the expectant faces of the troop gathered around me in a horseshoe. So, from the start of 1953 I changed over the red shoulder knot on my left shoulder for a green one. I was now the Scoutmaster of 15th Malvern. Gilbert and Sullivan’s Iolanthe has those classic lines when the members of the House of Lords enter and sing, Bow, bow, ye lower middle classes! Bow, bow, ye tradesmen, bow, ye masses! &c. Assistance I had very little assistance. The GSM was present at most meetings. This had its good and its bad points. It was good to have “back up,” but one did not feel fully trusted and someone was always looking over one’s shoulder, perhaps even critically. In this “rank,” I had falsely presumed that all power flowed to me and from me. I was in charge! As in the Bible story of the centurion, I 15 I felt that I could handle the troop with good planning of programs. I was to have my first challenge on a hike to the Blackburn Lake, when one PL went swimming against my wishes. However, to go swimming in a fresh water lake without support was rather foolish of the boy. But he did not drown. He was a good swimmer. Eventually we understood each other’s responsibilities. set of ideas for programs, unlike the excellent set available today. The Gilcraft Series The Scout Shop carried these books on its shelves for sale at a reasonable cost. The writers were experienced but they were dealing with British boys in the British milieu. While Australia was still very predominantly “British” in 1953, there were some very basic differences in how the Australian boy responded to leadership, authority and programs. But of course, the Gilcraft books were English sourced. The John Thurman series of books on pioneering (knots, lashings and spars) were international in application, except that the Australian bush was a more rugged venue than cultured English lawns and streams. I have already referred to the existence of Scouting libraries. With the exception of a few books, such as Leon Costermans, Trees of Victoria, and Johnson’s Camping for Scouts and Others, nearly all Scout literature originated in Britain. Leon Costerman’s book, Trees of Victoria Apart from the different seasons, trees and birdlife, the material in these books could be applied in the Australian situation without too much need for interpretation. Many of these books were in the Gilcraft series. Baden-Powell Society When I returned at the start of 1953 to the university for my second year I spotted in “Farrago” a meeting called by a Graham Maclaren of those interested in Scouting and Guiding. I should imagine these Scouting books may still be found on bookshelves of retired leaders, but they were a principal source for programs and ideas in 1953. Gilcraft’s How To Run a Troop provided some forty-five troop night programs, one for every night of the year, excluding vacations. The Victorian Scout, as Australian Scout was then called, published a very limited We first met in Graham’s rooms in Ormond College. Quite a dedicated group began to meet fairly regularly with frequent outings. One of these was to Gilwell Park. Another was to the Organ Pipes National Park and Jackson’s Creek. 16 I was never involved in the headquarters recommended method of obtaining leaders. I seemed to find them by chance. But a successful troop or unit attracts its own leaders, as I was to find out. It was through this society that I met Beverley Graham, a Guider, who later married the Reverend Alex Stone and was to teach French for a year at Braemar College. I also met Alan Bucher by the same means. The society lasted while we were at “the shop” at least into 1955. 1953 passed with the customary troop meetings and special events, such as working bee weekends at Officer, scoutcraft competitions and the reception of cubs coming up from the pack. Imperial Headquarters This leads me on to recall that in those days, the “Victorian” branch reported directly to Imperial Headquarters in Buckingham Palace Road, London. Staves I did introduce “staves” to the troop. All the literature and drawings by our founder had Scouts equipped with these six-foot long poles, marked off in feet for estimation and minor pioneering. There must have been some local national liaison to arrange for jamborees and the like. It would be some years before the Australian Boy Scout Association was formed and the nation accepted autonomy for its Scouting. There were racks for the staves in the troop room. If it worked in the UK, I was certain that it would work in Australia! And providing that my Scouts did not have their staves when other Scouts were about to jeer at them, they were quite proud of them. Patrol camping Getting back to the task of running the troop, my Scout books told me that patrol camps were the recommended way to develop camping standards and most of the patrols had camps at Officer prior to Easter camp at Gilwell. Greystanes Jamboree This was held in Sydney at the end of 1952. I attended as an ASM and was made the joint QM. In later articles I would like to make observations on these “mass” gatherings of Scouts and both their advantages and disadvantages. Unlike today, with assessable sites right across the state, the Stradbroke Cup was only held at Gilwell. Run in parallel was the Cohen Shield, which provided opportunities for Scouts to demonstrate their Scouting skills, such as cooking. Leader assistance A parent, Donald Northway, offered to assist me. I was then quite miffed when district “kidnapped” him and made him the DC! In later years when leading training courses, I would recommend that at least four leaders were available for each section. Sections need sufficient leaders to allow for absences, illness and for periods of leave. But for those first few years, I had irregular adult support. An aerial view, presumably taken from a flag tower at the Greystanes Jamboree in Sydney at the end of 1952, 17 showing the lay out of a troop site for fifty Scouts and their leaders in the Scouting mode of flag break, patrol sites and traditional activities, such as pioneering. When Scouts come together in such numbers a great atmosphere develops and the memories that will last one’s lifetime. The Greystanes gathering was an eye-opener to me. I had to organize the duty patrol to collect the rations for each meal and then store them hygienically. I think I did reasonably well, but it was just as well that the SM of the troop realized that the joints of meat had exceeded their “shelf life” (for we had no refrigeration in those days) and condemned them. It was another lesson that I would not forget! Alan and I tackled the matter of patrol cooking first but with the SM’s full assent. Alan and I divided up the available kitchen gear and encouraged the patrols to do their own cooking. While this required some energy to see things through and accept some “culinary disasters,” it was a much more positive Scouting approach and the lads appreciated it. 4th Caulfield I got to know Alan Ponsford while at the university. Alan’s father was GSM of 4th Caulfield and Alan was both a Rover and an ASM. On the eve of entering Puckapunyal army camp in January, 1954 for three months military service11, Alan invited me to be a Scouter at 4th Caulfield’s troop January camp at Eumeralla Anglesea. Fourth Caulfield Scouts constructing camp gadgets at their ten-day summer camp at Eumeralla, Anglesea, 1954 Flags flew proudly from the flag staff and the patrols lined up for patrol inspections. Mapping was on the program. Even a flying fox was rigged up but it was neither steep nor dangerous. Rover Alan Ponsford at the 4th Caulfield camp The troop entered camp just after Christmas. Eumeralla was new to me with its views out over the Southern Ocean and its cliff face walk down to the beach. Having read all the books advocating patrol cooking I was surprised on entering this camp to find that the SM was comfortable with central cooking. There was even an element of “holiday camp,” with the SM preparing the meals and the lads not directly Fourth Caulfield’s Scout Master inspecting a patrol. Note the introduction of staves which is referred to in the text. I see from the photograph that I encouraged the 4th’s lads to make and carry staves. The other innovation was to have a “rest hour” or period after lunch, the value of which I soon appreciated. 11 This was the first National Service scheme and was introduced in 1951 for all 18-year olds 18 From a selfish point of view the camp got me fit for the forthcoming military experience. I entered the army camp, but within a fortnight of long hours, hard work and plenty of fresh air, the army had trimmed me down by several inches around the waist. I was soon down to twelve stone or about seventy-six kilograms! A 15th Malvern patrol at the 1954 Gilwell Easter camp Author’s note I have tried to retain as much as possible the content of the articles as they appeared in Australian Scout. But I have noticed that although “striped paint” appeared in the title of the first article, there was no further comment. This of course referred to the senseless and cruel teasing of new (tenderfoot) Scouts at their first camp. Studying the map prior to setting out on a hike at the 4 Caulfield January camp at Eumeralla, Anglesea, 1954 Quite unnecessarily, elder boys (and were leaders all that innocent?) would send them on fruitless tips to the QM tent to ask for impossible items, such as a rubber hammer, sky hooks, a yard of milk or striped paint. Here the game would be furthered with the hapless individual sent back to his patrol site with some foolish and incorrect item, for the sequence to be repeated. And we talk about our success in retaining Scouts! th 19 Chapter 312 The “CEBS,” as it was generally known, was and is a very worthwhile organisation with a broad program, but perhaps a bias more towards indoor games such as basket ball. Some years earlier I had been a member of the “CEBS” at St. Bede’s, which had buoyant numbers and a very active program in several age sections. Flags, badges and paper drives for a new Troop A leader is wanted In 1954, I was both in my third year in the Scout movement and a Commerce degree at The University of Melbourne. I thought I was starting to get the hang of what a good Scout troop was meant to be. I was well into my Woodbadge Part 1 and would apply for the Part 2 (continuous) course in January.13 These were the days when involvement in church and its activities was quite “cool” for many young people. But the pressing need in 1954 was for leaders to look after these “CEBS,” who would also have been regular in attendance at Sunday School. The church was their main social activity outside of school. I continued to be SM of 15th Malvern encouraging both patrol and troop camping. The troop again camped at Gilwell at Easter, but we did not win a high grade pennant. The G.W.S. Anderson Park at Officer was the other favourite site for camps. Convinced by now of the value of Scouting, I offered my services, but as a Scoutmaster. This would mean that the boys in question would have to be attracted to an “alien” activity with all that such a change would mean. Further, the church’s vestry and congregation would also have to give their blessing. Sponsored groups Sponsored church groups were not new, but they were not all that common in Australia. But it was fortuitous that at the 1954 church Synod, the Rev’d W. Lloyd had successfully moved a motion recommending the setting up of Scout and Guide groups in Anglican churches15. So, the vicar and vestry accepted my offer, but I think with some understandable reluctance. Flag break at the 15th Malvern September camp, 1954, at the G. W. S. Anderson Scout Camp, Officer But then 15th Malvern had been a “sponsored” group. As against the more numerous “open” groups, a sponsored group had to accept a degree of supervision and direction from its sponsoring authority. In the case of a church group, one could anticipate some guidance on spiritual matters, particularly from the vicar, and what activities could be held on a Sunday. Sometime towards the end of 1954, I was approached by my vicar, the Rev’d Reg Roddick of St. Bede’s Church, Elwood14, as to whether I would like to lead the Church of England Boys Society group at his church. I was a regular member of the congregation. 12 Published Ibid, September, 2005 I described these courses in my article, Being Trained in the ‘Fifties, in Australian Scout, April 2004, page 32 14 St. Bede’s church has recently been sold due to demographic changes and community church attendance patterns and has been converted to apartments. 13 15 While the Anglican Church was then still officially the “Church of England,” I have used the modern term for ease of understanding. 20 In 1954, the St. Kilda Scout district had two sponsored groups, namely 3rd (Jewish) and 7th (Roman Catholic). 9th St. Kilda, although “open,” was a Sea Scout group with a waterbased program and a sea-going uniform. The DC was Claude Breydon, who was a great supporter of the Rover section I had become accustomed in the atmosphere of the private school for the parent to say whether or not their son would join Scouts. I now came up against perhaps the healthier alternative of, “I am very happy about it, but my son will decide whether he wants to become a Scout.” That meant we had to more “wooing”! First steps The second last week of November in 1954 was a very active one for Tony and me as we spoke with parents and their sons. While there would be plenty who would enjoy “the game of Scouting,” we needed to seek out the boy leaders who would become the PLs. Memory cannot help me recall how a Mr.Tony Blunn came forward to assist me in this project. Tony was a member of 8th St. Kilda, a nearby “open” group. He was very enthusiastic about the new project and had the ability to relate to youth. This complimented my role as the administrator and organiser. Perhaps we had gone into an area where “angels feared to tread,” and in our enthusiasm and confidence we ignored many difficulties as though they did not exist. Even then, there were many bureaucratic steps to be taken to set up a new troop, but the December Parish News announced that the “vestry has authorised the establishment of a Scout Troop to replace the Senior Section of the CEBS. …” So from the start of 1955 there must have been meetings of the “target” boys at which Tony and I would have described and demonstrated the aims and program of the Scout movement. But I am sure that it was Tony to whom the lads turned to be convinced as the joys of Scouting. At 15th Malvern I had learned the importance of visiting the homes of potential Scouts, particularly while they were still in the Cub section. Barriers soon broke down. Adults got to know each other. One became acquainted with the atmosphere of the “home.” Tenderfoot training In those days, a Scout, prior to investiture, had to pass what was known as the “Tenderfoot Badge.” So, during January, Tony and I were hard at work meeting with groups of boys and encouraging them to know the make-up of the Australian Flag and how to fly it, the basic knots, and the ten Scout Laws amidst other aspects of Scouting. By now I had given “notice” to 15th Malvern, but had offered to stay with that group until at least Easter and in the meantime supervise any patrol camps as the Scouts prepared for the Stradbroke Cup at Gilwell Park. Rover Alan Bucher, 1st Footscray, and 6th St. Kilda’s GSM Bert Leckie, check Graham Farley’s patrol points score, while Robert Hance and Bill Wright look on with a view to making sure that justice is both seen to be done and is done! Photo: Bob Barrow This meant that I attended both meetings on the same night, leaving 15th Malvern’s about halfway through in the safe hands of Michael 21 present and took a rôle in the ceremony. The atmosphere must have had a very emotional effect on those invested. Chalcraft and driving back to Elwood before the end of the new troop’s meeting. First investitures Scarves and hats th On the 7 February, Tony Blunn had about a dozen boys at a meeting. A week later I invested the first two patrol leaders, Ron Moore and Bill Wright. Tony and I wee greatly helped when Mr. Bert Leckie came forward and offered his services as GSM. Bert would liaise with the vestry and establish the group committee, leaving us to get on with the basic youth training program. The Venerable Bede of the medieval church had given his name to our church. Hence it was logical that the badge would have as its key symbol a book of parchment together with a feather pen. The colours for the scarf were blue with red binding. The Scout hat was quite novel to our invested Scouts. School caps were still in vogue and most male adults wore hats. The Scout hat could lend itself to being a “Frisbee” and I recall a lot of energy was needed to convince our lads that the hat must be respected. Besides they were relatively expensive. A fortnight later, I invested John Vaughan, Graeme Thomson, Donald Anderson and Barry Wilson. By 1swt March, these six were in uniform. By the middle of March, I completed the investiture of the troop members, that now numbered 18, namely: Geoff McMaster, Philip Johnston, John and Robert Hance, Graeme McGuinness, Robert Barnfield, Ron Preston, Howard Quirk, Robert Palmer, Geoff Hughes, John Butcher and Ian Taylor. Once the numbers of invested members began to grow, the new Scouts wore their uniforms with pride and in public without embarrassment. While CEBS had a uniform, it was not universally worn by its members. The investitures took place in the sanctuary of the church with the only light coming from the candles on the altar. The vicar was generally 22 In April, the full troop with flags supported the St. George’s Day service in St. Paul’s Cathedral. A week later a number marched in Melbourne for the Empire Youth Day celebrations. Church parades would be held monthly at St. Bede’s church. First camp Sleeping under canvas must surely still hold its anticipation and wonder of survival! The 6th St. Kilda Scouts ventured to the Malvern District campsite at Officer on the weekend, 13/15 May. I borrowed tents and patrol equipment from 15th Malvern. Ron Moore’s father had a flat tray truck and he transported the gear. The boys travelled by train. The camp was apparently a great success. The Vicar of St. Bede’s Church, Elwood, the Reverend Reg Roddick, receives the dedicated flags from Paul Grenda, Michael Potter, and (cub) John Scales. The photo was taken in 1962, seven years after the troop was established. The laying of the colours on the altar was customary at the monthly church parade of the group Badge work Parallel with all of this registration and uniforming of the Scouts was the need to teach the boys in Scouting skills and then present them for the Second Class and activity badges. By mid-year, several had reached Second Class standard. Hikes Unless Tony and I remembered that Scouting was an “outdoor” movement, we would be failing the boys and might just as well have continued with the CEBS “indoor” program. Cub Pack While it had not been the intention of the vestry to sanction this section so early, the demand for it became overwhelming as the success of the lads aged “over 11,” became apparent. Two leaders came forward, Val Guthrie and Barbara Moore, and the section was active by September. The first hike was to Hurstbridge, using the train to get there. Fourteen Scouts attended on the Labour Day holiday. My diary notes tell me that we introduced them to “twists” and “damper.” Cooking on an open fire would have been quite new to them. A second hike in April was to Warrandyte along the banks of the River Yarra. Commissioning The new Scout Troop was commissioned at a special service on Sunday, 13th March before a full congregation and many representatives of the movement. The flags were dedicated and the various adult and patrol leaders authorised in their positions. It was a gala event for us all. The troop was in being. 23 Tony on the other hand was dubbed “Duffy”! I cannot recall why. It did not seem to be complimentary, but rather one of respect and acceptance. 6th St. Kilda Scouts on a hike. Graham is in the centre Paper drives Other developments I n a previous article I described the pitfalls of bottle drives. Now we had a look at the value of what we would now describe as “recycled” paper. As with bottles, the uniformed Scouts would go from house to house seeking used newspapers. The troop attended that year’s “Gang Show” at the Cathedral Hall, Brunswick. A six-day camp was held in September at Officer. I was assisted on this camp by Alan Bucher, a fellow university student, and a member of 1st Footscray. These would be stacked on the grass verges and collected by adults in cars. The paper would be brought to the church, where another group would stack and bind them in manageable bundles. Finally, Mr. Moore would be there with his truck and they would be loaded on to it. A day or two later, Mr. Moore would deliver the paper to the Australian Paper Mills and a cheque would be received. A Senior Scout patrol was formed from the older boys, giving three sections in the Group. Rovers would follow, but that is a later story. Parents’ nights demonstrated the progress in training. Mr. H. Sweeney donated a mounted hide for inter-patrol competition. The Group Committee was very active, having had its first meeting on 18th July. The troop assisted in preparations for the forthcoming jamboree, but it was considered that it was perhaps too soon for them to attend it. In light of events, that was a very wise decision. Paper drives proved to be an efficient and relatively clean way of raising funds. The whole troop was involved. There was that feeling of satisfaction of something well done at the end of the day. The group could now buy equipment and, in particular, tentage. I was then completing my Diploma of Education. Before the year was out, the Education Department announced the schools to which graduates would be allocated for 1956. I was appointed to Mirboo North High School. Fortunately a Mr. Tony Daly came forward to take over my rôle with 6th St. Kilda. But my links with 6th were by no means severed. Scouting names This was the only time in my Scouting life that I accepted a Scout name. I had been “Pharlap,” and then “Flap” at school. I guess it was inevitable that I would now be known as “Flip”! 24 In later years I averred that I learnt far more about practical Scouting from “my mates” in the patrol than I did from the formal sessions during the day. Centralised meals may be more efficient from many points of view, but this critical “networking” can often be lost as a consequence, or at least downgraded in effectiveness. Scout Wood Badge In January, 1955, I attended a Scout wood badge Part 2 course at Gilwell, having completed Part 1 the previous year. I had little difficulty answering the 15 questions of the first part, typing them for easier reading and I understood the theoretical basis of Scouting that the readers “wanted to read”! The greatest memories for me were the gatherings each night in what became the E. H. C. (Tom) Russell Scout Hall around the fire when, after a sing song, “Kenno” would yarn about his experiences, particularly his meetings with B-P. The Part 2 course was conducted by W. D. Kennedy (“Kenno”). He was assisted by several experienced commissioners on a continuous basis. One of these was Ashley Batten. A few came for particular days, such as Colonel Polglaze for pioneering. I found myself with Doug Callister leading much of the singing and this probably confirmed my confidence in this role. Having already specialised in pioneering, I found that I was the elected leader to help our patrol construct its Monkey Bridge over the Lochan. I was also selected to be the PL for our overnight journey. Nowadays this would have been cancelled for I recall we set out on what would now be a “total fire ban” day and it was probably even “Code Red”! W. D. “Kenno” Kennedy Our meals were brought out to us to avoid us having to light fires to cook. I recall hearing trees, dead from the 1939 fires, crash in the forest in the windy conditions. But we survived! In the same way that the commissioners reverted to being the SM and ASMs, we adult leaders became “Scouts” for the week and formed patrols. Part 3 was, as it is today16, the application of what one had learnt to the leadership of one’s section “back home.” Because I was now working in two districts, there was a slight demarcation muddle but in due course the beads, parchment and scarf were duly presented. There were just sufficient participants to enable the course to proceed. We were expected to do a daily sketch, a task that I did not find beyond me. The leaders stuck very closely to the UK Gilwell handbooks. We prepared, cooked and ate our meals in the patrol huts. We slept on mattresses on the floor of the second hut. The kerosene in the lamps was carefully rationed to prevent us sitting up all night! 16 It may be unwise of me to attempt to suggest equivalents in training course titles. Scouts Australia Institute of Training has varied them to some extent 25 The Maclaren tartan worn on the peak of the Gilwell Scarf. It commemorates the gift of the original Gilwell Park (England) to the Boy Scouts Association by W. de Bois Maclaren in 1919 And whether we believe that we are changed persons as a result of being awarded the badge, the wearing of the thong and beads sets much the same pattern as does a degree or diploma. 26 Chapter 417 The pack and troop met in the Anglican Church hall. On the first Tuesday night available I had noticed boys going along the main street to the Scout meeting but in disguise. They wore other clothes over their uniforms. Yet the nights were not that cold. Were they wary of being teased for their membership? I have never had such hesitation and strode along to the church hall setting an example. A City Boy Goes Country Mirboo North At the conclusion of my Diploma of Education year I was appointed to Mirboo North High School to commence in February, 1956. I was to have three very happy learning years at this proud dairy cattle and potato growing community on the Grand Ridge Road in Gippsland. At the first meetings that I attended, I found that half of the members of the troop had no uniform at all. It was a troop that was trying to live Scouting, but suffered, like most semi-isolated country units, from lack of expertise and nearby exemplars. Another high school teacher, Peter Rich, was a leader, together with a youthful farmer, Stan Bruhn. But appreciation for the contribution of these adults was not fully understood by the Scouts. This would have to change. But at the high school I should have listened to my “head” for, before the year was out, my classroom control was not good. Fortunately the principal, Rex Cording, and the senior master, Gordon Keith, assisted me in developing techniques to improve the situation, after all I had a lifetime in the classroom ahead of me. The difference of course was that the Scouts were volunteers – the school students were there at the direction of the law! A view of the main campfire arena at the Clifford Park Jamboree, 1955/56. Styled the “mudboree,” the event was noted for its daily tropical downpour and the wonderful spirit of the Scouts who attended My first contact with 1st Mirboo North Scouts was not an auspicious one. One morning while at the “mud”boree (the Clifford Park Jamboree 1955/6) I walked through the muddy slush to Sub-camp 5 and sought out the tent that was housing the Mirboo North patrol. I think they were browned off and bored in the conditions and not over impressed to hear that I would descend upon them the following year! Some weeks later, I moved to Mirboo North and took up residence with the boot maker, his wife and grandson, in the main street of the township. My “head” told me to keep well away from Scouting until my classroom discipline was under control. My “heart” directed me otherwise, unfortunately for the former. The Trease brothers from Mardan: Neil, Len, Harold, Ron (cousin), and Graham. Photograph taken by “The Age” 1st Dumbalk-Mardan On one of the first Friday nights that I was in the town, I donned my uniform and started to walk 17 Published, Ibid, October, 2005 27 along the road to Mardan, some six miles to the south. (My car must have been unavailable.) I had not got far when I was offered a lift by a chap who lived on his own and who insisted on taking me the whole way. Here I met the Trease and Campbell families, amongst others. I became very welcome in their homes. Several members of these families are still very much involved in active Scouting today. Mardan was “twinned” with the neighbouring community of Dumbalk. order in large cardboard boxes, all wrapped in brown paper and tied up with excellent quality string. All three items were recycled, to use the contemporary terminology. But the measurements were nearly always understated. A lot of the items had to go back as being too small. From then on, I measured the Scouts myself. The next problem was shortages for some parts of the uniform, particularly hats. But by Easter supplies of rabbit fur had increased and the troop started to look like one. Country boys The Australian digger of the First World War was in many cases a chap reared in the outback, generally on a farm. I was dealing with boys from the same stock. They played everything that much harder. The boys displayed great confidence. Most would have been up early each day to do the milking and have it to look forward to when they got home from school. They would have learned to shoot, and to drive tractors from an early age. Similarly, the cub section had to be outfitted. (In both cases the backlog in test passing for Tenderpad and Tenderfoot work had to be overcome.) But parents in the community still referred to the cub uniform as the cub suit! I would visit the family at home and provide the uniform to the satisfaction of the mother. I have seen tears well up in the eyes of new Cubs; such was the excitement of getting their cap and jumper. It was even likely to be worn to bed that night. So when it came to camping, these country boys needed no program devised by the Scoutmaster – they improvised their own on the spot. The leader’s rôle became one of supervision and “life preserving,” while at the same time coordinating tentage, food and transport. Interpersonal scores were often settled physically. The boys were always ready for a friendly wrestle. It was useful if the adult team included one who could “out-wrestle” any member of the troop. Physical strength was respected! An “open” group This was my first experience of an “open” group. Although the troop met in the church hall, my relationship to the rector was one of being a tenant, a parishioner, and hopefully a friend. The GSM was Alan Burdekin, the newsagent, who was also the cub leader. The DC was Bill Bland. There was a small group committee. But as with all other activity groups in the township, the Scouts had the community’s full support. This was based on the presumption that successful activities would bring great benefit to the township’s youth. There was probably an element of the “city boy” bringing his copy of Policy, Organisation and Rules and expecting everyone to conform to it. Country people do not tinker with something that works! Those first few weeks The first task was to get the Mirboo North boys into uniform. For my first few orders of uniform I would accept the boy’s idea of his clothing measurements. Back at the Scout Shop in Melbourne, Lillian Beard18, packed up the 18 In those days the Scout Shop traded from the ground floor of the 516 Collins Street headquarters. Nowadays scout supplies are distributed through the Snowgum chain. Lillian Beard was awarded the OAM in the Queen’s Birthday Honours, 2004 As I have already suggested, the country boy played it hard. I would stand agape at the 28 velocity with which medicine balls were thrown about the church hall and the near “murder” that took place with that now-outlawed game, British Bulldogs. Uniforms took a pounding, even for the “skins” side. I very soon organized a working bee to fabricate sturdy wooden shutters for the large plate glass windows of the church hall. It seemed that all one had to do was to demonstrate the need for something and it would be forthcoming. The town’s temporary “immigrants,” namely the professional classes, such as teachers, clergy and bank managers, made their contribution in the form of leadership and ideas. The farming families readily responded in kind. It was a happy and workable partnership. The Melbourne Gang Show My continuing links with 6th St. Kilda resulted in the idea that a bus load of Mirboo North cubs and Scouts would be billeted in Elwood for a weekend during the annual production of the Melbourne Gang Show. It those days, the show was staged at the Cathedral Hall, Brunswick. The London Gang Show songs were readily available through the Scout Shop. There was a two-year delay before the same songs were part of the Melbourne Gang Show’s presentation. I was able to obtain the services of a local music teacher, Mrs. Cashin, to teach the boys the Equipping the troop Perhaps paper drives were already the norm, but the Mirboo North lads and parents streamlined it further. The Australian Paper Manufacturers, whose plant was nearby at Morwell, accepted the paper in “wool bales.” A parent, Mr. Fary, was happy for the packing to take place to the rear of his house. The Bruhn family was very generous in this and other regards. They provided transport for the bales and the cheques came back steadily, generally permitting the purchase of a tent and fly on the proceeds from each paper collection day, as it had done the year before at 6th St. Kilda. Host and visiting Scouts assemble for the group photograph on the occasion of the Melbourne Gang Show weekend trip to stay with 6th and 9th St. Kilda Scouts Mr. Trembath, was one of the two bus providers in Mirboo North. He was very prepared on the completion of his Friday afternoon’s school run, to take the party of some forty of us to Melbourne staying down until the Sunday return. It was a hundred miles19 or so to Melbourne via Trafalgar (“Traf” as it was universally known), so it was going on ten o’clock before the bus drew up at the Elwood church. In no time, visiting scouts were linked The High School was still in the course of construction when I arrived. The group was able to secure a large packing, the size of a shipping container, as a result. I cannot recall the foundations, but the practical country men soon separated the sides of the case. When reassembled, this provided a lockup equipment store behind the church hall. 19 29 One hundred and sixty kilometres up with their hosts and they headed to their homes for the weekend. Flag break at the combined Mirboo North and St. Kilda September camp on the property of Mr. Trembath I have always been an inclusive person and, since Ss from other groups attended the high school, they were equally welcome to join these trips. Hence lads from 1st Mirboo East and 1st Dumbalk-Mardan were on this first gang show trip, as would others be in later years. Being dairy country, farmers milked morning and night. When it came to staff for the camp, I had plenty of offers for those times “after milking.” Hence, I accepted the responsibility for the program during the day, with Scouters from the farming families making themselves available as soon as their milking duties had been completed. In this and following years, there would be activities arranged in addition to the visit to the Cathedral Hall for the show. Sometimes we went at night to the performance and at others to the matinée. In each case, a “special” tram was booked to take the party to and fro. At the end of each show, the groups with block bookings would be acknowledged. My party always enjoyed hearing their group names read out. In 1956 there were Scoutcraft activities on the Elwood beach front near the 9th St. Kilda (Sea Scouts) hall. The camp concluded with a parents’ day, when the Elwood parents came up by bus. But the weather, which had been fine during the week, decided to catch up on rainfall. The canvas dining shelter (about the size of a small Scout hall) was most welcome, but the graded road packed up resulting in cars and buses slithering in and out of the site. September camp The invitation was then given to 6th St. Kilda to join a combined camp with Mirboo district Scouts in the September vacation. Mr. Trembath willingly lent his property. Parents enthusiastically erected a large canvas covered dining area, using tarpaulins “lent” by the Victorian Railways. This open cooperation was very rewarding, as it was clearly a way of saying “thank you” for providing Scouting for their sons. Even the shire sent in its grader to upgrade the roads into the property. St. Kilda and Mirboo North Scouts take a rest on their walk from the camp site to Mirboo North township I found that first year in Mirboo North to be a most exhilarating one. There was a degree of energy in the country troop that I had not experienced before in city troops. One was accepted for what one would offer or do. A person’s word was his bond. Locks were hardly necessary. I found life with my landlady and family to be a very warm one. Yes, the toilet was down the back path; being emptied weekly. Yes, the bath was a chip heater. Yes, on one occasion there was a beehive in the wood panelling in the room I shared with the grandson. Yes, on Thursday 30 nights I was packed off up to the high school, as the town’s football team was selected on the premises of the boot-maker. It was all very wholesome, open and honest. It’s a Wonderful Life BP Revue Out in the rain, boys, or out in the snow, Out in the sunshine, wherever you go, There’s one thing all we fellows know Gee, it’s a wonderful life As if I did not seem to have enough to do with teaching, church, studying for bachelor of education and theology, and a lieutenant in the army reserve (CMF), I decided to conduct a two-night concert based principally on Gang Show material, both sketches and songs. Mrs. Cashin offered to help with rehearsing the songs. I think the guides and brownies were also involved. The Scout items were probably pretty woolly and under-rehearsed but no one seemed to over mind. Parents seemed just as happy to see their children on the stage, no matter what their standard. A couple of parents arranged for a program to be printed in which all self-respecting town organisations advertised. Whether in highlands or down in the dale, Over the river and on to the vale, We hike along the rainbow trail, Gee, it’s a wonderful life When you’re out about in Scouting, You’re as happy as a king, If you’re tracking in the meadow or a bird upon the wing. In the autumn or the winter, Or the summer or the spring, It’s a most remarkable thing Out with the gang, boys, and journeying to Lands of adventure awaiting for you. You find your day dreams coming true, Gee, it’s a wonderful life, You bet! It’s a wonderful life Ralph Reader 31 Chapter 520 Mirboo North Revisited Orphanage camp It was always going to be a busy month. Alan Bucher, whom I knew through the BadenPowell Society at The University of Melbourne, had become associated with a Melbourne orphanage. He had offered to take a group of boys camping in January. It was not unreasonable that he recruited me. A very happy group of boys at the orphanage camp The lads took it in turns to wear Alan’s Scouter hat for a day. The boys did not own their clothing, so when there was a need for a change, a large cleaned and pressed supply of shirts and shorts would be got out and the boys outfitted themselves. I am sure every lad on that camp had his own story to tell of his being there. I made no attempt to trespass on their personal experiences but accepted them as they came. There is a temptation to criticize how orphanages operated but the alternative arrangements at the time would have been much worse. Alan Bucher (back row centre) with his group of orphanage boys at the Eumeralla camp January, 1957. Note the boys wearing Alan’s Scouter hat for the day. The equipment shed I returned to Mirboo North early in January in 1957 for two reasons. The first was to assist Mr. Bruhn and his son, Stan, in making a workable equipment shed out of a large wooden packing case. It was placed on concrete slabs behind the church hall. I am not sure from where we gathered tentage and cooking equipment, but probably from Alan’s own group, 1st Footscray. First Footscray was a very proud group, having had “Arch” Hoadley as one of its founders. Eumeralla at Anglesea was chosen for the camp site. Some eighteen boys grabbed the chance to take part. This made three patrols. January camp The second reason was to conduct the January camp. This was held at the Forestry Commission camp at Olsen’s Bridge. Two patrols attended. Once again I found that only the briefest outline of a program was necessary. The Scouts took part in a lot of swimming. I had never been able to relax on a camp before to the same extent. On what would now be termed “total fire ban” days, we cooked in the forestry camp’s kitchen with permission. Rarely have I witnessed such enthusiasm as the lads learnt to become “Scouts.” To some extent the patrol cooking was somewhat similar to that of 4th Caulfield’s, some three years earlier. The boys could not have enough of the open air and the beach at the foot of the cliffs. 20 Published, Ibid, November, 2005 32 There may have been an element of the different culture between country and town boys, but that had not been evident with our Gang Show visit to 6th St. Kilda. It was to be a year or two before the enmity of this weekend disappeared. Gilwell Reunion Having obtained my woodbadge I was keen to take the next step and attend the reunion of the 1st Gilwell Park Group over the Australia Day weekend early in 1957. On my course I had been in the pigeon patrol. Seniors and a possible campsite Peter Rich, a fellow teacher, had been a Scouter before I arrived the year before. After taking a period of respite he returned to active Scouting with a view to leading the Scouts who had turned fifteen years of age. Peter outlined plans for a campsite for the senior Scouts. The campsite and the hut that was built were opened late in 1958. Badge and points boards Scout books talked about the need for boys to readily see their progress with their tests and also how the patrol competition was going. Prior to the days of barcodes but in the days of plastic, many groceries used plastic strips to show the price of the product. I managed to obtain some supplies of this material. The Pigeon Patrol at the 1959 Gilwell Reunion. Some of those present are: Dudley Wilson (back row, 2nd from left); Ken Bayly (back row, 3rd from right); Don Lithgow (centre row, 2nd from left); Don Spring, and the author Over the May school holidays in the week that I had21, I was able to get the help of Mr. McMaster in Elwood to fabricate the boards, paint them and nail on the plastic strips. These boards were an instant success. Perhaps I was harnessing qualities in human beings that are less than savoury, but from then on I had no trouble in getting Scouts to pass their badges and achieve higher standards. The downside was that I had to provide facilities and examiners to satisfy the demand, to say nothing of writing out the order forms on the Scout Shop to obtain the necessary badges. Scouts then, and I assume today, would still have wanted to have the badge issued and sewn on as soon as possible. I soon realised that few of one’s friends from the course that one had attended were able to attend reunions, but one gained a whole new set of friends who took Scouting very seriously in one sense and with great hilarity and fun at other times. The annual meeting was held on the Sunday at which there was the traditional roll call of members. As the years were counted back, Scouters would stand up proclaiming the year that they did their course. The last person to stand would name the year and it was one well before I had been born. A combined camp Like the bottle drive in 1952 there are events that in hindsight one wished I had never conducted. It all seemed natural for my previous school troop, 15th Malvern, and 1st Mirboo North, to have a combined camp at the Malvern site at Officer. Fortunately it was only for a weekend, but it was not a happy one. 21 Up until the Eighties, there were three terms each year. In the Fifties the term holiday was only of one week’s duration. Taking into account only about five weeks in January, school holidays were only about half the length that they are today 33 was that a hut would be erected upon it. The roads into the site were hairy to say the least but could be negotiated with care. I recall painting some signs to assist people to find the site. Gang Show Once again, a bus load of Cubs and Scouts journeyed down to Melbourne to stay with families of 6th St. Kilda to attend the show in the Cathedral Hall in Brunswick. This time we attended the Saturday matinée, using a special tram to transport us there. Jubilee year of Scouting 1957 had been declared the fiftieth anniversary of Scouting. Besides the world jamboree at Sutton Coldfield in the UK, there were events throughout the world and also locally. The Mirboo North group decided to have a shop window display. I had little difficulty in finding a shop with a vacant window. The display included flags and various Scouting articles of equipment to give the public some idea of what we were about. The hut that was erected during 1958 for the use of Scouts on Forestry Commission of Victoria property at Allambee, west of Mirboo North Peter Rich, the Senior Scout Leader and also as a manual arts teacher, accepted the rôle of suggesting the size of the building and how it should be constructed. I do not recall ever seeing detailed plans. But working bees from the various groups would take place. It became an unwritten agreement that whoever did the work could make any changes that they thought fit. By now I was fairly aware of the penetration of Scouting and Guiding in the local community. I had also built up quite good links with other groups and also the guide companies. I thought that we might try to encourage members to wear uniform to school on a particular day. I received the permission of the high school principal, who had a son in the seniors, and circularized the idea. I was delighted at the response. There must have been some four or five adult leaders in uniform and well over a hundred youth members in uniform. No one dared to tease us -- we were almost in the majority. I think the weather was reasonably warm for us that day as well. I was to learn all the right names for the various parts of a building, such as stumps, bearers, studs, cladding and the like. The concrete stumps were surveyed in, but when the timber for the bearers arrived on site, and that was not always easy to achieve given the state of the roads, it was found that where they met there were no stumps beneath them to support the join! It was then a choice of either taking the bearers back and replacing them with the right lengths or putting in another four stumps. We chose the latter course of action.23 The campsite There was a Forests Commission22 office in Mirboo North. The local managers cooperated with us and made available, under an occupancy title, some land in the Allambee area. A creek ran through the area. As already stated, the idea 22 The FCV, to use its acronym, had two departments: plantations and timber harvesting. Both have now been absorbed into the Department of Sustainability and the Environment 23 I gather that this hut no longer exists but it gave great service and happiness over its life. 34 Queensland corroboree The Queensland Scout Association staged a mini-jamboree at the end of 1957. Knowing that my rural Scouts had few opportunities for travel, I called a meeting of parents and Scouts to gauge interest. It was quickly forthcoming. I found that all sorts of equipment could be made available to help our comfort in camp, even a refrigerator. These were all boxed or crated and loaded into our own freight wagon at the Mirboo North railway station with the help of the stationmaster, who had a son in the troop. Someone else would have the task of transshipping them at Albury24 and unloading them on the site. They were very heavy crates! David Hegarty pauses to think about his next sentence to his parents while at the Corroboree. Photo: Courier Mail By now the Court of Honour was operating very well and I was always impressed with the good sense and the responsibility of decisions that the PLs took. Patrol Leaders Robert Noack, Colin Christie and Lyle McKinnon handed over to Peter Jepson, Warren Guningham and Graham Fary. Daryl Jones was appointed Troop Leader for 1958, when I would still be a teacher in Mirboo North. Writing home at the Greenbank Corroboree: Colin Cashin, Graham Fary, David Hegarty, Bill Fary and John Crutchfield. Photograph: Courier Mail I protested that the party had to travel north starting on Christmas Day. The two-day journey by steam train in carriages that were not “the state of the art” was something to endure, but we got there. There were our crates and boxes on site and the rovers that had to move them reminded us constantly of their weight. Brisbane was some thirty kilometres away and we found leave restricted at first. But it is surprising how doors will open when you offer to help with the dirty jobs around the camp sites. I also took out a party on an overnight jaunt. The return journey to Victoria was a little easier for we knew what to expect. 24 There was still the break in gauge in 1957 between Victoria’s five foot three inches and the NSW standard gauge 35 Chapter 625 nearby groups, happy to cope with larger numbers if the boys got some quality Scouting. The “golden age” of Scouting Hoadley Hide In 1958 I was in my third year as the commerce teacher and in charge of sport at Mirboo North High School. As a CMF lieutenant I was parading at the Warragul training depot with an artillery battery. It was a full life. I had also put my hand up for a part in the local dramatic society’s production of The Happiest Days of your Life. Yet, still there was time for Scouting. Bill Bland, the local DC, had made me DSM for Tarwin District, so I had wider responsibilities than just 1st Mirboo North. Peter Rich, the Senior Scout Leader, also encouraged a patrol to take part in the Hoadley Hide at the same time. The Hide had commenced only a few years previously in 1952. By now it was starting to reflect a very successful pattern. A piece of reasonably wellmapped terrain was aligned to a theme. The metropolitan counties would establish bases, which would become the VOCs of today. Senior Scout patrols (now Venturers) would hike from stunt area to stunt, tackling each to the best of their ability. Some stunts gained higher points than others. Apart from today’s VOCs, the big difference was that each patrol had to submit a written log of their weekend’s exploits. Our party to the Greenbank Corroboree in Queensland had returned, as had much of our equipment. It had set the foundations for future interstate expeditions. In the ‘fifties, comparatively few people, particularly youth members, had experienced commercial flying or had travelled much outside Victoria. Scouting provided such opportunities, particularly through jamborees. Socials Whereas I had been following precedent and having “Scouty” type parent nights with the lads building bridges and demonstrating other Scouting skills, I tried a social on the lines of those held by the high school. It was such a success that the traditional “Scouty” nights had to take a back seat for the other end-of-term functions that year. Founder’s Day On Founder’s Day in February, I again obtained agreement with the high and state school principals and the various Scout and Guide groups that members should wear uniform to school on the 24th. Once again, there was an excellent response. It was “cool” to witness in their uniforms to B-P, but being February, it was quite warm enough so to do. Readers might recall the days of the church dance, with a band of perhaps piano, drums and sax. PA had not been invented! However, boys would congregate and sit down one side of the hall and girls the other, but a good MC could get them together in dances, such as the barn dance, lucky spot and Monte Carlo. The supper, supplied by the district mothers, would always be a lavish and memorable experience. Gilwell at Easter I felt confident enough to encourage the troop to camp at Gilwell Park over Easter, and to take part in the Stradbroke Cup and the Cohen Shield. I do not think that we over impressed the “assessors,” but the Scouts enjoyed themselves and, as in the Olympic spirit, “took part.” Once again I took Scouts from other 25 I had no difficulty in getting the guides and Scouts to wear uniform to these socials. I think I know how they would react today to such a suggestion. I have always cast the invitation net wide, and many companies and troops from far Published, Ibid, February, 2006 36 Way. I promised never to shock them that way again! and wide sought to come to these socials. They came by the bus load. The Mirboo North Shire Hall was packed every time. Being country and fifty years ago, there was no need for the “security” of 2005 – everybody knew how to cooperate and play fair. The campsite I mentioned in the previous article that the Senior Scouts had started to develop a campsite nearby with a view to erecting a hut on it. The site was off the Allambee road and it required good navigation to find it up back tracks. By now the hut had started to take shape, but the “shape” altered from working bee to working bee. Gang Shows Once again, the families of 6th St. Kilda group hosted our party to attend the annual Melbourne Gang Show. The Mirboo North and district party totalled 54, necessitating cars in addition to the forty-seater bus. We attended the Saturday evening performance and enjoyed it as much as ever. Following a church parade in Elwood on the Sunday morning, a football match was arranged for the afternoon, with a social that night. The party returned to Mirboo North on the Monday taking advantage of the Queen’s birthday holiday. Those on the 1958 Gang Show trip were Graham Farley, Ron Trease, Ian Campbell, Peter Hatherley, Gary Grogan, Geoff Boscombe, Lyle McKinnon, Ian Pakes, Ian Capewell, Jim McLure, Peter Fairbrother, Garth Lisle, Ray Littlejohn, Gregory Stoney, Graham Abbott, Derek Blackshaw, Bruce Owen, Daryl Jones, Robert Foster, Harold Trease, Neil Trease, Len Trease, Dennis Blackshaw, Tim Neville, Ken White, David Lane, Celwyn Curtis, Bill Fary, Peter Ramsey, Graham Fary, Robet Campbell, Alan Hotchin, Peter Jepson, Ray Feeney, Ernest Fraser, Glendyn Bradley, Allan Allen, John Milner, John McColl, Robert Noack, Richard Christie, Colin Christie, Rodney Robinson, Dallas McKinnon, John Kiss, Brian Nottle, Kevin Milner, Paul Turner, Peter Jervis, Ian Cashin. It was understood that the particular party working on the project on any weekend, and these varied from Scout Group to group, could vary the original plans or what had been constructed the previous time. But the hut did take shape and what is more it was lined with materials that a parent auctioneer encouraged bidders to allow the Scouts to get it for a reasonable price for the hut’s lining. A high quality tongue and groove flooring was installed and, in due time, given a hard-wearing lacquer surface. Plumbing was, to say the least, interesting, with the water tank on the side of the hut away from the lowest gutter. This necessitated a down pipe diagonally across the back wall – but it worked! In October that year, the Mirboo North Guides and Scouts staged their own “gang show” on similar lines to the real one and in line with the two-night Mirboo one of 1956. My parents came up for the weekend and were “gob smacked” (to use the contemporary word) when I came out on stage in a grass skirt (made from hay band) for the key rôle in The Bambazoolian 37 the first Queen Scout. Robert Hance was St. Kilda’s first, but I still claim that the papers for Peter Austin of Mirboo North went in with an earlier date. John Maughan Mr. John Maughan had been 1st Mirboo North’s first Scoutmaster about the time of the First World War. It was unanimously agreed that the campsite be named in his honour. In 1958 he was still resident in Mirboo North. During the three years that I was there I had the privilege of sitting with him on several occasions as he told me about his Scouting days. Because one Scout had reached this ultimate aim in Scouting, others wished to follow. This meant a lot of work for the leaders, together with the task of finding willing adults qualified and ready to do the necessary testing. After a frenetic period, the DC, Bill Bland, approved nine other applications for Queen Scout. The ten successful Scouts were: Graham Abbott, Peter Austin, Glendyn Bradley, John Crutchfield, Graham Fary, Alan Hotchkin, Daryl Jones, Lyle McKinnon, Robert Noack, Ian Pakes. Harold Williams, the branch’s quartermaster who ran the Scout Shop, was invited to open the camp site. Never being one not to have dates running together, the opening ceremony was to be on the Saturday afternoon following the second night of our local “gang show.” It was Scouting three days running! At Easter in 1972, Mirboo North held special centenary celebrations. Their new Scout Hall adjacent to the football field and show grounds was opened on that occasion. A booklet published at the time talked about the 1958 as the “golden age” of Scouting. Be that as it may. Field Commissioners It is interesting to remember that in 1958, the Victorian branch still had three full-time field commissioners supporting the regions outside the metropolitan area. They played a crucial rôle in training leaders and in representing the Melbourne headquarters to local government and other community bodies in the country. Named the John Maughan Camp Site to honour 1st Mirboo North’s first Scout Master in his presence. The picture shows the two fireplaces and the water tank at rear Naturally it rained on the Saturday morning and the cars slithered getting into and out of the camp, but the weather stayed fine for the ceremony. John Maughan was ferried in and honoured in every way possible. Scouts lined the entrance track. We even had a batterypowered sound system, but God Save the Queen, had to be sung unaccompanied despite the near successful efforts to make a gramophone needle out of a piece of thin wire! Uniform “add ons” The Scout uniform, designed for the outdoors, has never been warm enough (for me at any rate) for cold days or evening meetings. It was still shorts in 1958. Long trousers had not yet been introduced and the cotton uniform, even with a jumper, was hardly appropriate for winter. I was therefore glad to find a disposals store in Brunswick, which had a large range of ex-army or cadet-sized battle jackets at a very reasonable cost. These were very popular with Queen Scouts There had been a challenge by 6th St. Kilda as to whether they or 1st Mirboo North would have 38 transport via St. Helens, Swansea, Sorrell to Port Arthur. Accommodation was either at camping areas in hike tents or with Scout halls. the Mirboo North Scouts and they were soon wearing them. Similarly, I introduced “sock tops” in the Mirboo North scarf colours. These were still common in established groups in the movement at that time. They consisted of a 60 mm width of wool in the colours of the group’s scarf. By the end of 1958 the members of the troop looked quite smart in their jackets, shorts, scarves and socks. This was still in the days when uniforms were often of serge and included both green and blue shirts and shorts. The search for a uniform suitable for both activities and cold nights, while at the same time appearing to be fashionable, has been a “holy grail” for the powers that be throughout Scouting’s history . All went well until Sorrell, where the heavens opened up. The local vicar opened up the parish hall to enable us to dry out and have a good night’s sleep. Later in his career the Reverend Oliver Heyward would be the Bishop of Bendigo and be the “President of the Fellows”26 at the school where I was later to be headmaster for 21 years. In Hobart, our base was the Claremont Scout Hall. Earlier, we had forwarded our personal gear (secure in wood boxes) by train, a facility no longer available. Naturally, we visited the nearby Cadbury’s chocolate factory. While in Hobart, and having three licensed drivers, we hired drive-yourself-cars and inspected Richmond to the north. More painting Having painted the inside of the church hall and reinforced the windows, it was now time to add a coat to the exterior. I received a lot of help from townspeople, but it was par for the course that the roof, painted in a startling red colour, should have been painted on the eve of rain. Much of it washed off down the gutters before it could dry – again, the days of acrylic paint were yet to dawn. Continuing our clockwise route, the party travelled to Queenstown. Here we took a trip on the original ABT narrow gauge rail line, since restored as a tourist line. From Queenstown to Burnie, the party travelled by the private Emu Bay Railway in a special carriage attached at the rear. The small township of Tullah was then accessible only by its narrow-gauge train. Tasmania We were very well looked after by the many Scout districts through which we passed. In many instances it was the DC who gave the assistance. The weather, with the exceptions already mentioned, was fine throughout and we had no further unexpected adventures. In the Devonport area excursions were made to nearby industries, such as Burnie Board, Titan Paints, Ovaltine and Containers Ltd. Parents welcomed home the party on Wednesday 21st January. Tasmania will always be an inviting expedition for people from the mainland. It can often mean an overnight sea voyage and the island is small enough for parties to move around the tourist sites without having to travel very far in a day. During 1958, in view of the success of the Queensland trip, I held some meetings to gauge support for such a trip. The Tasmanian Tourist Bureau could not have been more helpful, and, with their assistance, a three-week trip was planned. The party of twelve Scouts left Melbourne on board the then Bass Strait steamer, SS Taroona, on New Year’s Eve, but the motion of the vessel discouraged too much celebration. From Launceston, the group travelled by public 26 The rôle of president at Braemar College was more than that of “Visitor,” which many private schools have. The president was in effect the chairman of the “shareholders,” namely the three main-line churches and the three local shires. 39 Austin van In November I acquired an Austin van, which would seat eleven with the driver, or fewer with camping gear. It was a UK equivalent of the Volkswagen Kombi. Neither of these types of vehicles was over-powered in those days. I recall my Austin having only the A30 engine. Hence my van became known as “FAT,” for Fast Austin Transport. While other leaders might hanker after a 4-wheel drive vehicle, the Austin van was to give seven years service and the East Tarago Senior Scouts quite a number more. East Tarago Senior Scouts acquired a similar vehicle. Whereas “FAT” had the gear stick on the steering wheel, the new one had “four on the floor”! Princes Hill HS Hoping to further my university studies, I had successfully applied for a school near the university and was pleased to be placed at Princes Hill High School. In addition, I received permission from the Education Department to be a resident master at Wesley College. This would mean that, if I continued to offer for Scouting, I would be available to 6th St. Kilda, particularly now that most of the original 1955 Scouts were approaching Rover age. Similarly, 1st Wesley College might also provide some opportunities. 40 Chapter 727 Rovering to Success with 6th St. Kilda Rovering My school teaching days in Mirboo North were over. In 1959 I was back in Melbourne teaching at Princes Hill High School, but living at Wesley College where I was a “resident master,” ie, responsible to the House Master for the behaviour of the boarders for certain times during the week in return for bed and lodgings. Until now, I had been involved mainly with the Scout section. I knew of the other three and had faithfully respected them when answering the Part 1 woodbadge questions. But around Rovering there appeared to hover a mystique. This was due very much to their commissioner, Bill Waters. He was already a legend. It was his interpretation of Rovering that was adopted throughout the branch and probably interstate. As with the other sections, B-P had written a special section handbook, Rovering to Success. Having returned from three weeks in Tasmania with the Mirboo North and District Scouts I was settling back into suburbia. Over the Australia Day weekend, I attended my second Gilwell Reunion, where I was the campfire leader. I used my eleven-seater Austin van to pick up a number of Scouters on the way to Gilwell. I have few other recollections, although “Narse” Lesser was the key speaker and the Monday working bee concentrated on the pipeline. Rovers hiked and rendered service. I knew of the special maps for the post 1934 Jamboree hikes that were produced on a one-inch-to-themile scale28 in association with the Melbourne Walking Club, copies of which are now heirlooms. To become a Rover, a Scout prepared himself by experiencing an all-night vigil somewhere in the bush. Ken Robinson took the 6th St. Kilda Scouts for their January camp to Taggerty. 6th St. Kilda Scouts in camp at Taggerty, January, 1959 As the first school term commenced I found that the Scouts that had commenced with 6th St. Kilda in 1955 were now of Rover Scout age. But why should they look to me to become their rover leader? 27 One of the many books available to the Rover Squire to understand his responsibilities if he proceeded with membership as an invested Rover 28 Published, Ibid, April, 2006 41 1:63,360 He would then be invested, ideally on a cliff top or somewhere similar with a memorable view. Many section Scouters were also Rovers, staying as rovers until they reached the upper age limit, which I think was about 26 years. Claude Breydon was the DC of St. Kilda. He was also a keen Rover. So we had a lot of support and encouragement from him. On Sunday, 22nd February, he invested the foundation members and me as Rovers at the St. Kilda district campsite at Beaconsfield. I recall that he took us for some special training sessions in lieu of an overnight vigil. Bert Leckie, the GSM, was also present. On 6th March, Robert Hance, Graham McGuinness, Graeme Thomson, John Butcher and Barry Wilson were also invested as rovers. Bill Waters But overarching Rovering was its leader, Bill Waters, after whom several rover lodges have been named.29 He was a renowned figure. Scouting had a number of such personalities in those days. Perhaps they have them now, but then I have grown older, if not old! It was as though if Bill spoke or led, all Rovers followed. Bill was a Boy Scout by 1908 and commenced bushwalking in 1917. He was to be closely associated with the Melbourne Walking Club and eventually become its president.30 Another “Imperial” publication to explain Rovering 1st Wesley College Dudley Wilson and David Hunt were the Scout leaders of the Wesley troop. David was my immediate “boss” in the boarding house. It was inevitable that I would be drawn into their plans if they needed transport, so it was not surprising that after only a few weeks had passed I was driving their Scouts in my Austin van to their site, The Jungalow, near Healesville. At that weekend camp, I was introduced to The ‘Bushnight Song’31 at their campfire and its tune remains in my head to this day. Bill Waters. (Reproduced from his biography) In those early days, when the potential rovers of 6th St. Kilda met in the crèche and guild rooms at the church, the ranks included Ron Preston as assistant rover leader and as rovers, John Hance, Robert Palmer, Bill Bowie, Ken Robinson and Ian Taylor. 29 W. F. Waters Rover Ski Lodge, Mt. Baw Baw W. F. “Bill” Waters A Biography by Harry Stephenson, published by the Scout Association, 1982 30 31 Words by Richard Baylis, music by William G. James, 1922 42 Gang Show Tasmanian reunion Once again, the bus brought the Mirboo North party of Scouts down to Elwood to be hosted by 6th St. Kilda families so that the Scouts could attend the Melbourne Gang Show. A “special” tram took the combined groups to the Cathedral Hall for the Saturday matinée performance. A social was held in the evening, with a church parade on the Sunday. The party returned to Mirboo North on the Monday afternoon. th On Friday, 20 March, I returned to Mirboo North with a couple of the now-invested rovers to take part in the reunion of those who had travelled to Tasmania the previous January. These were the days of coloured slides from 35 mm transparencies. We camped at the recently opened Mirboo North campsite, having scrounged some milk for breakfast before we set out for the site. St. Kilda campsite Easter At that time St. Kilda district was developing its own Scout camp at Beaconsfield alongside property that was owned by Brighton district. Rovers do service, so it was not surprising that Claude Breydon invited us to view the campsite and to help with its development. I was part of the team that was to organise the annual pioneering course to enable senior Scouts to qualify in that badge for their Queen’s Scout one. It was to become an annual event and was often held at Malvern’s camp at Officer. In line with the need to carry out their rover service, some of the crew offered to assist with the Hoadley Hide, then still relatively in its infancy as being the challenging Easter competition for the Senior Scout section. I dropped a group of them at Avonsleigh on the way to Gilwell and then more at Tomahawk Creek, picking them up again on the Monday. For some years, the campfire team at the Gilwell Easter campfires consisted of Dudley Wilson, David Hunt and me. Sometimes we were able to get better cooperation from the assembled Scouts than on others. It was always hard work and needed a lot of preparation. The campfire was an essential part of B-P’s Scout program and it was important that Scouts could enjoy a well-run campfire, one that would remain as a positive value in their memories. Rover “Prelim” or Rover Mates’ Course This was to be one of those “character forming” courses that one would never forget. I felt that I was being hijacked and taken on something over which I had little or no control. For example, it started with a requirement for us to meet at the then Scout Headquarters32 and await the arrival of a furniture van to take us to Clifford Park. It would be the first of two weekends for the course. Such was the loyalty of the 6th St. Kilda, St. Bede’s Church crew members to their church, that I was able to pick them up on Easter Day in the morning and go with them to Emerald for their Easter communion. Links with 15th Malvern had also been maintained. This was where I camped over Easter and it was here that the rovers spent a night before returning to the city on the Tuesday. The course was primarily for “Rover Mates,” but it also met the requirements for the leaders’ Preliminary course, then the Basic Course of today. I think that we had to cater for ourselves and there was talk of a night triangulation exercise. I was by then fairly confident of being 32 364 Elizabeth Street, Melbourne, having previously been a bank and later a motor bicycle shop 43 able to look after myself in the open and keep both fed and dry in hiking conditions. I see that I faithfully ruled “one-inch”35 red ink margins and similarly underlined the various sub-headings. As I have said, the notebook was to act as a “text book” for rover leaders to use with their crews. By the time we reached the lodge at Clifford Park, the rain had set in. It continued to rain until the Sunday afternoon. This was a challenge for all concerned, course leaders and rovers alike. Wally Watts met us and explained as to where we should stack our packs and prepare ourselves for the sessions that would now be taking place indoors. Perhaps we were allowed to use our fuel stoves inside the shelter, but we slept that night in our hike tents. The legendary Bill Waters33 took the opening session. Bert Blair took the second session, which was on the prismatic compass, something with which I was already familiar with from my army reserve service.36 The Sputnik had by then been launched by the Soviets but the days of satellites and “Ground Position Systems” had not yet arrived. Wally Watts followed this up with a session on map making. My ballpoint pen failed me at that stage of the morning and I was obliged to continue in pencil, inking it all in when the course was over. As I look through the pages of the course notebook, I am impressed with the wealth of information that we were given in a very useable form. Course notebooks Wally had already explained to us that our notebooks were to be looked after and that we were to take down the course notes as they were dictated. The notebooks were almost like a textbook for Rovering. Leaders and Rover Mates would have in their hands all they needed to know to effectively carry out their Scouting appointments. I still have my course notebook and often refer to it, particularly for its mapping information. While all courses had notebooks, and one was encouraged to use them, even to doing the daily sketch, this was the only Scout course that I experienced when I was told the heading to write down, the sub-heading and then the content as the session leader waited for us to write what he had dictated. Bill explained that the aims of Scouting were to develop good citizenship with a proper mental, physical and spiritual balance. Rovering “completed the training of the cub, scout and senior scout sections towards the objectives of the aims of scouting, to suit the age of young men and to develop the ideal of service to the community.” On the second weekend, we were invited to take part in a three-leg hike at night traversing by compass with five hundred-yard or metre legs. We camped halfway along the second leg. It was on a slope which meant that one had to wedge oneself in the sleeping bag on the ground sheet (no air mattresses either in those days) to prevent one rolling down the slope. Further, Rovering was a training organization, not a club; it was for “unmatured” young men and it gave opportunities for the practice of community service and the Scout Law in a wider world. We were given page references to the various manuals, such as “Policy, Organisation and Rules,”34 and to other rover books. GSM Bert Leckie, 6th St. Kilda’s foundation GSM, wanted six months leave. Inevitably the group committee looked towards me, but I wished to maintain my Rover Leader (RL) task, having 33 35 I had met Bill Waters while a student at the university when the Baden-Powell Society was established 34 Now Policy and Rules 25 mms Then known as the CMF – Citizens Military Forces. I was a lieutenant in artillery 36 44 seen the crew develop to this stage. Besides, two of the parents, who had been some of the group’s greatest supporters, were keen to provide us with a rover den. But I had little choice in accepting the appointment in addition to the RL one. Bert never returned to the GSM rôle. NSW trip Having led parties of Scouts on two interstate expeditions and now having a more suitable vehicle with which to do it, I sounded out the crew as to the possibility of a fortnight’s trip to Sydney in January, 1960. There was good support for this, so planning got underway. Ken Robinson, Peter Brooks, John Butcher, Graham Farley, Graham McGuinness, Robert Palmer, and (front), Alan Bucher and Geoff McMaster Sixteen rovers made up the final party. Seven would travel with me in the Austin van, and two other cars would have four rovers a piece. My friend, Alan Bucher, and his mate, Peter Brooks, both of 1st Footscray, together with Alan Ponsford of 4th Caulfield, were the other three leaders. I had great help from Mr. Ian Campbell, the House Master of Wesley College, in planning the itinerary. Having lived in New South Wales, Ian was very familiar with the Shoalhaven Gorge area. One of the trip’s features would be to visit the Snowy Hydro Scheme, then in course of completion. The extent of this scheme, with its harnessing and redirection of rivers in the course of producing hydro electricity power, was a major undertaking for the post Worldl War II nation of Australia. Many displaced persons from Europe were to be migrants to this nation and work on the scheme, it becoming one of the big steps in our multi cultural development. Setting out on the trip outside St. Bede’s Church, Graham McGuinness, Geoff McMaster, Graham Farley and Robert Palmer. Why didn’t someone tell me I looked “daggy” in the cut of those shorts! They probably did! While the troop was well equipped, there was a need for the crew and particularly the Austin van to have a set of boxes that would easily fit into it and thus accommodate spare clothing and equipment. In those days firms specialised in recycling packing cases in which industrial equipment had been delivered. I was fortunate to get the sizes that I needed. It remained to members of the crew to prepare and paint them. Itinerary The general plan was to follow a circular path through the Snowy Mountains, Canberra, Sydney, Bathurst and back to Victoria via Albury. The final mileage was about two thousand four hundred miles (or just over three thousand kilometres). 45 Chapter 837 organized “car tours,” in which the “tourists” drove in their own cars. We joined in these drives. This was when the Austin needed an early start to get to the next RV within a reasonable time. Sometimes we found ourselves arriving almost as the rest of the party was about to move on to the next dam site. By having to drive from one vantage point to another the scale of the undertaking became very clear to us all. Rovering to Senior Scouts January trip In 1960, the 6th St. Kilda Rover Crew set out on a two-week tour to the north-east of Victoria and then on into New South Wales. For the 16 members in the party, there were three vehicles available to carry them. Mine, the Austin van, with its eight passengers, was to chug away with its A30 engine, endeavouring to be the first to leave and always fatefully the last to arrive at most places. Peter Thomson’s car, with its four passengers cruised reliably along. But the third vehicle was quite reflective of the sort of conveyance that a rover would drive and how it would fare! Assistance The Wesley College housemaster, Mr. Ian Campbell, met us when we reached the Shoalhaven River. He escorted us to Sydney and then accompanied us to the Blue Mountains. The Scout Master at Cooma overwhelmed us with hospitality. In Bathurst we had the luxury of the 1st Bathurst Scout Hall in the shadow of the cathedral. New Year’s Eve was “celebrated” in Canberra. The rovers went into the centre of the city, only to find that, in their words, it was “dead” by ten o’clock! This was back in 1960! The “suburban” tyres on the Austin were unable to cope with the challenging gravel mountain roads. At least two of them had to be replaced. The third vehicle had to cope with a broken spring, a broken back axle and its oil-burning engine! However local car garages and service stations were able to keep us all going. Peter drove on unscathed. Last night of the trip was spent on the river bank. It rained quite heavily that night and all three vehicles needed help to get up the bank and out, but the Austin van had wheel chains, which made all the difference John Hance (Robert’s elder brother and one of the drivers) ascends the retaining wall of the Guthega Dam in the Snowy Mountains Scheme. The final night was spent at Myrtleford, but gentle rain fell throughout the night. One rover, who had got thoroughly wet, travelled in his birthday suit to Warby Springs on the Hume Highway before he could dry off and get dressed. The van’s heater kept him warm. The breakfast on that occasion in a roadside shelter was heavenly. The Snowy Mountains Scheme in 1959 was comprehensive in scale but was still incomplete. To see the extent of the project, the authority 37 Published, Ibid, June, 2006 46 items to Gilwell; on this occasion a badge board for James Jacoby.39 Leadership On Scout training courses, I had learnt by now that the boss says, “You do it,” but the leader says, “Let’s do it”! But as a school teacher, there was always the risk of approaching one’s Scouting rôle with the back up of classroom authority. This had worked for me for more or less eight years, but now I was dealing with a far maturer age group, where they took their own decisions with responsibility. I recall having to learn this revised approach on this fortnight’s trip. Gilwell Reunion, January, 1960. Don Lithgow 2nd left However, for my “sins,” I was elected troop leader for the 1961 reunion. I had already noted a number of aspects of the reunion that needed attention. For a start, the staffing was top heavy. All it really needed was a chairman, a small committee and a troop leader. Some would have said that I should have kept my mouth shut and looked the other way! Rover Den Unlike the Mirboo North camp hut, the proposed den behind the church in Elwood promised to be a more professional undertaking. There was even to be an architect. Dudley Wilson practised in his father’s firm of architects. It was logical that I would approach Dudley38, my fellow Wesley Scoutmaster for advice. I remember watching Dudley’s father sketch out the plans with only a few deft strokes. 6th Rover Woodbadge Being a new rover leader, it followed that I should undertake the rover wood badge. For the course in question, the three weekends were to be at Gilwell Park. But the manner in which the course was held was quite different to the cout one of 1955. The rover one was a “gentleman’s” course, with visiting speakers. Only on one weekend were we asked to undertake a short hiking activity. At that stage the size of the den had been determined by the church vestry. It was only when the foundations had been dug, that all parties realised the inadequacy of the size of the floor plan to utilise the site at the side of the church hall. Very quickly the plans were amended. Thus the church and other user groups acquired a reasonably sized multi-use room. Bill Waters led the course. His regular rover team assisted him. This group included Roy Driver, Ivan Stevens, George Tanke, Wally Watts and Bert Blair. The rover atmosphere continued to be one of hikers using furniture vans and to hike along the now disused forest timber tram tracks. The alternative activity to hiking was skiing. Gilwell Reunion I had now become a regular “attender” at the annual reunion, making many new friends in the “pigeon loft.” Very few of those with whom I had done my original course ever came to such functions. Having the relatively capacious Austin van, I would often be asked to transport 38 Tragically, Dudley died some years later of brain cancer. The Spring Lodge at Gilwell Park was one of his many professional undertakings 39 47 James Jacoby was DC of Malvern at the time. seeds. If another fire had come through in the meantime, large areas of Mountain Ash eucalypts might never have been re-propagated. On the final weekend of the woodbadge course we were invited to take part in a “thousand pace square traverse” in rain and forest. It was one of those “character building” experiences. One might forget other things, but never these. You get to know the metal of your self and your mates on such occasions. Meetings Rebel in trousers I have always resisted the number of unnecessary meetings that Scouting seems to require. In my view one should meet for a purpose and not just to provide a night’s entertainment for the lonely! As acting GSM I duly convened group council and group committee meetings to keep the group ticking over. It was convenient that the Scouters of the group met in my rooms at Wesley College as I was on duty there three nights a week. One could combine duty with pleasure in this way. I do not think I was born a rebel, although my mother was always quick to label me a “Bolshie”40 whenever I deviated from the family’s political line. However, I have never thought of the Scout uniform as being adequate for much of the weather for which we wear it, considering it was designed for the open African Veldt. I had noted that the then rule book, P.O. & R.,41 had provision for adults to wear a jacket and long trousers, very much based on the service dress of an army officer. So why couldn’t I? Warburton Rover Chalet Perhaps I was now devising trips to justify using my Austin van. I arranged with rover headquarters for the crew to use part of the Rover Memorial Chalet at Warburton on the Easter weekend, 1960. My party of rovers was to share this with Wally Watts and his family. I probably wore shorts just to be perverse! The first weekend of the course was a cold one in late March. I arrived in long trousers – I think my army ones. Wally Watts, endeavouring to be loyal to his leader, wanted me to change into shorts. I decided to call his bluff and suggest that if that was so, I would take my leave of the course and return home, my health being more important than conformity. I stayed and was warm! Speakers One of the speakers was from the Forestry Commission. He, with other rover leaders, was very conscious that the seedlings from the bushfires of 1939 had just reached the stage of maturity where they themselves would provide Rovers from 6th St. Kilda on the steps of the Rover Chalet at Warburton 40 From the word, Bolshevik, the people of Russia who sought to curb the Tsar’s powers in October, 1917 41 Policy, Organisation and Rules, now Policy and Rules 48 The trip included a walk up to the top of Mount Donna Buang along and up the slithery and muddy track to the cold mountain top. There we were grateful to be able to purchase cups of tea. We got a lift to get back down in the back in the tray of a utility. What would be said about that today! Flying fox At a pioneer badge course a month or two later, Ken Robinson, later to become Scoutmaster of 6th St. Kilda, constructed a flying fox that really flew! I had always enjoyed the pioneering aspects of Scouting. I was always conscious of safety and made sure that the respective groups with which I worked acquired adequate hawsers, ropes, tackle and expertise for building a flying fox. Gilwell Park Saturday saw us transfer to Gilwell Park, where I assisted in leading the campfire in the main campfire circle for troops competing for the Stradbroke and Cohen shields. On Sunday, we attended a communion church service and then went exploring (with the use of wheel chains) into some of the legendary hiking country near Powelltown. This was the famous “High Lead” area. Timber tramways had once honey-combed these forests. Viaducts had been built to cross the deep valleys. These bridges, if they had not already collapsed, were now treacherous with their moss covered frameworks. I do not recall any accidents with our flying fox constructions, although there was always the temptation to make them longer and more challenging. In later chapters I may mention that there had to be “an element of danger” in such endeavours for the venturer-aged Scout. But I was ever vigilant over the quality of the hawsers, the safety aspects of the blocks and the essential “brake” and soft landing at the end of the aerial runway. I am very grateful for the complete trust that the Association and parents placed in its leaders. Obviously safety standards have not always been maintained and the current restrictions on such pioneer projects are well understood to be necessary, but where does one draw the line between daring and doing. I then lost my voice. Friday in the cold and Saturday’s singing, to say nothing of having come on the trip in poor condition, had resulted in this situation. When do we ever learn? In May, our crew had another weekend at the chalet, this time coinciding with plenty of snow. Being a sponsored church group, I was under obligation to find a local church service on the Sunday and “encourage” the rovers to attend it despite the other attractions around them. Technical school “scouts” Alan Bucher42 of 1st Footscray and the Reverend George Tooth, also a very keen advocate of Scouting in the Anglican church, combined to conduct a camp for boys from a Melbourne technical school, where Alan was a teacher. Alan would also work with boys from orphanages and he would often invite me to come along. Venturer course I was becoming quite “ambidextrous” in Scouting either as rover leader, acting group scoutmaster, campfire leader, attender at Gilwell Reunions and now an assistant on the district team in conducting venturer and pioneer badge weekends. Some might have muttered, “Too much scouting”! The 1960 Venturer Course was at Beaconsfield. Harold Nathan of the Jewish group, 3rd St. Kilda, and Ian Mackie (I think of 5th St. Kilda) were co-leaders and towers of strength. On this occasion I recall driving down the Great Ocean Road through wind and rain to join the party at Cumberland River. I am prepared to admit to liking a bit of comfort in camp, something that B-P never discouraged, but was 42 Another sad case of a scouter, father and husband who died early in his life 49 a bit aghast to find the party huddling in tents and the leaders in an inadequate shelter shed amidst the squalls and bracing winds. However the Australian flag was flying bravely from its pole defying the elements. By the next day, the weather had improved to permit wide games, lamp-raiding and stalking. Boys unfamiliar with these experiences take to them like water. Life was much less sophisticated in those days and expectations were not as high. It was clear to me that the basic principles of scouting were easily applicable and enjoyable to youth everywhere, scouts or not. 1st Wesley scouts with their SM, Dudley Wilson, in front of the John Maughan hut near Mirboo North The “Gang” at the Palais It would be a pity to travel all that distance and have to sleep under the stars! The shelter and the cooking facilities of the hut were always very welcome. This was the first year that the Melbourne Gang Show hired the Palais theatre in St. Kilda. It was a brave step, and one that would pay off in later years. It didn’t in 1960. Lillian Beard has told me of the efforts to give tickets away, particularly to children’s homes and other groups in part to get an audience that did not rattle around in the 3000-seat theatre. Jamboree staffing shock I had applied to attend the NSW Lansdowne jamboree as an assistant for 15th Malvern’s “Under 15” troop. I then received an ominous phone call from Ken Brewster, GSM of 10th Malvern, who was very senior in the staffing of the jamboree. The “Pigeon” patrol of the Gilwell Reunion had its mini-reunion at the Prince of Wales Hotel and its members then went on to see the show. Something stirred in my mind that I might one day try my chances to be in its cast. Ken, whom I was to get to know very well in later years but in those days it was perhaps with a tinge of uncertainty, offered me a position as assistant to a “Senior Scout” troop. I might have stared down Wally Watts over the shorts issue, but Ken made it very clear that if I did not go along with his plans I would not be going to the jamboree at all! Wesley Scouts Dudley Wilson and I organised a weekend for some of his scouts at the Mirboo North district campsite. This hut was now getting quite a bit of use, but one had to make sure that it was never double booked. This was not the first or the last time in my life that an “external” activist has altered the destiny of my life. But life needs direction at times and “Kenya” Brewster was the medium on this occasion. As I hope to recount in the next chapter, I took to senior scouting (venturing as it known today) at this jamboree like a duck to water. I had found my scouting “milieu.” 50 Chapter 9a and 9b43 their carriage which was relatively vacant. Here they settled down to try to get some sleep in what was left of the night. ‘Jamboreeing’ with “Seniors,” and Gang Show auditions Meals 1961 lay ahead There was no dining car on the train – as if we could have expected one. Instead, we were served from trestle tables on the platforms, the evening meal possibly at Wangaratta in Victoria and breakfast at Goulburn in NSW. The year was to start with the Lansdowne Jamboree in Sydney, where I would be brushing shoulders with scouts “older” than 15 years-old. Then came the Gilwell Reunion. While still Rover Leader of 6th St. Kilda I decided to audition for the Melbourne Gang Show. I was also useful at scout camps. Water on a train tends to get short on long journeys, although station staff endeavoured to keep the tanks topped up. Washing and things like shaving became almost impossible with the numbers and distances involved. However, we eventually reached the Lansdowne rail-siding outside of Sydney; staggering down onto the track to sort ourselves out. Lansdowne – getting there While trains are a good method of moving large numbers of people on land, the gauge break44 at Albury in those days always meant a change of trains, generally during the night. Scout leaders would hope for an orderly change at Albury. On this occasion there was chaos. Tent poles Trains generally have their carriages numbered or lettered from the engine back to the guards van. Theoretically, the trains would be in parallel on either side of the platform. All the scouts would have to do was to cross the platform to the similar carriage on the other side. But either the Victorian or the NSW train had its carriages numbered in the reverse order! One of our Scouters, Max Elliott, had traveled ahead of us to prepare the way. He knew where the patrol boxes were located as well as the (ordered and paid for) tent ridge poles. But there was no guarantee that supplies would necessarily equal the number ordered by the various troop contingents. Using quick footwork, our troop got its legitimate number, but late arrivals were perhaps not so fortunate. Sky-hooks do not replace tent poles! As a result under the electric lights at night there were Scouts milling everywhere, lugging their great packs of gear onto the platform. Some Scouts did the right thing and headed for their correct numbered carriage, even if it did mean finding (or fighting) their way to the other end of the platform, bumping into similar minded Scouts coming the other way. Others were less orderly (or more cunning or lazy) and headed for any unoccupied compartment opposite from Another of our Scouters, who was also an officer in the regular army, borrowed (signed for) some army engineer stores, such as stoves and star pickets. As a result of planning and getting in first, this jamboree had every chance of being a more comfortable one than my memories of Greystanes, four years earlier with Under 15 Scouts. The elder boy 43 Published over two issues; July 2006, Gang Show – an experience of a lifetime p 30,and August, 2006, p 30, Chapter 9: Jamboreeing with Seniors. 44 This problem ended when Victorian Railways converted its 5’ 3” track to Albury to the standard one of 4’ 8 ½” Let me quote from my diary, “I now began to appreciate the value of seniors – strong men who knew what to do and how to do it.” Take getting a cup of tea for example. Senior 51 Scouts,45 on request for a cup of tea for the troop, would fill two four-gallon drums of water and boil it on a decent-sized fire, providing ample cups for up to fifty thirsty throats. My previous experience had not been like that. This was when I had been with the 11-15 age group. I had bad memories of smoky fires, insufficient water, floating tea leaves and an inadequate sized billy Senior Scouts could demonstrate too much ingenuity at times. All our tents had deep trenches, again because of the physical abilities of our lads. When we had some torrential rain, the boys soon got out and made sure that the water coming down the hill and entering our water trenches would not flood us out, but flow on down on its way to those tents further down the slope! Command structure This jamboree was still held in the days when there was an assumption that contingent members would be able to travel as tourists in to the nearby capital city. The Sydney suburban service trains included Lansdowne and the fare was reasonable. Many of our Scouters had some military service experience, albeit National Service, so it was not surprising that Harry Allerdice handled the “A” and “G” aspects. Max Elliott was in effect the troop’s “sergeant-major.” The rest of the Scouters were the “lieutenants.” “Above us” was the “group” team of Keith Walter, George Benporath and Harry Weller. The other three troops in our group were led by Neil Westaway, David Jefferson and Bruce Adams. We all cooperated well with each other. This older age group was much easier to handle. They responded to the Scouting tenets of Trust and Honour. Mind you, they understood and practised the male virtues of “wheeling and dealing.” Nor do I recall any disciplinary matters. The lads had plenty of leave, but those ‘on duty’ were always present to service the camp. There were also times when one should not have asked too many questions! This economically produced handbook was the basic manual for understanding and leading Senior Scouts at the time Before finishing the discussion of the jamboree, I again found that while “fifty” in a “troop” is a neat figure for planning, it is not necessarily the most successful one, particularly for the “11 to 15” troops, as the scale of effort required was often beyond the Scouts’ collective physical abilities. Scout troops, normally pegged at 24 to 32 members, are not used to catering for fifty at a meal. Later jamborees would significantly reduce this troop-size figure. Post jamboree Deryck Mornement had organized a bus tour to follow the jamboree. He included me. Using the 1st Lindfield scout hall one night, we were invited to have dinner at the home of Paddy Pallin, a name richly associated with the development of outdoor camping and hiking gear. It was an honour to meet this man who had worked so closely with scouting and its needs. Senior Scouts 45 The Venturer Scouts of today 52 start” and I returned to Rubicon, not daring to stall or stop on the way. Lesson: do not exchange cars! Camp and Gilwell Reunion Ken Robinson was now 6th St. Kilda’s Scoutmaster. He arranged a camp for the troop at Rubicon. Again my van was requisitioned for some of the gear and personnel. I was also towing a trailer for the first time. As I was now the Troop Leader for the Gilwell Reunion, I needed to get across to Gilwell on the Friday night. Ken suggested that we swapped vehicles. I do not recommend this habit following the experiences that I then had. I had driven off in daylight. Then it grew dark. I then had to find the tail light switch46. Gang Show auditions Was it just for the red scarf that I auditioned for the Melbourne Gang Show? Or was it for more altruistic reasons of wishing to be a member of the “gang” for once in my scouting life, sharing in each others’ talents and humbly offering entertainment to scouts and members of the public, when the show would open in June? Suffice it to say I fronted up at 384 Elizabeth Street on 19th February and, in front of the auditioning panel, sang solo and recited words from a sketch. From that moment, the words and tune of The Morning of my Life stuck in my memory. It was probably the tune to which we had to demonstrate our voices. Two of the key people in the reunion committee, Esther Cox and Irene Robbins, liked to arrive on the Friday afternoon of the Gilwell Reunion Australia Day weekend to get things organised. But they also looked forward to a good and quiet night’s sleep. However, it was also the habit of some other reunion members to arrive the same night and celebrate their “coming together.” This was not fair on Esther or Irene and it became one of my tasks to quieten the other early arrivals down, to the extent of asking them not to arrive before Saturday in future. Rehearsals Rehearsals were arranged for Monday nights, the venue being the then RAAMC military training depôt in William Street. There would also be some weekends closer to the show. I made it clear that my CMF army commitments would take precedence. Car troubles I got back to the camp at Rubicon in daylight hours, but then borrowed Ken’s car again to go to Melbourne and attend an army parade at Dandenong47. After the parade I had to get a push start from my fellow officers to get to my parents’ home. In the morning in Elwood, the battery was quite flat. The generator was not working. I could not find a crank handle! There wasn’t RACV membership either for the vehicle! But Ken’s family lived only a few doors away. Ken’s father gave me a “jump I was made patrol leader of the Falstaff patrol. This was hard work as thespians tend to be individuals, who often know better or worship their own egos, ability and independence. For reasons of convenience, each member of the cast was given a number. I was slightly amused with this system. I got on well with another leader, Graeme McCoubrie, and, from then on, we only addressed each other this way. I have no list to prove it, but I think I was “number 50” and he was “number 80”!48 I could see the reason for using numbers to simplify rehearsal lists but they did tend to be de-humanising. 46 In those days it was law that the switch to operate the tail-light (generally only one and in the centre of the tail gate) of a car had to be on the outside at the back of the vehicle. It was also a requirement that the light should be on when a car was parked in the street! 47 The Army Reserve was then known as the Citizen Military Forces, which had expanded to meet the numbers fulfilling their 1951 circa National Service of 180 days service 48 53 Graeme McCoubrie approach made the task of providing the traditional campfire that much easier. The Rover Den takes shape Meanwhile the construction of the rover den in Elwood to its larger dimensions had gone ahead by leaps and bounds. The foundations had been laid. The concrete floor poured and a Mr. King laid the double brick wall. The roof was soon on. The opening was set for 16th April. A clergyman, the Reverend W. R. Potter who was a scout supporter, was asked to officiate. Den is opened Easter The day arrived and all the excitement that one associates with such openings was present. My father had flown interstate on business, but he had given me a letter. This was not to be opened until after the den had been declared open. The League of Nations building in Geneva was completed about the time that the League become impotent with the various nationalistic and political changes of the ‘thirties. I hoped that history would not repeat itself with our new rover den: a den but no Rovers! I spent the Easter holidays at Gilwell, again with 15th Malvern. The Pearce brothers had “dogged” my scout paths already too many times, although in time we were to become great friends. Ken Brewster decided a new team should conduct the campfires in the main hollow. He invited Garry Pearce to do it, but Garry turned round and recruited Dudley Wilson and me to assist him! The plaque Meanwhile I had experienced difficulty in getting the person in charge of the plaque to discuss the wording of it with me. I then, just before the opening, discovered why. It was to be named the “Graham Farley Rover Den”! I have rarely been more embarrassed. It was too late to reject the honour. If I had known I would have refused point blank, but it was too late now. Campfires By 1961, these campfires were becoming more difficult to conduct while maintaining any solemnity and occasion. If there were once days when the boys knew their Hackney Scout Song Book, they were not now. Campfire leaders had to use short and very well known songs, often with actions and voice opportunities to get cooperation from the scouts. The den did get a lot of use, and when Rovering and the rest of the Scout group went out of existence some years later, the church still had a very good investment on its hands. In 2005 the Diocese sold the church, its buildings and grounds. The den was demolished in the process. It had gone the “way of all flesh” or, should I say, “in to the dust of history”! To assist the keeping of order, teams of the camp assessors would roam the slopes of the campfire hollow49 to dissuade the bugle blowers and other un-programmed items not to be held in competition with us. It became more and more a challenge to the wits and abilities of the team leaders. There was little enjoyment in it for us who led them. But we would get through somehow and “lick our wounds” while we prepared for next year. In later years public address systems and a move to a “concert” The Gang Show I was not impressed with the arrangements for the rehearsal at the Frankston Sea Scout hall a weekend or two before the show opened. My army training disagreed with there being only two toilets and poor washing facilities. Over a hundred personnel were to be housed overnight in that scout hall. But my biggest annoyance 49 Now named after Norman Johnson, OBE, a famous scout commissioner, whose most senior appointment was with the World Scout Bureau 54 was with the “coming and going” of a number of the cast; actors as distinct from the chorus line. Some of these lads thought they were prima donnas. This made it very difficult for rehearsal schedules and much time seemed to be wasted as we stood around. As a member of the cast, it was a wonderful experience to be on the stage. I was only able to see the first two or three rows over the floodlights because of the lighting, and yet to feel the warmth and appreciation of the thousands beyond them. It could have become intoxicating as the waves of applause swept forward toward the stage. I had chosen the right year to be a part of it all. But all this was to be forgotten when the dress rehearsal was held at the Palais, only a night or two before the opening night. As I lived only a mile away at Elwood, the St. Kilda location for the show was very convenient. One could even park in nearby streets in those days. Following the poor attendances of the previous year it was very pleasant to be told that bookings were very promising. We might even be looking at a “House Full” sign being displayed one night. On the other hand my mother had to cope with the grease paint on clothes and sheets. As I had various bit parts at the beginning with virtually no time to change costumes, I had several layers of costume on when I appeared on the stage for the opening number. I was in several of the chorus lines, but I also had several key rôles. I was Mrs. Sunbeam in Dress Rehearsal. I also had to appear before the curtain on the tabs to ad lib until I got the “OK” through the curtains that the stage set was ready for the ‘The Colonel takes his bath.’ In a Boer War period army sergeant’s uniform I had to march across the stage giving commands as a background to the songs for Hello Yesterday. I also had to give a pontifical speech in Ship Launching. Finally, I announced the Officers’ Mess sketch. Publicity The Melbourne Herald evening newspaper50 of 18th May gave a full page to the forthcoming show. Peter Cook, Peter Hart, Ross Olney, David Sherrard and Tommy Atkinson were in a photograph in top hats and tails, while, in another photograph, the three famous for their parts were in The Return of the Terrors. At the time I had no idea as to who was arranging this excellent publicity, but in 2003, when I helped to put together the history of the Gang Show, I had the privilege to meet Ms. Betty Stewart. Ken Bayly, the producer, was in the habit of using “Hate Sheets” to stir up and stimulate the cast. At interval and then after the show, the gang could read these documents. They enabled Ken to let off his spleen if one of us had missed our lines, been late on stage or hammed up the part. But there was also provision for the award of praise, which helped morale enormously. Back in 1961, the Gang Show committee had retained Betty to promote the show. She did this with incredible success. She had come to one of the rehearsals and on the spot recognized the possibilities of it and the need to get the theatre-going public of Melbourne to be aware of the talent that would be on the stage. Consequently, the 1961 Gang Show played to full houses at the majority of its performances. When you remember that the theatre in those days sat three thousand people, it was a great achievement. After the curtain came down on the final night I realised that I could look back on having been part of the “gang”; an experience of a lifetime. Rover Moot I had been told at the Rover wood-badge course the previous year that the Rover hierarchy was gearing up for the 7th World Rover Moot to be held at Clifford Park at the end of 1961. Only 50 Melbourne was then served by two morning papers, The Age, The Sun and The Argus, and in the afternoon and evening by The Herald. On Saturdays, The Sporting Globe complemented The Herald with sports results. 55 Robert Palmer of the 6th St. Kilda Crew elected to attend with me. A Prayer for Brotherhood We pray for the peace and goodwill to unite, We pray for the love of Thy guiding light; We pray that our paths may lead us to A way of joy and friendship true We ask that our eyes may be open to see The goodness of others, whoever they be, This blessing we ask, that we may be As one great family “Bus” Derrick, MBE Goodwill on earth so often has seemed Far beyond our call; So we ask that we may find A way of peace for all. At a preliminary meeting in the RAAMC depot, I was invited by “Bus” Derrick to be part of his sub-camp team. Robert and I accepted his invitation, but we would also be able to take part in the moot whenever we wished. Though different in colour and races and creed May we from all thought of intol’rance be freed We ask that the world should pray with us Our prayer for brotherhood The year draws to an end Before the Rover Moot took place, Ken Robinson held a further scout camp at the Warburton Rover Chalet. As the year was rapidly closing, the crew held its breakup at the London Hotel. Ken Bayly There was a Saturday working bee at the Rover Moot site where we helped to erect marquees and tents. The new Chief Commissioner, Major-General Sir Robert Risson, set a great example as he did in every other sphere of his life by helping with the task of erecting the tents. When, as tramways board chairman, he had earlier heard of drivers who thought it was too hard to get on to the roof of trams to fix the catenary, he climbed one himself to show how a man of his age could still do it. 56 Chapter 1051 support jobs properly, individual messes (dining areas) were established where they could rely on getting punctual and wholesome meals. However, all too often, these messes became too formal, tending to replicate some of the protocol of their military forebears. But “Bus” would have none of that. We were there to serve the Rovers and help them to get the most satisfaction out of the Moot. 1962 a year of diversity Nineteen sixty-two was a seminal year for me in that it would be my last in Melbourne before spending many years in country and regional Victoria. Rather than acting as a section scouter, I was principally involved with “adults.” After helping to staff a sub-camp at the Rover Moot, I would become chairman of the Gilwell Reunion and continue as GSM for 6th St. Kilda. That would all change in 1963, but that is for a later story. Good Turns Quite apart from the brotherhood that such events can generate, Rovers, both from Australia and overseas, took part in “good turns” in the community. One of these was to assist the Puffing Billy Preservation Society, which was endeavouring to get the trains of Puffing Billy back on the tracks from Fern Tree Gully to Emerald52. 7th World Rover Moot Bill Waters and his team of Rover Commissioners had spent some two years planning for the Moot. They had taken every opportunity to enthuse Rovers as to the significance of Australia, (really Victoria) hosting a “world bureau” event. Now it was upon us. The narrow-gauge Puffing Billy line had been closed by the Victorian Railways since 1953 when a landslide blocked the track between Selby and Menzies Creek. Large parties of Rovers were dispatched throughout the Moot to the line to assist in the realignment of the track and much good work was achieved. For well over a year, hike and expedition party leaders had been trained in their rôles. In all cases, the hike leaders, parties of three, had hiked over their routes at least three times, consequently they were very familiar with the tracks and camping sites. Another good turn was at the home of the hearing-challenged at Blackburn. Sub-Camp 3 Moot Expeditions “Bus” Derrick invited me to assist on “Subcamp 3” of the 7th World Rover Moot at Clifford Park. Prior to the Moot, I had assisted “Bus” with the Austin van, transporting those “work-horse” army tables, GS 6 x 3, to the site. An important part of the Moot program was the opportunity for those attending to take part in an “expedition.” The list of possible expeditions included hiking (inevitably), surfing (at Eumeralla, Anglesea), bus tours (for the less active), wool and wheat tour, an Eildon cruise, mountain climbing (for the extremely active), The sub-camp’s team included John Sedgeley, Rev’d George tooth, Jack Maver, Athol Stone, John Campbell and Dave Shaw amongst others. 52 Since then, the line has been electrified and broadgauged to Belgrave, with the Puffing Billy Society regularly running steam or diesel hauled trains through to the original terminus of Gembrook. In earlier days, Scouts could travel by these trains to the Gilwell Park camping ground, which was only another seven kilometres to hike. Each of the “sub-camps” handled administration for groups of Rovers camping in their midst. To make it easier for the team members to do their 51 Published, Ibid., September 2006, p 38 57 cave exploring (for those who did not suffer claustrophobia), gliding, and visits to industry. Post Moot Hikes I thought that the bus trips or the lake cruise would suit me very well. Despite my own love of walking but equal antipathy to crossing mosscovered logs over streams, I found myself allotted to take part in the hike from Hotham to Shannon Vale. Day Two I was in a party that had excellent leadership. These three Rovers, who had fulfilled all their pre-hike training, were most helpful and encouraging. The day commenced with a descent to Dobbins Hut, an old cattle hut in the valley. I guess I could have pleaded “insanity,” but I decided to accept the challenge. Prior to that my overnight hikes had been limited to what I called, “civilized” country. But then, if one had descended, one would have to ascend out of the valley. That brought us to the High Plains area. Lunch was taken at a small aqueduct. Our second night’s camp was in the vicinity of the Bogong Rover Chalet. Day One It was New Year’s Day. It had been quite a task to be packed and ready to go at day-break. This was made more difficult through my having run out of methylated spirits to prime the kerosene powered pressure lamp – so I left it burning all night so that at least I would have light in the hour before the dawn! Day Three This day saw us hiking amongst the cattle that were then allowed to munch the grass on the high plains. The hike route was along the Fitzgerald Track. I fell behind a little in the afternoon, but the member of the hike leader party, termed “the whip,” made sure that I made the destination of the Shannon Vale property. We camped here overnight prior to returning to the moot site the next day. I recall lining up in the cool morn and the dust to catch a bus to Ringwood, from where we boarded a train that took us to Wangaratta. This was still in the days of flexible public transport. At “Wang,” we were transferred to a Hoy’s bus. This took us through Bright, Harrietville, finally depositing us at the Blowhard Hut. Day Four Quoting from my diary, “Our packs were taken on ahead, and we followed the snow poles while all lay around us – valleys and hills to the horizon as we surveyed the top of Victoria. My diary says that it was painful shaving that morning. I have no idea whether I had shaved each day or had just let the bristle grow. Our buses took us through Anglers’ Rest to Omeo and then to Bairnsdale for lunch and the train. The train took us right through to Ringwood. Singing broke out on the bus from Ringwood to the moot site. Here we were greeted by a hot meal with steak. I noted, “A fantastic experience and such (good) organization.” “Sweating, even without a pack, I began to grasp the significance of 32 miles of this hiking (that) was ahead of me, but the grandeur (of the scenery) took the dread away.” Camp was just below the Hotham Heights Hotel. I have often noted in my life that I often have to be “pushed” into a situation, which I then find that I enjoy and from which I have much 58 satisfaction. After all, I had been “pushed” into helping with senior scouts at the Lansdowne Jamboree, quite unaware of my future association with that section from 1963 on. Gilwell Reunion In similar style to that of 1961, I attended the Gilwell Reunion, but this time retained the use of my own vehicle to get there. I was QM for this reunion. Following the pattern of the previous year, I started off from Melbourne, picking up Irene Robbins on the way before meeting at Mr. and Mrs. Cox’s home. If there were any other “early” arrivals, they kept quiet this year and Esther Cox and Irene got a good night’s sleep. Highlights Other highlights of the Moot were the games of Monopoly with Robert Palmer and Rovers of 4th Caulfield, the Brighton Revue, the Thanksgiving Service, the Gilwell Reunion and the last night party at the sub-camp. Bill Waters was “chaired” from the arena at the conclusion of the final parade. It was probably the apex of his Rovering career. Having gone as QM, I found myself elected chairman of the reunion at the annual meeting on the Sunday, a position I was to hold for some years. Not so highlighted was the last day, when cleaning up was the agenda and matters were not all taking their proper course. It was not many days later that a bushfire tragically swept through Clifford Park, but the Rovers, their cars and the infrastructure equipment had long gone. But it had been a great experience and Rovering in Victoria could look forward with confidence on a basis of pride. The reunion, when it was held over the long weekend with Australia Day, followed a pattern. Saturday was the day to arrive with much socialising in the various patrol and sixer huts. On the Sunday there would be a Scouts’ Own and the annual meeting. On each of the two nights there would be a singsong or campfire, but the Saturday night dance of nowadays had not yet evolved. Monday was “good turn” or “working bee” morning. Tommy’s Hut camp Once again I assisted Ken Robinson with the setting up of the 6th St. Kilda’s troop camp at Tommy’s Hut, Kinglake West In 1962, I was involved with a team that was doing some painting. To make sure that it did not smash or spill, I used the shelter of my gumboots for storage. For some reason I forgot it was in them, but that did not prevent me from complaining that we were short of turpentine – it was right alongside me! I spent the next few days helping back at the scout camp with campfires, cricket, monopoly, swimming and camp dismantling. Easter Ken Robinson teaching scouts how to construct gadgets at the January, 1962, camp at Tommy’s Hut John Ireland, a Rover Leader who had also attended the Moot and led a hike party, was a teacher with me at Princes Hill High School. The previous Easter we had taken a party of 59 school boys to Seven Creeks in the Strathbogies. Five of the students clamored for the trip to be repeated, but I would be the only adult available. GSM Amidst my boarding house duties, CMF parades, daily high school teaching obligations, I was still able to fit in the monthly Group Council meetings as GSM (GL) of 6th St. Kilda, but these were held at Wesley College in my rooms after “lights out” for my convenience. As I would be moving across to Gilwell to assist with the campfires, I obtained signed letters from the parents, acknowledging that there would be no adult supervision for the weekend. I am not sure that I would be prepared to even countenance doing that in 2006, but the mature group of students responded very well and all was well on my return. It was “scouting” but not as uniformed members. Gilwell campfires Gary Pearce had asked me to assist him with the Gilwell Easter campfires. Everything went more smoothly this year, particularly with the available teams of assessors ready to move in and quell any “alternate leadership” from troops of poorly trained scouts. After the Saturday night fire, Gary and I were invited to supper in the Lodge. One could almost cut with a knife the tradition in the building, particularly as to who sat where. I clearly recall that “Kenno” Kennedy, then Warden of Gilwell, was rather put out to find that a very senior commissioner had not warmed the teapot before the tea was made53. He made his feelings known. Strange memories can lodge in the brain at times. I could continue to look forward to a busy year in 1962 in a number of fields, but having been appointed the battery commander of the CMF unit at Warragul, it was likely to be my last year in the city. I returned to the school camp on the Monday to find everything in order. My trust had been returned. The “patrol” and I returned on the Tuesday. The principles and practices of Scouting were as valid as ever. I would ask myself as to whether our “organisation” was “over-organised” and should Scouting be more accessible with less long-term commitment? 53 It reminded me of the individual who is the boss at work, but may well find the tables turned on arriving home! 60 Chapter 1154 The Campfire Club In 1961 a number of those Scouters leading the Gilwell and other campfires thought that it was time that such leaders received some support and camaraderie and that we should get together to provide this. Hence the idea of a Campfire Club, together with a periodical journal, came to pass. A key person behind this idea was David Hunt, a Scouter with 1st Wesley College (8th Prahran). But in 1962, David had left to teach in the school at RAAF Butterworth in Penang. He had previously recruited me as treasurer. When he left, the onus fell on me to promote the club. With the ensuing publicity that the proposed club was given, subscriptions of ten shillings (one dollar after decimal currency was adopted in 1966) started to roll in. “Kenno” was a school master at Wesley College and was adept as a story teller. As he talked we would have looked into the glowing ashes and our minds would have projected the scenes and atmosphere conjured up by this remarkable man. Back in 1952 I had joined Scouting in part because of regular invitations to the annual endof-year campfire breakup of 15th Malvern. Maybe the songs brought out the romance in me as well. From my early days in the movement I was prepared to lead songs at the troop’s campfires at Gilwell Park. This was also true of the same Scout woodbadge course, where another leader and I led quite a few of the songs when “Kenno” had finished his nightly yarn. The Victorian Club proposed to affiliate with the UK Campfire Club if possible. I think initially, we would receive the UK magazine for our subscription but it was soon obvious that we would produce our own, but at the same time remain affiliated. B-P and campfires Campfires had always been an integral part of Scouting. Our Founder’s handbook, Scouting for Boys, is divided into “campfire yarns.” In this and other books by B-P there are many drawings showing him using the campfire as a means of enthusing future leaders. The campfire “circle” was equally important as the setting for the training courses that he and his successors have conducted. The “Mudboree” As a result of this, I was invited by “Narse” Lesser, also of the Wesley College teaching staff, to be a member of the campfire team that he was building up for the jamboree at Clifford Park at the end of 1955. During that event Victoria experienced day after day of tropical rains, which gave the name “mudboree” to the event. This meant that many of our fires were conducted in the rain; yet our spirits were not dampened. Here we were – leaders and Scouts alike, arrayed in ground sheets -- singing our lungs out, while desperate attempts were continually being made to keep the campfire burning in the damp conditions. I recall very clearly on my woodbadge course in 1955 sitting enthralled before a fire in the Troop Room while W. D. “Kenno” Kennedy yarned about his meetings with our Founder and his Scouting experiences. 54 Published, Ibid., October 2006, p 30 61 The first The Campfire The first copy of The Campfire, the journal of the club, came out in October, 1962. Chairman of the club was Charles Cordell, a very familiar figure from the Gang Shows. The Secretary was Dr. Donald Spring, of the dental profession. In his will Donald Spring gave substantial sums from his estate both to St. Patrick’s College in Ballarat and also to the Scout Movement. The Spring Lodge at Gilwell, for which the architect was Dudley Wilson, was thus made possible. It has housed Scouters on training courses every since. John Thurman The “guru” of campfire leading in the UK was John Thurman, warden of Gilwell Park, UK, who had, with Rex Hazlewood, written and edited several books on the subject, such as The Gilwell Campfire Book (1st and 2nd) and The Campfire Leader’s Book. Songs and song books As with so much else in Scouting that we had inherited through being predominantly of British stock, so it was with the songs that were used at campfires. Fortunately there was no shortage of song books. The Australian Boy Scouts Song Book, was readily available in scout shops and, with its various editions, contained both English, international and Australian songs. The editor for the journal was Vic McGowan, who was a very active training leader. “Bus” Derrick offered to accept any matters that came to Headquarters, where he was the training commissioner. So Vol. 1. No. 1. hit the news stands! In an editorial Don Spring explained that there had been one previous magazine, but little else had taken place since subscriptions had first been collected. He reported that on Thursday, 13th September, some eight members met and elected the officers as indicated above. Charles Cordell in traditional camp fire blanket leading at a camp fire course clearly using the Scout Song Book The journal was to include articles on campfire leading and also to have the words and music (where possible) of songs that leaders might use. By early 1963, the club had over sixty members. But the hallmark song book was the Hackney one, developed by the leaders and members of the Hackney scout district in London. It was the “acme” of books and was all but treated with reverence. 62 Song books were prepared for each jamboree. While these books led to most scouts having the same copy at a jamboree, it also meant that there was no one song book upon which leaders could rely. On the other hand, it is almost impossible to read from a book at a campfire, even by torchlight, and the songster should have been taught to learn the words of songs to be sung in troop meetings. “Recce” Deryck Mornement, SM of 15th Malvern, had not forgotten that I owned an Austin van. He soon recruited me to provide transport for his patrol leaders to find campsites in the north-east of Victoria. Having loaded up one Friday night, we set off. This is easier said than done. The result has been that leaders have had to rely on action songs and songs with only a verse or two. Much of the rich heritage of a bygone era has “gone the way of all flesh”! AGM On the Friday night we camped in the Strathbogie Ranges, presumably at the Seven Creeks site. On the Saturday, our route was via Wangaratta to Bright and on to the Kiewa Valley, returning that night to Bright. On the Sunday, we drove through the King River Valley to Whitfield and on to Myrtleford. The Monday route included Alexandra and Eildon before returning to Melbourne on the eve of the next term of schooling for all concerned. Shortly after this, Deryck left for England. The Pack and the Troop in 1962. The lady cub leader on the right is Barbara McGuinness, Graham’s elder sister Pioneer Course Somehow I managed to fit in half a weekend to help Harold Nathan of 3rd St. Kilda, with the St. Kilda District annual Pioneer Badge course, but I excused myself to attend a CMF army parade on the Sunday. I always seemed to have too many irons in the fire, as it were. On 11th May, 6th St. Kilda Group had a successful AGM. There are always great benefits from a well prepared and conducted meeting of parents with displays of scout work. Such meetings often lead to the most unlikely adult volunteers, who become great committee members or section leaders. Investitures and hand over I invested Barry Wilson and Warwick Lindsay into the 6th St. Kilda Rover Crew, wearing my Rover Leader hat so to do. Early in December, I was able to hand the leadership of the group to Mr. Collis, with two of the Rovers, Alan 63 Butcher and Tom Kenney, offering to be leaders. Rover Dinner and games cup On 10th December, the Crew attended the Rover Dinner in Union House at The University of Melbourne to receive the games cup that the Crew had won that year. Our booking was made very late in the peace, almost too late, and we were the butt of many jokes or comments as a result. However, “Narse” Lesser gave me the opportunity to speak in reply and I think I evened up the scores! Dr. Philip Law spoke on survival and there was a film on the X15 fighter plane. “SM” “Tops” Oldham farewells the “scout” adult leaders on their overnight journey from the Hoadley Hall training ground at the 75th Scout Wood Badge, January, 1963. L to R: Jack Maver, Ernie Hall, Dick Milne, “Tops,” and “Bus” Derrick I would make the daily QM trip into Gembrook with Tom Murfett. I was not over-worked, but of course was involved with the campfires. Other campfire leaders were Ian Adams, Graham Pope, Kees Klep and Heather de Longville. With my impending teaching move to Warragul in 1963, it was unlikely that I would continue as an active Rover Leader. It had been a very interesting four years to have worked with this mature section of the movement. QM on Woodbadge course Just after Boxing Day, 1962, I set off for Gilwell Park, where I was to be the QM on the 75th Woodbadge course. Ernie Hall was the TL. “Tops” Oldham was “scoutmaster” for the course, and he had “Bus” Derrick as one of his assistants. Mrs. Murfett prepared our meals in the Lodge, but the leaders handled the washing up. There was a Cub course running parallel with the Scout one. Pioneering day at the wood badge course or “Mucking about on rafts”! As a “Pom” I was delighted that Keith Miller’s prediction in the Sun newspaper came to pass. This was that England would win the second cricket test that was about to be played at the MCG. His crystal ball held true. 64 A typical time-honoured stunt on a wood badge course was to blindfold the patrol and ask them to erect a hike tent. The background story assumed that it was a pitchblack night and they needed to get some sleep! The annual Gilwell Reunion took place as usual, but heavy rain dampened Monday’s working bee. What of the future? It was a good note on which to conclude this part of my scouting life. I was to join the teaching staff of Warragul High School and be the battery commander of the local CMF artillery battery. But of my future scouting activities I had no idea as to what lay in store. I was to be pleasantly surprised. 65 Chapter 1255 Will you be our Scout leader? Will you be our Senior Scout Leader? I was made the form teacher for what would be now a Year 10 class. Having instilled a degree of classroom discipline into this group, I was then surprised, and perhaps pleased, to be approached at the end of a lesson by two members of the class and asked as to whether I would lead the senior scouts in Warragul! These two enterprising lads were Ian Hastings and Ian Thomson. At the start of the school year in 1963 I moved to Warragul in Gippsland to teach at the Warragul High School. For much of the previous year I had been travelling to Warragul as I was already the battery commander of its Citizen Military Force (CMF) artillery battery. I had been fortunate to get a transfer from Princes Hill High School. It would save a lot of time and energy traveling. This of course was how B-P considered that scout troops should operate, ie., the adult asked by the boys themselves56. I do not recall my answer, but at that stage of the year I had other pressing priorities. Besides I was at last experiencing a serious romantic friendship, one that had commenced at the recent Gilwell Reunion! In 1963 Warragul was an important centre in Gippsland. It is even more so now. Once it had been the junction for the Noojee branch line. But the through train line had been upgraded with a second track and electrification to carry the briquettes from the open mine at Yallourn and to service the nearby power stations. The situation The highway had not yet been duplicated to its present (almost) freeway status. The technical and high schools were located back-to-back. The town boasted two local papers. There were two scout groups, 1st and 2nd Warragul, with a couple in outlying districts, such as 1st Nilma North – Lillico. Warragul, as with nearby Drouin, was in the Tarago Scout District. The scout district stretched back some distance down the highway towards Melbourne. The DC, Mr. Bill Parish, was an orchardist. He lived in Garfield and was famous for his apples. A District Senior Scout Leader, Kent Wilson, supported Bill Parish. But there were no senior scout leaders with the groups, with the result that Scouts turning 15 had very few options if they wanted to continue with Scouting. But they could become Cub Instructors and serve that way. I arrive The Anglican vicar of St. Paul’s Warragul arranged accommodation for me with Mrs. Walker in Sutton Street. Further, this good man placed an article in the local papers welcoming me to the town. But he also added that I would have no time for Scouting! Little did he know me! The problem If I was to offer some of my time, and commonsense was telling me not to, I realised that I could not accept a warrant with 1st Warragul without upsetting 2nd Warragul or vice versa. Besides, 1st Nilma North-Lillico had no wish to be excluded. Small townships had The two government secondary schools had a joint cadet unit and I joined that. But I did not want to make the mistake of my first school in 1956 when I failed to first establish classroom discipline 56 55 This was the second occasion that this had occurred for I had been similarly approached when I arrived in England in 1966 by 8th Cheam Senior Scouts Published, Ibid., November 2006, p 30 66 retain their group scarves and their groups would have their first allegiance. enough battles to face without all the resources going to the bigger centres. Meetings I also knew that I did not have the time to commit myself to a regular weekly night meeting. Was it feasible to imagine that the boys need only meet when there was a specific reason so to do? I was the bookstall teacher at the high school. As such I had an office in the boys’ corridor, from which I sold books, pens &c each morning. With the technical school within a stone’s throw, I could thus contact the entire troop without any trouble or delay. The UK handbook for Senior Scout Leaders Testing the water A solution Having discussed the situation with the DC, the DSSL and the two GSMs, I decided that I was in a position to provide some leadership on the basis that any Scout over fifteen could join, irrespective of his home group. Groups have always been jealous of their own identity. Training course leaders continually preached “the whole group” on courses. Was there room for training of senior scouts on a district basis? There was the well-held fear that if their Scouts trained with “someone else,” they might be lost to that group. I had no intention of imposing my authoritarian style on potential senior scouts. Instead I put out a circular inviting them to find their way to Crossover, on Saturday, 16th March, a piece of open ground on the former Noojee railway line. With my Austin van, I could transport up to ten boys and I stated the time that I would leave 1st Warragul’s scout hall on the day in question. The then General Secretary, Colonel E. R. E. Black, pointed out that in Policy, Organization and Rules, the then rule book, there was provision for what was being suggested. Rule 7/98 in those days read, “(1) Senior Scouts in a D.A. [District Association] may meet together as desired for training or other activities, but such a combination may not be registered as a D.A. Senior Troop. (2) Such activities will be stimulated and co-ordinated by the D.C., D.S.S.L., or such other experienced Scouter as the D.C. may appoint for the purpose.” Thus, without making any commitment, I started to explore the concept of district “training” for the Warragul district senior scouts. The boys would remain and be registered by their own groups. They would The open ground underneath the road bridge which was known geographically as “Crossover.” 67 By now I was receiving every help and encouragement from Mr. and Mrs. “Bon” Hardie. “Bon” conducted a paint store. A supermarket now stands where the Hardie house was. “Bon” showed me with great pride the group’s log book. But that leads to a later story. The list was endless and most of these tasks took the minimum preparation on my part. I was also sufficiently self-confident to do this without any other adult help, something that I would never recommend when later in my career I would be leading training courses! The road that “crossed over” the now disused railway line. Both these pictures were taken in the middle ‘80’s Hinkler patrol: Ron Brooks, Alan Hoskins, George Hendrikse and Gordon Letts The first day’s program How it turned out Whether such a program would work in 2010 I do not know, but I had experienced some success with the setting up of a number of scout challenges which would be undertaken by patrols in competition. At Crossover57, I explained what might be possible and the conditions under which I would provide some leadership. Patrol leaders were elected and temporary patrols sorted out. Leichardt patrol at the Crossover “try-out” day. L to R: Wayne Hardie, Ian Hastings, Rodney Saunders, Ian Jackson and Ian Thomson Sturt patrol: Colin Walker, Steven Milsted, Geoff Marriott, Graeme Haycroft, Ian Snape and Alan Penfold Several other scouts came out by bike. Both lunch and tea were eaten at the site, to be followed by a campfire, before returning to Warragul. The East Tarago Senior Scout Troop was on its way to being born. The word, “East,” was necessary as Drouin and Garfield were These could consist of the hardy annuals, such as lighting a fire to burn through a piece of string tied between two trees at a height of say, a metre. There was always the one where the patrol was required to get all its members above the ground to a height of at least three metres as a flood was pending. While in the tree, they would have to boil a billy. 57 The twenty-first reunion in 1993 was held in part at the Crossover site 68 ETSST, and later the ETVU, would become quite famous through their achievements over the years, and not just in winning “A” grade pennants in the Hoadley Hide. groups to the “west,” which already had active senior scout sections. With the revisions to scouting in later years, the title “Senior Scout” gave way to “Venturer.” The East Tarago troop/unit was to have an incredible history before it finally went out of existence some forty years later. Membership The interim patrols were: Sturt Patrol -- Ian Snape, Graeme Haycroft, Colin Walker, Geoff Mariott, Alan Penfold and Stephen Milsted; Hinkler Patrol – Ron Brooks, Alan Hoskins, George Hendrikse, Gordon Letts and Ian McCann; Leichardt Patrol – Ian Hastings, Ian Thomson, Rodney Saunders, Wayne Hardie and Ian Jackson. Office bearers as elected were: Secretary, Wayne Hardie; Treasurer, Graeme Haycroft; and QM, Rodney Saunders. The local papers were glad to print the story of the first activity, which gave the troop further publicity and legitimacy within the community. Future activities Up until this time, my association with senior scouts had been mainly through the Lansdowne Jamboree, but I did understand the importance of the Queen’s Scout badge. The Hoadley Hide seemed to be very important in this section, as well as the supporting ventures such as the Armstrong 500 and The Melbourne Gathering. Later senior troops with which I was associated concentrated on hiking and canoeing, but it was likely with the existence of the Austin van, that the ETSST would take part in “wheeled” expeditions, possible inter-state in some cases. But I also realised that this group of young men, that sought to continue with their scouting, were coming from a fairly inexperienced background when it came to competing with some of the city groups. This was not through any fault of their own, but because of “the tyranny of distance” and the lack of experienced leadership. The 69 Chapter 1358 The 1963 Monte Carlo Hoadley Hide But first… While the local Warragul papers had willingly printed my reports of the successful formation of the East Tarago Senior Scout Troop (ETSST), I was only too well aware that amongst the potential members there would be a wide range in their scout training, and ethical matters such as language and loyalty. My fears were confirmed when we had our first hike a fortnight later in the Tanjil Bren area following the day at Crossover. It did not help that it rained most of Saturday. We were glad to find some Forestry Commission huts that night in which to sleep. But there was little hike discipline, and one lad handled the (English) language very carelessly! On the other hand I found that I had some excellent leaders among the troop and I felt confident that their example would in due course win the day. The Hinkler patrol at the start of the 1963 Hoadley Hide: L to R: Colin Walker, Graeme Haycroft, Steven Milsted and Ian Snape. The backs of the assessors are in the foreground. Now at least they are in uniform! The Headquarters’ Commissioner for Senior Scouts in 1963 was the enthusiastic, capable and personable Bob Swinton. No one could help but cheerfully follow in his wake. Few senior scouts of the time could have been other than thoroughly impressed by Bob’s attitude and life style. Hoadley Hide I knew enough about “senior scouting” to know that the annual Hoadley Hide competition at Easter was specifically conducted for this section. In those days, the metropolitan areas59 established base camps. They would then be responsible for setting up a number of challenging stunts in their area. But the participating patrols did not camp overnight in these base camps, but away in the bush and forest where they could select their own sites. A check of gear is carried out on another Warragul patrol. The site is the Yarra Junction railway station. Bob Barrow (in bearskin hat) is on the right It was when some of these selected sites were so poorly respected – whether the bush or huts – that the leaders in charge of the Hide commenced the policy of requiring the participants to camp overnight in central areas – the “VOCs” as they became known. As signalling had been a stumbling block to the passing of the First Class badge, so was the log book that each Hide patrol had to submit at the end of the weekend’s challenges. Often the award of the Hide depended on the quality of the patrol’s log book. That requirement has gone the way of all flesh! 58 Published, Ibid., February 2007, p 26 In 1952, the current regions were known as “counties.” They then became areas before a further change to the contemporary “regions” 59 70 Six hundred and fifty senior scouts took part in 1963. As they came off the train, the patrols had to pass through a “Customs Point,” and a check of passports and equipment; a feature that is time-honoured in the Hide. “Contraband,” in the form of tinned food, was identified. Gilwell Park Another patrol is checked: Ian Hastings, Gordon Letts, Ian Thomson and Wayne Hardie. Hats take some punishment Once I had seen my lads safely on their way, I drove back to Gilwell Park, where I camped with 15th Malvern, a troop of which I had a year or so back been their Scoutmaster. I again assisted at the main campfires. Monte Carlo theme In less than a month after the troop’s formation, two patrols were entered for the 1963 Hoadley Hide, the theme for which was the Monte Carlo car race. The “crews” (patrols) of the rally cars would have to cover up to sixty-five kilometres during the Easter weekend if they were to attempt all the challenges. But first they had to submit a passport photograph. I took this one morning at recess at the high school. Returning to the Hide area on Easter Sunday, I noted that Scouters on the Hide staff were very overworked. They badly needed a support team to handle matters such as their meals and accommodation. These “assessors” would be out all day and then have to come home at night and on the last night mark log books. It was hardly a relaxing Easter for them. To indicate my respect for Easter and spiritual observances, I had arranged with the Warragul Anglican vicar that the scouts would attend an early morning Good Friday service before being driven in my van to Yarra Junction. At Yarra Junction we awaited the diesel-hauled train to come from Melbourne with the metropolitan and other senior scouts. The line to Warburton was open in those days. It is now a rail trail. The weather was fine for the weekend, but very frosty at night, resulting in the hike tents appearing to be able to stand by themselves even when the poles and pegs had been removed at daybreak The ETSST patrols did not win top pennants, but they had “taken part,” and learnt at first hand what would be involved in obtaining an “A” grade pennant. This expertise was slowly built up. In the years to come the ETSST (or the ETVU) would be known throughout the senior scout section for its regular success with “A” grade pennants in the Hoadley Hide. The “Country boy” In preparing these articles, I have shared them with some of the former members of the senior scout troop. One of them, now a forestry officer, commented, “In hindsight, some of us were probably quite inexperienced in some aspects of life. Branch Commissioner for Senior Scouts, Bob Swinton, addresses the final parade where the gradings for the Hoadley Hide are announced and A-grade pennants presented. In those days the Easter event attracted 800 +. 71 activity, it did not matter if two-thirds of the troop members were absent. And at times, small numbers were better, particularly if transport and equipment were limited. “But on the other hand, some of us were ‘country boys,’ with fathers and families from farms or the bush and we had been exposed to a good balance of independence and adventure with parents and a wide circle of family and friends who kept a watchful eye over us. So, I think this was the other “experience” which helped bind us together.” Basketball This was a very popular sport. As it happened the army training depôt, at which I was the officer commanding the CMF unit concerned, was used several nights each week by citizen Warragul teams. It was not a problem then to permit the senior scouts to use it occasionally for the same purpose. The steel trusses of the roof were also to prove very useful for hanging out tentage to dry. The Secret of Seniors I applied the same principle to meetings that I had with the 6th St. Kilda Rover Crew. That is, the crew only met when there was a reason for meeting. As the Warragul senior scouts were mostly in the senior forms at their schools they also had to budget their time wisely. Equipment support Besides, with the high and technical schools situated “back-to-back,” communication with them all on any day of the week was relatively easy. In a similar way, the scouts saw each other out of hours in the township. Perhaps it is the same today, but country town children have a greater range of activities from which to choose. All troops face the problem of having sufficient and appropriate equipment for activities and at the same time having somewhere secure to store it. The 1st Warragul scout hall had been “romantically” built from Mt. Gambier limestone, but its storage space was damp and the doors hardly secure. To run the troop successfully, so that the members could readily achieve a wide range of goals, meant that the program had to be orientated to the themes of the Queen Scout badge preparation on one hand and to adventure and fun on the other. That is not to say that social and spiritual pursuits were excluded under either heading. Fortunately Mr. and Mrs. Hardie were very supportive. Granted that they had several sons who were benefiting from scout membership, they provided space in the lofts of the stables at the rear of their homestead home and took a close interest in the development of 1st Warragul.60 A hawser, suitable for the “foot” section of a rope bridge, was part of the inheritance. However, it was some one hundred and fifty metres long. I clearly recall laying it out on the floor of the army depôt and cutting it into three fifty-metre lengths with the nagging fear that these lengths might prove to be too short. I had made it clear that I could not offer, say, every Friday night. But then that was what the lads wanted – they did not have a night a week to spend at a troop meeting if they were not achieving something out of it. They would meet when there was a reason so to do. In similar fashion, it was necessary to supplement the equipment with such items as a Numbers I also realised that the size of the troop was important, in that rarely could every member take part in the scheduled activity. Providing that there were sufficient takers for the specific 60 As Warragul’s population grew, the Hardie home site became very valuable. Within a year or two a supermarket would be built in its place. It is hard to imagine that there was once a house with stables at its rear 72 “block and tackle.” But there were farm supply stores in the town and I acquired the necessary three and two-sheave blocks. In the three years that I was in Warragul, this log book was soon filled up and its successor had to be purchased. I understand that subsequent log books62 for the East Tarago Venture Unit have all been faithfully entered up with print, names and photographs and that they have been preserved. It was also necessary to purchase sisal rope in some quantity and then encourage the unit members to help in cutting it to length and “sailor-maker” whip their ends61. I have always loathed lashings with either a back or eye splice at their ends. They were often very difficult to undo if they became wet. Ethical and other issues As the group of senior scouts came to develop their own ethos and camaraderie, I knew it was only a matter of time before some issues would have to be faced. One of these was that several members openly smoked on activities. How that was resolved at their own decision will be a matter for a future chapter. Robin Hood This park is now all but by-passed by the new freeway, but late in June, 1963, it was a good location for a day of challenges. The section members were required to erect a commando bridge, following which the party moved to a quarry in the Labertouche area for further stunts. Log books I had hardly mentioned my scouting background before Mr. “Bon” Hardie proudly showed me the 1st Warragul log book. This was a “Kalamazoo” heavy-duty-cover “book,” with a spanner to unwind the spine in order to insert or remove sheets. It would not have been easy to lose it! “Bon” lovingly turned page after page, showing me photographs of former scouts and other articles of historical value. But I immediately noticed that while “Bon” seemed to know the names by heart, very few were recorded under the photographs, nor were dates or locations consistently given. It was obvious to me that the task of being the Senior Scout Leader would also include keeping the log book up to date. In addition, I would be sitting down with “Bon” and carefully recording all that his memory could provide and make sure that this information was clearly recorded. 61 Ropes now tend to be of a synthetic nature. Measurements have changed since 1963. Lashings were best if they were of one-inch circumference and some twelve feet (four metres) in length 62 73 Three in number for its forty years existence Chapter 1463 enjoy your scouting. In return you will need to cooperate in matters such as attendance, morality, uniform and loyalty, if you want me to offer that spare time and interest." Relationships and Expeditions The older boy But except in cases of potentially life threatening situations, this age group did not wish to be told what to do or who they would have as their peer leaders. No wonder the movement has great difficulty getting enough leaders at the Venturer Scout level. Over the years I have slowly developed patterns of effective leadership. Much of this was trial and error, but hopefully my teacher training helped. As a school boy I was not “sporty,” and would have been termed “a swot.” Nowadays, the term would have been “a nerd.” Then in the senior forms of the school, where the rôle of the prefect was developed, I found that I could lead. Smoking The first “clash” was to be concerned with the right of some of the senior scouts to smoke. I have never smoked and had previously enforced a no-smoking policy. This was in the days of “It will stunt your growth” rather than in the scientific proof of lung cancer and damage to arteries65. Of course, a prefect is backed up with the headmaster’s authority, which is not strictly “leadership.” I was also a senior NCO in the Air Training Corps, and that authority carried even greater meaning. Hence when I became a scout master, I had to develop a completely new approach. As I have already mentioned in previous articles, one balanced up the voluntary enthusiasm of the scouts to take part in the program with the need to be directive, caring and, in the last instance, to act in loco parentis. At least three members of this Warragul senior scout troops had their parents’ permission to smoke! So I entered into an agreement with them. They could continue to smoke on scout activities providing that they stopped anyone else from taking up the habit. I do not know what led me to make this deal, but it worked! When these three had left the troop at their age of 18, I was able to lead a “smoke-free” unit without further incident. Successive teaching experiences ranging from having virtually no class discipline at one stage in my first year of teaching, to being the main disciplinarian at my second, as well as being a boarding master at a private school, to say nothing of rising in the commissioned ranks of the CMF64, led to me evolving a pattern of command and leadership that was effective for each situation. Uniform I had already worked with the 15 to 18 age group at a jamboree, but I had little preparation for my task now as the leader at this age level of healthy rural teenagers! I could write pages about this topic. As uniform is so visible it also becomes emotional. The scout uniform, with its origins dating back to our Founder and the South African Constabulary, had by 1963, become less appropriate in the eyes of those who had to wear it. The material was now too thin to be warm enough other than in summer. The shirt had Initially it was a “wheel and deal” relationship. It would go as: “I have considerable scouting knowledge and experience. I may have some spare time to assist you older boys to continue to 65 I have recently had a pacemaker fitted. The cardiologist following my angiogram remarked on how good my arteries were and he linked this directly to the fact that I had never smoked 63 Published, Ibid., March 2007, p 28 64 Citizen Military Forces, now known as the Army Reserve 74 become festooned in badges and was no longer robust enough for some scouting activities. members waded out, but found the depth too much. I found that the most workable solution was to regard the “shorts, short-sleeved shirt and fourdented hat” as the “dress” uniform and that for other activities they could bring along appropriate clothes. The dress uniform would often be carried to meetings on a clothes hanger draped in plastic just as though it had come from the dry cleaners. Then I spotted the lad who was regarded as the leader of the troop strip right off and enter into the task without any inhibitions! His example was soon followed by others! I placed a “sentry” at the entrance to the park to warn any inquisitive members of the public, and in the meantime the drum was successfully recovered. My diary records the words: “The troop finds itself!” Before any activity, a circular needed to specify the preferred garb. And when shorts were worn, this was in the days when they had to be turned up about two centimeters at the hem – very short shorts! Hair length I might leave this topic to a later chapter and a particular incident that brought home to me how important this aspect was to some of the senior scouts in our combined troop. Scarves I stuck to the spirit of PO&R Rule 7/98 and never sought to introduce a common scarf for the district senior scout troop. Members were expected to wear their group scarves. They were thus quite colourful when “on parade.” The members always wanted a scarf just for the troop, but they had to wait until I left the district at the end of 1965. Investitures By early August, the troop was sufficiently in being for those members, not already invested as senior scouts in their groups, to be so invested. This event took place at the end of the normal 1st Warragul troop meeting. “Bonding” Ian Snape, Ron Brooks, Gordon Letts, Bruce and Gary Greening were already senior scouts. Until July, the troop members had not necessarily demonstrated much unity. But on Saturday, 20th of that month, I programmed a day that included activities at both Crossover and at the Glen Cromie Park north of Warragul. Ian Hastings, Rodney Saunders, Ian Thomson, Wayne Hardie, Jack Soutar, George Hendrikse, Graeme Haycroft, Steven Milsted and Colin Walker were thus invested. When we arrived at the park there was a wooden drum (upon which electric cable had once been wound) in the lake. I may have suggested that we might do a good turn and remove it. This proved to be a challenge and one by one the As I was dealing with three (and later four) home groups, I had to be careful to make sure that all appropriate group personnel were 75 It then, providentially, came on to rain! I had been vindicated and was regarded as being clairvoyant. invited. Sometimes, I failed in this regard. This was part of the penalty of us being a “troop” that was only permitted on the grounds of “centralised district training.” Route Further, our numbers meant that when the troop did attend a group function, then we were a sizeable lot, both numerically and across the shoulders! I suppose the presence of a dozen or more mature and physically large scouts could be intimidating, but at least we demonstrated that there was “life in Scouting after the age of fifteen.” Our tour took us via Lakes Entrance, Orbost and then Cann River before we camped the first night at Mallacoota. The next day we crossed into New South Wales and headed up the coast via Eden to Bega. Our camp site that night was Cooma. On the third day, a party stayed to fish and others went on a day trip to Canberra to see the War Memorial and Royal Military College, Duntroon. Sunday, as would be my general approach on trips, was the opportunity for the scouts to attend their appropriate church service. Before the day was out, we experienced a cloud burst and thunderstorm. September Expedition The existence of the Austin van encouraged “expeditions” or “car tours” as the basis of the troop’s vacation activities. The plan was to head for New South Wales via Orbost and Cann River, with a view to visiting Cooma and Canberra. It was home to Warragul the next day. The lads worked as a team to clean out the van, return the stores and all be home for their evening meals. It had been another case of the troop “finding itself.” The Austin would take eight “adults” comfortably, with their gear in specially designed boxes. A friend, Don Butler, would have four senior scouts also in an accompanying car. In reviewing the logistics of the trip, we learned that cut lunches were ideal but should be prepared by the duty patrol at the same time as breakfast, minimizing the time taken up for lunch. “Pigs would have been offended” Leaving on the 4th September, our first stop was for lunch at Stratford. Somehow I had found space in the van for a trestle table. The foodstuffs were laid out – loaves, butter, jam &c – and then lunch commenced. I was shocked at the table manners and standards that the seniors showed. I know I “did my block.” Hiking There would still be plenty of opportunities to hike, especially in preparation for both the Hoadley Hide each year and for Queen’s Scout badges. Perhaps on the same day I had asked that the auto or square tent be erected to make sure that we all knew how to do it. I nearly had a riot on my hands, but faced with the threat that I would turn round and drive back to Warragul, the members reluctantly and sullenly put up the tent. 76 Chapter 1566 I invited Ken Robinson of 6th St. Kilda to assist me and the scouts of 1st Warragul to handle the cooking. It would count towards their Cook’s badge, which would eventually be awarded the following year. “An Element of Danger” The Queen’s Scout badge While this badge held much the same place in the movement as it does today, the requirements were somewhat differently expressed. The requirement in badge terms was for the applicant to hold the Bushman’s Thong, together with four senior scout public service badges (of which the Ambulance badge was obligatory) and two other badges. The ‘thong’ was a leather lanyard worn on the right shoulder. To hold it, the Senior Scout must have completed the First Class badge, the Venturer badge and two other senior scout badges. Senior Scouts in the making. Warragul scouts act as cooks on the pioneering course with a view to them receiving their Cook’s badge: Don Hastings, Barry Poole, Peter Nobelius and Randall Cadby. Note the sensible camp shirts that the boys were encouraged to wear It was still a very substantial challenge, although the content of some badges ran parallel to Year 11 school curricula. But it did mean that the Ambulance and the Pioneer badges needed to taken very seriously and conducted on a district basis perhaps once a year. Despite the stock of pulleys and ropes that the ETTST began to own, there was still a need to borrow additional items from the contributing scout groups in Warragul. But they were good weekends with plenty of challenges. The older boys could look after themselves quite adequately. Pioneering course In late September and early October, a twoweekend pioneering course was held at the John Maughan campsite at Mirboo North. This was the campsite that I had helped five years earlier to help construct. It was getting good use, but it could use more. ‘An element of danger’ The ETSST members developed expertise in two constructions, namely the commando bridge and the flying fox. While the latter was relatively short in its downward slope, it gathered its own myth with having ever-greater lengths and steepness. Naturally, the last few metres had to cross a river seething with sharptoothed piranha fish. On the weekend concerned (20/22 September 1963) the commando bridge was soon constructed to a good and useable standard. But then when some seniors were in the centre of the bridge, certain members loosened the tension and this left them swinging somewhat out of control in the “gorge” of blackened stumps below. Flag break on the pioneering course at Mirboo North 66 Published Ibid., April 2007, p 28 77 Similarly I found increasing support from the lads’ fathers, who clearly wished to be involved in their upbringing in these more masculine activities. This would lead to “father and son” camps. District rally Readers of this column will have noted that I am not overenthusiastic about district events, but not to appear at them would appear to be truculent. On this day (1st November) I managed to rustle up two patrols from the seniors to take part. In the results them came first and last respectively. Once again, the local papers were very happy to print my reports on these functions, together with some of my amateur photographs. Steven Milsted descends the “flying fox” over the maneating fish-filled gorge at the John Maughan camp site. The motto was the longer and the steeper the better! Otherwise there would be no “element of danger”! From that time on, no ETSST pioneering construction could be built without it including “an element of danger,” even though such elements were never life or limb threatening. Rather it reflected the exuberance and derringdo of adolescence. Groups At this stage the membership of ETSST was restricted to 1st and 2nd Warragul and 1st Nilma North – Lillico. 2nd Warragul was a very active group and had been formed out of waiting lists from 1st Warragul. Its GSM, Tony Holland, had enthused his parent committee to build a modern functional scout hall. Tony would be very active with ETSST over the next year or two. The scouts from 1st Warragul who handled the cooking included: Barry Poole, Don Hastings, Peter Nobelius, Randell Cadby, Cliff Dent67, Tony Macafee and Neil Hardie. Leadership Adelaide On training courses that I would later be conducting, I would always emphasize the need for adequate adult leadership. A troop needs four certificated (warranted) adults, a senior troop at the minimum two, ideally four but you could get away with three. Running any of the sections could and can be very demanding and there needs to be a system of support and reserves. The end-of-year expedition was to Adelaide. Seven of the ETSST members elected to go, including, Ian Hastings, Graeme Haycroft, Ian Jackson, Jon Soutar, Ron Brooks, Wayne Hardie and Colin Walker. Applying through the correct scouting channels, the 1st Locksley Scout Group in Adelaide made us very welcome in the use of their scout hall. But no one had come forward to help me at this stage but I appeared to have the health and stamina to handle my various professional and part-time rôles. On the other hand, I had some very capable adults upon whom I could call. Many of September’s lessons had been well learnt and the party “gelled” from the start. Ian was troop leader. The remainder of the party easily split two-ways. To collect rubbish in the van, I had installed a tray, marked “Smokers Please.” I had to 67 Cliff is currently Branch Commissioner for Venturer Scouts and a Leader Trainer 78 intended for another customer. But the chap assured me he could get another one in time to satisfy his other client. We drove on to Adelaide with bits of glass still in every nook and cranny in the front driving seat of the vehicle. convince a couple that it was not necessarily for its stated purpose ! But these interstate trips were starting to take their toll on the six-year-old van and the generator light went on as we neared Adelaide. This necessitated a re-wiring of the coil, but again we were soon mobile again. The ubiquitous Austin van and its precious load on the way to Adelaide: Colin Walker, Ron Brooks, Ian Jackson, Graeme Haycroft, Ian Hastings, Wayne Hardie and Jon Soutar. The “Adelaide or bus” banner was removed after the front windscreen was broken by a stone! When these mechanical or other breakdowns occurred, I would be reminded of the rules in board games, such as “Lose a day or throw a six”! I note that I covered 286 miles (457 kilometres) in what my diary describes as an “afternoon’s drive” between Mt. Gambier and Adelaide. I would never have the energy or youthfulness to do it today. The coast The sixteen-day trip followed the coastal route with two nights at Eumeralla Scout Camp, Anglesea, and then two days along the Lorne – Cape Otway – Port Campbell – Warrnambool coast. South Australia From the scout hall in Adelaide, the party made visits to Port Adelaide, the Woodside scout camp, Goolwa and Victor Harbour as well as to Port Wakefield. The return trip to Warragul was via Renmark – Mildura – Wood Wood – Bendigo – Gisborne and home to Warragul; some two thousand miles (3,200 kilometres) in all. As we gathered at the Hardie home to commence the trip I spotted that someone had prepared a large calico sign on the back door of the van, saying something like, “Adelaide or bust”! I was not happy with it but sometimes we cannot be choosers. But when a stone from a passing vehicle near Portland hit the front window and it shattered into a frosty mess the calico sheet came off and stayed off. There is no need to tempt fate! Yet I have a photograph of the van with the sign on the front of it, but perhaps that might have only been for the record. Swimming The weather around the Victorian coast was cooler than expected as the photograph attests. This was in the days when the windscreen would turn to “snow” as it cracked and would continue to do so until visibility was impossible. There was nothing for it but to hammer out all the glass, put on goggles or glasses and some warm clothing and then motor on. Brrr! But it must have been cold in the briny: Colin Walker, Graeme Haycroft, Jon Soutar, Wayne Hardie, Ron Brooks and Ian Jackson Fortunately, the Austin service station in Mt. Gambier had a replacement glass front window 79 But when the party was coming back through Mildura along the River Murray and then through Horsham, the public swimming pools and the river helped everyone to keep as cool as possible. Cars were not air-conditioned in those days, except with all the windows open! Keep Looking for a Bluebird 1. Once I went a-searching for a rainbow, But it vanished from my sight. I looked all over for a four-leafed clover, But I just did not find it right. Far, far away is my lucky load of hay, And so is my old horseshoe, But I’m not giving up, because I know There’s one thing left to do. Costs It is hard to convert the currency of 1963 pounds to 2006 dollars. The charge per head was £12, which, with a donation came to a total of £98, all of which was spent: Transport £30; Food £50; and Other £18 (or about 3:5:2 in very rough terms). Ch. Keep looking for a Bluebird, Though he’s ever sp far away; One of these days I bet a dime You’ll see him in the Springtime. Keep calling to the Bluebird, When he hears you, by and by, You’ll find your Bluebird, Perky as can be, Sitting there shoulder high. The First Year So 1963 had drawn to a close and 1964 had commenced. Some of the earlier invested members had withdrawn from the troop. On the other hand I was well aware that there were quite a few scouts in the various scout troops in the district looking forward to joining us in 1964. Ralph Reader Slowly the ETSST was developing its own character and mode of operation. I still had a lot to learn in how to handle them and, perhaps, they me! There was a jamboree to be held at Dandenong at the end of 1964. My life pattern of education, army reserve, church and scouts was in balance with great experiences in all of them. Life was full and rewarding. 80 Chapter 1668 accommodation with Don Lithgow’s assessor group. My reason for being at Gilwell was to help lead the campfires, which would be held in the campfire hollow69, The Lones’ (Scouts) camp site70, 2nd Hampton site and one in the Malvern District area. The Next Crop – “The Lower Eight” Mt. Baw Baw At the end of February, in fact on Leap Day, I took a group of seniors for a weekend hike to Mt. Baw Baw. I took the opportunity to have meals with the 1st Warragul Troop. This gave me a good opportunity to develop strong links with possible future members for the senior troop. On the Monday of the Easter weekend I drove to Heathcote to recover my senior scouts, to learn that they had upgraded their 1963 pennant from “D” to “C.” Sometimes one undertakes something with a child-like faith that all will be well. Years later, I can still feel my flesh creep as I think of the small margin of safety that I left, in view of the weather, terrain and time. I did have a map but little else as I ground our way up to the Mt. Baw Baw car park in the Austin van. In fair weather, we hiked up toward the summit. This was challenging enough but the map scale was such that we were all but walking blind. Something that I would keep in the back of my mind was that the Hoadley Hide headquarters assessor team appeared to be “whacked” in terms of sleep by the time the hide wound up on the Monday. Feeding and sleeping arrangements seemed to be very much a hit and miss. I would recall this in 1965 when the Hide was staged not far from Warragul with my troop providing the back-up. The weather deteriorated as the day wore on. Rain fell heavily that night. What else would one expect on a hike? On the Sunday we turned tail and sloshed our way down the mountain on a compass bearing over water-sodden grasses to the car park, a warm vehicle and dry clothes. Our guardian angels must have been working overtime! We could have been hopelessly lost in freezing wet conditions. Ambulance Badge Meanwhile “Blue” Wilson of the Warragul District Ambulance Service had agreed to conduct the classes for the Ambulance Badge, the essential one in those days for Queen’s Scout. One of the local lecturers was Dr. Alan McPhate who dealt with the subject of the “birds and the bees.” Cleopatra on the Nile -- 1964 The next event was the Hoadley Hide at Easter, for which the theme was “Cleo” and Antony in Egypt. To put the senior scout patrols on the train at Spencer Street for the Wandong Special required a very early reveille in Warragul. In those days, an organisation offered to schools advice on sexual matters and relationships to the students in the presence of their parents. Separate nights were held – Fathers and Sons, and Mothers and Daughters. These meetings took place in the evenings. I think this was the Hide during which the memorable feature was the Battle of Actium – for which the organisers had been able to obtain crates of rotten tomatoes and bags of flour. Enough said! “Going-up” ceremonies Having safely deposited my charges, I set off for Gilwell Park where I would share 69 Now named after Norman S. Johnson This site catered for “lone” scouts, those lads in rural areas too far to attend scout meetings. The site became the Pack Holiday centre 70 68 Published, Ibid., June 2007, p 30 81 This was the terminology in those days71. 2nd Warragul approached me in regard to their scouts proceeding to the senior section. On May 5th I met Ken Carland, Stuart Burns, Paul Pianta, and Clem Jarvis. I always followed up, or even preceded any such meetings, by visiting the homes of these aspiring seniors and at the same time meet the parents. Naturally the strip of water, which formed quite a lake at that point, lent itself to being crossed by a “flying fox.” The farmer, who had access to the land adjacent to the creeks, was always generous with his permission. On Monday, May 25th, the troop undertook its ambulance badge examinations and attended the Melbourne Gang Show that night. On the 15th May it was 1st Warragul’s turn to offer some recruits. In the presence of the DC (Bill Parish) and the DSSL (Kent Wilson,) Geoff Spencer and Alex Kara were invested along with the 2nd Warragul members. Cliff Dent could not attend that night and an eighth scout, Barry Poole, was also absent. He had recently tried to chop off part of one of his thumbs! In due course both were invested as senior scouts. The lower eight! The eight newly invested senior scouts were encouraged to attend an “orientation” weekend camp at the Malvern District campsite at Officer. All were able to attend and Wayne Hardie came along to assist me. On the same weekend, Ian Hastings and Steven Milsted undertook their thirty-mile72 hike from Robin Hood to the Officer camp. On the Sunday, the seniors packed up and were waiting to get away but the hikers had not shown up. Dusk fell. Finally, torch flashes were spotted and the two arrived to be taken home with us to Warragul. Euroa Not long after that, I took a group of the seniors to a camp site on the banks of the Seven Creeks near Euroa. Another scouting friend, John Ireland, had discovered this spot some years earlier and we had previously taken parties of students from Princes Hill High School to it. It was an idyllic spot with rock pools and patches of water just asking to be utilised. The “lower eight” at their first camp as senior scouts, with Wayne Hardie (top left) as an experienced leader to assist them. L to R Barry Poole, Geoff Spencer, Stuart Burns, Cliff Dent, Clem Jervis, Paul Pianta, with Alex Kara and Ken Carland in foreground. Geoff Spencer, Ken Carland and Ian Jackson hanging from the hawser that formed part of the flying fox over the Seven Creeks camp site near Euroa This weekend gave the eight new senior scouts the opportunity to brush up on their knots, lashings and camping skills, to get confidence in 71 72 As far as I can, I try to use both the terminology used at the time and also the contemporary ones Metrics did not become legal until 1966. Thirty miles would be about forty-eight kilometres 82 themselves and to feel strength in each other’s friendship. They were “equal” but probably felt a little unsure in the presence of their elder senior scouts. In the middle of June there was a hike in the Strzelecki Ranges. I had felt slightly off colour before we set out. I should not have gone. I missed three days of school teaching as a result. This is the drawback of a one-man show! Parents bearing gifts On his retirement in 1963, my father’s office rewarded him and my mother with a nine-month trip back to the UK from which they had come in 1937 for a five-year stint! (Hitler has to take the blame for a lot of things.) This time on the way back to Australia at Aden my father had bought me a 35-mm Voigtlander camera. I could now put away my Box Brownie. In addition, colour film was now becoming relatively cheap. If you are single you do not have much upon which to spend money. I seemed to be either going to or coming from the camera shop. I also received a portable radio, which was soon fitted into the van – but for which I had the controls for the volume in the front seat with me! The tying of a sheer lashing by Paul Pianta, Ken Carland and Geoff Spencer September tour to Halls Gap For some reason I got into the habit of referring to them as the “lower eight,” as against the foundation members from 1963, who were also only about eight in number by now. This appellation was accepted by the troop and expanded in 1965 with the third intake – the “lower” eight becoming the “middle” group. I admit that the existence of the Austin van did encourage “tours” rather than camps or hikes. Eight senior scouts joined me as we headed to Gilwell Park to undertake a working bee at the start of the trip. Jamboree campfires Meanwhile I had been asked to take a leading role in the organisation of the campfires that were planned to take place at the Dandenong Jamboree at the end of 1964. Alec Mitchell was in overall charge, but I drew up the plan for staffing and the places and times of the campfire program. After the rain and mud of the Clifford Park jamboree, I looked forward with some optimism to well conducted campfires and concerts in ideal conditions. A brief pause during the “good turn” at Gilwell Park as the senior scouts help to clear trees on Somers Walk. After all, what are shovels for but to lean upon! 83 The request from the camp warden was for us to fell certain trees along the path from the Somers Gate to the Council Rock near the Lochan. This was like manna from heaven for lusty fifteenplus year-olds. I think we earned our keep. It was then to Halls Gap from which three seniors would undertake their 30-mile hike, but very heavy rain caused me to have to rescue them, although our own conditions back at the camp were far from dry. The Spirit of Senior Scouting: a hat that has seen much service, the group scarf and a Turk’s Head woggle! These trips were in my view “character building” experiences. How many times was I to hear the words, “You can’t make me,” only to find that life is one of wheeling and dealing and the result a compromise? The ‘Leader’ says, “Let’s,” the ‘Boss’ says, “Do it!” Wayne Hardie shares a photograph with Mrs. Wilson, while her husband, George (a senior constable) looks on. Wayne is assisted by Graeme Haycroft, Ian Jackson, Cliff Dent and Ian Hastings Our first Queen’s Scouts The weather improved by the time we got to Daylesford. Here a former scout leader who had been very successful and popular with the 1st Warragul troop, Senior Constable George Wilson, and his wife, extended great hospitality to us. While in the district, the troop also visited the Forestry School at Creswick. Was it this that resulted in the troop leader, Ian Hastings, later entering that college and pursuing a career as a forester? The paper work for our first three Queen Scouts was completed with the cooperation of the District Commissioner, Mr. Parish, who was an orchardist. It was still quite a challenging badge and required a final interview with the DC before the final papers were signed. The badges were presented at a special parent night on September 18th by the DC. The Government House function when the certificates were presented was held on October 10th when ninety guides and four hundred scouts were so honoured. The Warragul Queen’s Scouts were Ron Brooks, Wayne Hardie and Ian Hastings. 84 Ron Brooks Wayne Hardie A tradition then commenced in which the Queen’s Scouts could nominate a film or play that they would wish to see following a light lunch. On this occasion they chose West Side Story, which at the time was all a little too contemporary for my conservative tastes but over the years I have come to enjoy this musical; Romeo and Juliet in a modern setting. The film was followed by 10-pin bowling. Jamboree preparation Meanwhile Victorian Scouting was getting ready for what would prove to be a very successful jamboree. My memories are of green grass, colour and great activities. But that will be for the next chapter. But first the troop experienced a memorable “fathers and sons” weekend camp. Ian Hastings 85 Chapter 1773 alight. But both teams decided they could just as easily win by sabotaging the others’ efforts! Hardly good scouting! Fathers and Sons’ Camp and a forthcoming Jamboree The highlight for the afternoon was the flying fox. I made it clear to the fathers that they were under no obligation to even think of trying to ride down it. Having constructed it and made it safe, the sons demonstrated its use. Then Mr. Vern Haycroft, with the words, “No dad is a piker,” climbed into the flying fox seat and winged his way down the taut rope to come safely to rest when the pulley reach the safety brake at the bottom. The other dads more or less had to follow. Not a challenge I had circularised the “dads” as to whether they would join with their sons for a very voluntary weekend at the Officer Scout Camp. Five “sets” responded positively. Following another jamboree campfire meeting in Melbourne, I proceeded on the Friday night to the camp site. The “volunteers” arrived safely by eleven on the Saturday morning. The current term for such a weekend would be “bonding.” But the fathers seemed to feel that they could hold their own, despite the “sons” boasting about their scouting prowess. Activities Quoting from the joining circular, the activities would include: “cooking of meals, minor scoutcraft competitions (solving codes, following compass routes, problems requiring ingenuity), an evening’s concert/campfire, walks to nearby points and minor pioneering projects (ropes and pulleys).” Fathers and sons compete with each other to build a platform upon which a small fire could be floated across the creek, notwithstanding sabotage by one party or the other. The fathers held their own in most challenges During the weekend Mr. Haycroft and Mr. “Bon” Hardie handled most of the cooking. Mr. Norm Poole was happy to try his hand at anything. Mr. Clem Jarvis (later DC for the district) provided “technical know how.” Mr. Bill Brooks showed that he had learnt to more than adequately swing an axe. I gathered that a good time was had by all. Bill Brooks (Ron), Norm Poole (Barry) and “Bon” Hardie (Wayne) prepare to light a fire to boil a billy of tea After lunch, one of the activities required the two teams to construct a buoyant platform upon which a fire would be lit. It then had to be floated across the stream with the fire still 73 Published, Ibid., July 2007, p 28 86 Social With the memory of the successful scout/guide socials that ran very well in Mirboo North, I endeavoured to repeat one for the guides and scouts of Warragul. But society had moved on. The youth members assured me that they would not attend if they had to wear uniform. So compromises had to be made. Bill Brooks prepares to land on terra ferma after his “element of danger” on the flying fox At the social. Girls lined up down one wall, while the boys play at being “silly devils.” The “Master of Ceremonies” (Tony Holland and Clive Fisher) had their challenges entertaining and directing the young people. In the end it was a success, but I wondered whether it had been worth all the time and energy put into arranging it. It was about this time that dancing, well, dancing as I understood it, became “Non U,” -- a phrase of the day. But Norm Poole nearly comes to a sticky end, watched by other fathers and Cliff Dent Rokeby A number of my seniors accompanied me to this Scout Rally, where we provided staff for the events. District activities, such as these, seem to get mixed support from the groups that could take part. Yet they fulfil a need and people meet up with each other. Public service “Marwarra” was a sheltered home for children in the Warragul district where the senior scouts provided much needed public service. One is reminded of the adage that scouts will do nearly anything for a badge, but I felt that the opportunity to work for those more disadvantaged than themselves was and is always a positive experience. And the boys sit down along the other wall, which suggests that the girls now had their “fling” Tony Holland Tony was the GSM of 2nd Warragul. I had got to know him in that role, but now he came 87 forward to assist me with the running of the seniors in an “advisory” role. He was the accountant for the local bakery, and very capable in all that he undertook. 2nd Warragul, together with its modern scout hall, was an example of this. Tony was a driving force in its construction and was well supported by his wife, Jeanette. more occasions than I might wish to recall, I reverted to being “Ernest Farley’s son”! I am not sure when Dad finished at headquarters but he thoroughly enjoyed the experience. In his youth he had been a member of the Boys’ Brigade rather than a Boy Scout. There were advantages in having someone at the centre of things, but no case of nepotism, corruption or insider advantage could be laid at the feet of either of us! Ernest Farley Much to my surprise and pleasure, my father, Ernest, told me that he had accepted the Chief Commissioner’s (“Bosun” McKellar) invitation to assist at scout branch headquarters. Dad had just returned from his retirement trip to Britain and was apparently at a loose end in terms of employment. Jamboree preparations The Seventh Australian Jamboree was to be held at Dandenong at the end of 1964. All involved hoped that the weather would not bear any similarity to that of the “Mud”boree at Clifford Park, nine years earlier. I was formally advised that I had been selected to lead a senior scout troop at the jamboree. This would comprise members of the Warragul groups, 1st Garfield, 1st and 2nd Hampton. The other scouters would be Tony Holland, Michael Job, Don Casbolt and Geoff Hughes. Senior Scouts (or today’s Venturers) were still eligible then to attend jamborees. Some years later, they were to have their own events, such as the Second Australian Scout Venture at Nunawading in 1969/70. Tony Holland, Fred Cox, Ken Abrecht, Ernest Farley74 Following a meeting of the adult leader team, decisions were taken on a name for the jamboree troop, that a tower would be a feature of the site; and to accept the offer of an enclosed cooking facility. “Bosun’s” original idea was that Ernest would be secretary for the forthcoming jamboree but he suggested in turn that he should replace Mr. Marc Blount, a field commissioner, who would be better at that task. So another “Mr. Farley” joined scouting. He would draft and sign letters as “The Assistant Secretary” to Colonel Eric Black. Of course, he made many other contributions during his period at BHQ. Hamarago-on-the-Hill I had my first sight of our jamboree site on 12th December. It was a well grassed area on a slight slope. It would be ideal for a tower constructed at its highest point. Planning commenced under Tony Holland’s direction. By then father had got used to being known in Scouting as “Graham Farley’s father.” Now on 74 Colour film was now becoming economical and made all the difference, as did “technicolour” to movie films. However, black and white lent itself to shading effects that colour could never match in some cases To give our various home troops a feeling of oneness, a name was needed. This would be 88 were thirty feet long (9 metres). Naturally they were at the bottom of a slope. We sweated as we lugged them uphill and placed them on the tray of the truck. The task was achieved and I reported this back to Tony. used wherever possible. A name tape, suitable for swapping, would also be produced Taking the words “Hampton” and “Tarago” (the scout districts for the participating senior scout troops), someone came up with: “1st Hamaragoon-the-Hill.” Construction With the end of the school year, life was very busy. On a spare Saturday I drove to the jamboree site to find that two of the poles were already in position. Mr. Kent Wilson, a district scouter, was an SEC linesman. He was quite used to being aloft with brace and bit! Mr. and Mrs. “Bon” Hardie had offered their portable enclosed kitchen and shelter to us. This meant that we could cook “inside” and ignore any day of “total fire ban.” The tower I suppose the art of leadership is to stimulate others to run with an idea. This occurred with the tower construction. The idea was to have four poles embedded in the ground upon which would be constructed a platform with five flagpoles. Dimensions would perhaps be determined by the poles available. There was great enthusiasm for the project. Enter Tony Holland. Tony contacted me to say that he had arranged for a number of suitable trees to be felled on the property of Mr, and Mrs. Allard, also members of the district staff. He had also arranged for Mr. Keith Hillsberg to have his semi-trailer at Allards’ at an agreed date and time for transport to the jamboree site. The tower for the “Hamarago” troop under construction The holes had been dug square on three sides, but sloped on the other. With guidance the boys constructed ‘A’ frames and winched the poles into position. Mr. Tony Holland was greatly concerned that when the ropes were removed and before the earth was filled in around them that they might fall over. He remembered very clearly Mr. Kent Wilson saying, “They can’t fall over – there’s nothing holding them” (and he was the expert)! I was to get a team of my senior scouts to move the poles from their felled position to the loading point. I am not used to being organised by other people, but this time I had no option. I persuaded several strong scouts to accompany me out to the property after school. The poles 89 He was right; this tower was not going to fall over. Heavy duty bolts with cross beams were going to make it very secure and there were rope lashings, added mainly for effect. To get up to the platform a ladder was needed. Someone offered a long wooden one and this was readily accepted. (The ladder was taken down and hidden each night during the jamboree.) Meanwhile Wayne Hardie had assisted his father in erecting their portable wood-lined and fly-screened kitchen. To this Tony added a home-built wood-fired hot water system (such luxury!). I found myself ferrying scouts back to Garfield and Warragul but spent the rest of the weekend at the jamboree site. Everything was falling into place. Now for the jamboree, but first there was the joy of Christmas. It’s a Great Game The finished tower, bedecked with flags and hat-waving “Hamarargians.” Photo: Herald and Weekly times Get out and come in, boys, we’re waiting for you, And you’ll be delighted you came, To enjoy the joys of the Scouting boys It’s a Great, Great Game After all, it was a Scout camp. Then the high platform was added, and topped off with tenfoot (3 metre) flag poles. The Australian flag, 1st Hamarago-on-the-Hill flag and three troop flags would complete the scene. The thrill of a lifetime is waiting for you, It’s time you were staking a claim, Let the rafters ring and your heart will sing It’s a Great, Great Game You play on a wonderful journey, Beyond the realm of Mars. Ev’ry night on your ways alight With a million lucky stars You’ve got to get in, boys, and take it from me, In putting your worry to shame, You will learn the break of the Left Handshake It’s a Great, Great Game Ralph Reader 90 Chapter 1875 by lunch it had eased off. The Jamboree then experienced a string of blissful summer days combined with the late spring growth of grass throughout the site. Seventh Australian Jamboree, Dandenong, Victoria Moving in By now all arrangements were mostly in place. The tower frame was up and the kitchen had been erected. Tents had been sourced. Scouts and Senior Scouts knew when they should arrive at the Jamboree site. I came into camp a little early on the afternoon of Sunday, 27th December. The Austin van was a “carry-all” for all sorts of gear. I was allowed to bring it on site on the Sunday but had been assured that it would have to be parked in the allotted compound for the rest of the jamboree. I could use it off-site but not on-site. Was that a challenge? Troop 131 in “drag,” with “Swimming Cow” signboard Scouts arrive Our Senior Scouts came in two days later on the 29th. They were welcomed and then directed to their various tasks, such as putting up their tents, building the gateway and erecting the dining shelter. All of these tasks were for their own benefit. There were no objections. By the next day, the first flag break parade was held and the special “1st Hamarago-on-the-Hill” flag was flying proudly, along with three troop flags and the Australian flag, from the tower many metres above our heads. There was a commanding view of the jamboree site from the top of the tower. The massed flags of the senior scout troops of Group 13 I found that Tony Holland had already arrived and had erected the leaders’ tent. With him was a Mr. Ken Abrecht. Ken was a 2nd Warragul parent. He had been cajoled into helping out for a few days. He was wearing bits of pieces of his son’s scout uniform. I mentally decided that we would improve on that. In no time, scouts from other troops asked to ascend to the platform for this view of the jamboree area. The number of scouts on the platform at any one time was strictly limited. The “price” for going up the ladder was one badge or name tape! Our camp policy was laid down in no uncertain terms. For leaders and scouts to get the greatest benefit from the event, there was no room for awkward disciplinary matters or failures to undertake tasks. As I have indicated before, I continued to find that the senior scout age group was a very easy one with which to deal Rain and sun We woke up to a steady fall of rain. Out came the gumboots. Was this going to be a repeat of the “mud”boree at Clifford Park in 1955/6? But 75 Published, Ibid., September 2007, p 30 91 providing the guidelines were set out clearly and the lads had a chance to negotiate them. Badge swapping Armed with the special “1st Hamarago on the Hill Troop” nametape, the lads soon got involved in the time-honoured aspect at jamborees of badge and name tape exchanging. The arena Flags of all the scout member nations ringed the arena. On one side was a large stage, which lent itself to displays, formal functions, Scouts Owns, the campfires and the Gang Show night. New Year’s Eve was also suitably observed on the main arena. Capricorn Award Both at Dandenong and Jindalee jamborees, a challenge award was available to senior scouts. The Dandenong one was dubbed the Capricorn Award. The Melbourne Symphony Orchestra came along one night and, “under the stars,” performed magnificently. These were still the days when headquarters believed that scouts could and should “march.” Despite the best efforts of the marshals, the numbers involved made such manoeuvres quite challenging. Scouts, like Olympians, are now allowed to walk on and off at such large functions, but it had been a good try. With the passage of days and many feet, the grassed paths became dusty and dust clouds rose. However, it was an impressive sight to see ten or more thousand uniformed scouts en masse on the arena. Ian Hastings receives his Capricorn Award from Ken Brewster, having been in the first ten to do so As soon as he could, the Warragul troop leader, Ian Hastings, went hard to not only complete the requirements but to be in the first group to do so. He received his award from one of the jamboree chiefs, Ken Brewster. Punctuality With one famous exception, I was prepared to guarantee punctuality of parades and meals. Prior to a meal, the “five minutes” warning would be announced and then counted down for the last ten seconds. Sir Charles Maclean, Commonwealth Chief Scout Anyone late or not in the required uniform automatically volunteered to be “slushies.” No questions were asked. No quarter was given. 92 On my departure for England at the end of 1965, Ken took over leadership of the ETSST, together with Graham Dorling. Ken and Graham led them successfully through many an exploit, starting with the achievement of three ‘A’ grade pennants at the 1967 Hoadley Hide, a tradition carried on until the unit ceased to exist nearly forty years later. In turn Cliff Dent became the DSSL and maintained this standard for many years. Some may have thought it a bit tough, but it led to a very happy and efficient troop site. As a result, the seniors could maximise their time around the jamboree activities and could rely on timings. The exception was when I asked my “cousin once-removed” to lunch. It would be that morning that the menu for lunch was rabbit. But when the stores were issued from the subcamp Q-store the rabbits were still hard frozen! No matter what the cooks tried to do about it, that luncheon was not served on time and my cousin has not allowed me to forget it! Campfires Unlike the campfires of the ‘mud’boree of Clifford Park in 1955/56, this jamboree’s campfires were held in ideal conditions both in the main arena and in sub-camps under the various teams that had been formed and trained during the year. Ken Abrecht Back to Ken. Each morning I would endeavour to find another item of uniform to make him look more like a scouter. I recall being half asleep one morning as I attached garter tabs to his socks! Meanwhile, Bob Swinton, his supervisor, was edging him closer to becoming more involved. Alec Mitchell was the Scouter in charge of campfires. He brought together quite a team of experienced leaders who in turn drew up programs. It was said by one Sub-camp leader that he knew more about what was to happen at the jamboree by reading the campfire bulletins than he did with those from the HQ. Ken Abrecht, who came to the jamboree as a parenthelper takes his Scout Promise before Tony Holland and Bob Swinton. Ken was to lead ETSST for many years. Note the left-hand salutes, but Bob was more correct. Bob’s group, of which Ken was a member, was called a “Poop.” Bob said it was too large for a ‘patrol’ and not big enough to be called a ‘troop,’ hence the abbreviation. Half-way through the jamboree, Ken could stand the pressure no longer and Bob invested him into the movement. Alec Mitchell – supervisor of campfires and concerts I felt that my shining moment was when, before some ten thousand scouts, including the ‘big 93 wigs,’ I led the action and miming song, Little Cottage in the Wood. As they say, you do not have to be crazy to be in scouting but it helps at times! The Austin van I had been assured that permission would never be given for my van to get a licence to be used within the confines of the jamboree area. Displays But hardly 48-hours passed before I spotted my van, now allocated to the “activities” section of the jamboree, proudly bearing its official sticker. I still have James Jacoby’s letter of appreciation for the use of the vehicle. I always like a nice challenge. Nothing is impossible; sometimes it just takes a little time to organise, but in this case I was just a silent witness to other people’s perfidy! Contingents staged displays in the main arena. One very colourful one was the Battle of Agincourt with the French and English forces arrayed in medieval apparel, but fortunately Everything comes to an end The last arena and other functions took place and it was time to pack up the site and depart. When it came to dismantling the tower, it was found that the four main poles, even without their braces and bolts, stood perfectly firm in their holes. It probably took more effort to get them out of the ground than to erect them in the first place. Were they left on the ground there to rot? I do not know. Mafeking was re-enacted on the arena. Colonel BadenPowell is on the roof of the building to the right armed only with blunt swords and equipped with very few horses. History says that the English won easily, but the contingent providing the French forces continued throughout the jamboree to argue the toss on this matter. Devoid of its tents, tower and cooking shelter, the troop site looked oddly bare. Now the grass could try to grow once again free of the many feet and other disturbances. As BP once said, at the end of a camp you should only leave behind your thanks. The jamboree had been a magnificent experience for all who could attend, as I am sure the recent one at Elmore was to those fortunate to be at that one. The French knights arrive, but with few on horseback, to do battle with the English at Agincourt 94 Chapter 1976 “Unlocking the Land,” Hoadley Hide, 1965 Wood Badge course Following the 7th Australian Jamboree, I was TL at the January continuous scout woodbadge course at Gilwell Park. “Bus” Derrick ran the course, assisted by two field commissioners, Allan Thomson and Norm Davis. Geoff Switzer and the author display the Afghanistan flag presented by Mohammed Nasim. Photo A van Houts Woodbadge courses were run by training personnel mainly on Branch Headquarters, with Explanatory and Preliminary conducted by “country” staff. However to provide “gofers,” and to look for future talent, there was a precedent for inviting “keen young section leaders” to assume the roles of both Troop Leader and Quarter Master. Hoadley Hide requirements Tarago District’s wild offer to host the Hoadley Hide for 1965 was accepted before I could withdraw it. The Hide would still be conducted by headquarters Senior Scout Scouters under their commissioner, Bob Swinton. But we locals would do the necessary reconnaissance for the location and provide the base camp facilities. This team included Alan Canty, Tony Holland and Ken Abrecht. If we were lucky, we might be invited to take a session or two. I was never entrusted with the entire English training handbook, but the two or three pages for the particular session. There was a degree of secrecy that was probably out of kilter with the open nature of Scouting. Having been a visitor to several previous Hides, I had realised that the Hide leadership team needed hutted accommodation to which they could “escape and rest” at any hour of the day or night. Such a place would provide blacked out areas for sleep whether by day or night. There were several international scouters on the course. They came from Afghanistan, Papua New-Guinea, (South) Korea, and the Philippines. Mohammed Nasim, Chief Commissioner of Afghanistan, presented his country’s national flag to Geoff Switzer, the Gilwell camp warden. Further, meals and refreshments would be provided “on tap” even if from tins. Finally, appropriate shower and toilet facilities needed to be nearby. The course proved to be an ideal way of “winding down” from the jamboree. I had to make trips home and to Warragul for some clean clothing during the course. The Hide location The Hides have traditionally been set in forested areas. Ideally, the chosen area would have a clear boundary such as a road, with minor roads and tracks bisecting the area. Five suitable spots for the five metropolitan areas (now regions) to set up their sub-camps would need to be identified.. 76 Published, Ibid., October 2007, p 26 95 In 1965 the concept of overnight areas for the participants, the Venturer Overnight Camps (VOCs), had not yet been adopted. The patrols of senior scouts, as they were then known, would camp in the forest well away from other patrols and the sub-camps. ETSST rehearsals I suppose I would have to acknowledge that the ETSST had the advantage of being able to rehearse over two weekends in the exercise area. The “hills” of “Gentle Annie” and “North Hell’s Gate” were to live on ever more in the memories of those who hiked on these rehearsal weekends. In one case, they had to camp out overnight, finding that North Hell’s Gate was what it was! Reconnaissance The Forestry Commission of Victoria was again most cooperative. I travelled out one afternoon with their district officer, Les Simpendorfer, to survey the possibilities of an area north of Labertouche. A horse and buggy Knowing that Bob Swinton as the Governor would need a suitable method of conveyance in which to arrive, I had to find one. I was given The area was north of Longwarry on the Gippsland Highway. The area fitted the bill nicely. At Labertouche there was a public hall that would provide the rest area for the leadership staff. Further to the north was the Brighton Grammar School camp, which became “forward headquarters.” Geoff Durham played a leading rôle in the organisation. He and the many leaders, who needed to know the area in some detail, joined me on day trips to reconnoitre the area’s possibilities. A contoured 1:50,000 map was produced with the help of the State’s mapping division. “Unlocking the Land” The Hides have always had a theme, generally historical. One hundred years earlier, the Victorian Government and its Governor, Sir Charles Darling, had passed legislation to try to break the grip that the squatters had on crown land and thus make it available to farmer settlers. It was known as “unlocking the land.” Barry Poole, Jon Soutar, Ron Brooks, Colin Walker, Geoff Spencer and Stuart Burns rest, while in the distance another patrol plods on the Gentle Annie track Mr. L. Marriott’s name. He still had a working trap, buggy or jinker – select your pick for the right word! I was very pleased when he agreed to make it available to us at Easter, complete with driver. The five metropolitan areas would be “stations” operated by the squatters. The scout patrols would be able to earn “money” by “working” on the stations. Later in the weekend, this money would be used to buy crown land at auctions. The local Latrobe Valley Bus Company, restyled Cobb and Co for the weekend, contracted to supply ten buses to transport the seniors from the Longwarry station to 96 Labertouche on Good Friday and then take them back to the station on Easter Monday. Melbourne Grammar School cadets offered to provide radio communications. With a week or so to go to Easter, everything started to fall into place. Easter Day The weather was clear at Sunset Valley for the Easter Day Scouts’ Own and Anglican and Roman Catholic communion services. It was a quite a challenge to bring the clergy, who would lead the services, to the site; the roads now being suitable only for four-wheel drives and/or tyre chains. The day before On the day before Good Friday, the weather was ominously warm. It had hardly rained in three months. Ken Abrecht, who was now very much a Scouter in the team, had a trailer attached to my van and obtained the various supplies, which we would need to fit out the Labertouche Hall. That afternoon, various groups of leaders and cadets travelled from Melbourne and Warragul to the Hide area. The cadets set up their radios. Later in the morning the ceremony at which the Governor unlocked the land took place. To lead the buggy to the right spot, I met up with Les Marriott and he unloaded the conveyance and backed in the horse. In due course and with only minutes to spare, Sir Charles Darling (Bob Swinton) arrived in state at Sunset Valley to make his pronouncements. Swinton was resplendent in cockade and gold be-decked uniform. He was supported in costume by Neil Westaway and Geoff Durham and others. The weather breaks In 2007 the community would have been very glad of consistent rain over Easter, but it came with a vengeance in 1965. It rained Thursday night, but held off for the seven hundred and fifty participants to board their buses from the station and reach their starting points. Later that day the heavens opened up again, continuing into early Saturday morning. There were not many dry scouts as a result. But the weather did improve by daylight on the Saturday. .This enabled the senior scouts to work at the “stations” on tasks reminiscent of the 1865 era, as well as “scouty” ones. The Governor (Bob Swinton) arrives to make the proclamation with at least the passenger in period costume. It had been touch and go whether the buggy would arrive on time and unloaded At midday, everyone congregated in Sunset Valley, which at that stage lived up to its name. Here further copies of the Agitator paper were distributed and petitions for the land to be opened up were presented to the Governor The Governor’s announcement that he had acceded to the petitions was greeted with cheers. Auction sales for the “unlocked” land were then held. Having bought their blocks of land, the patrols then had to find and fence them. Needless to say, they had to make a plough to sow their crops. That completed Sunday’s activities and to all intents and purposes the period during which the patrols were being assessed. True to the theme there was a “General Store,” which was staffed by Warragul parents. It soon sold out its stock. In the evening, there were “music hall” items for which the patrols were required to write a bush song. Needless to say it rained again overnight. 97 Marking the log books. Leon Costermans ponders the mark he will award. This privilege – to assess the log books – no longer exists -- for better or worse! Geoff Durham, Tony Holland, Bob Swinton, Bob Allan and Neil Westaway in period costume at the “unlocking the land” ceremony, fortunately in the sunshine In view of the rain that had fallen for the three nights, the maintenance of clean, dry and neat log books was a big challenge. The log book would contain sketches, diagrams, the route taken and a list of the stunts undertaken by the patrol at the sub-camps. Meanwhile, the supervising team of scouters congregated at the Labertouche Hall to commence their task of marking the log books. After that the grading of the pennants for the Hide could take place. This team had spent a lot of time “in the field (forest)” in rain and mud over the holiday weekend. The “R and R” facilities had proved their worth as the team was relatively rested and fed. Monday – Guess what? It rained again Since the assessment would now have been completed, it was necessary to have an energy absorbing program for the Monday morning. A comprehensive series of “Olympic” or “bush games” had been devised. But as dawn broke, so did the heavens. The organisers were now faced with a lot of tired and bedraggled wet adolescents – a recipe for trouble. A “wet weather” plan had to be quickly devised. Senior Scouts await the arrival of the Governor Log books The requirement for the patrol to maintain and hand in a log book of their activities over the Hide weekend has now been (sadly?) dropped. But in 1965 it was still a key part of the assessment. One member of the patrol would be tasked to do the log. Naturally it fell to the most literate and/or perhaps the neatest writer in the group. The “Cobb and Coach” buses arrive to take the now dry scouts to the Longwarry railway station, from the sand pits where they have spent a cold damp morning The message went out to the patrols that they should take their time to reach the arena -98 anything to use up time until the buses arrived. Eleven-thirty was suggested! Then out of the wet mist came a male angel – Len Beachey. He arrived with his axe over his shoulder. He offered to get some fires going. We looked at him in disbelief, but it was not long before he had cut up some of the available timber and had blazing fires around which the seniors could gather, dry out and get themselves warm. Ron Hamilton announces the winners But a group of scouts had taken Ron Hamilton and me very seriously. They knew that we wanted to get past them in the Austin van to help at the bus area, but this group moved with “care and decorum” and despite our pleadings, continued to walk seven abreast across the track without turning round. It was a highlight in its own right. Graham Farley supervises a tug-of-war competition on the Monday morning in the sand pits to keep the scouts occupied and active until it was time for the closing ceremony and the departure for home by bus and train Meanwhile it fell to me to organise a tug-of-war competition in one of the sand pits that lent itself as an arena, with vantage points on its banks. I could have hugged with gratitude the seniors from Scotch College who responded to my appeal for some teams. It was also fortunate that we had a workable public address system. The buses then arrived and Ron Hamilton announced the “A Grade” and other pennant winners. Even at this stage there could have been a rush for the buses. I was given the credit for using the PA with understanding to quietly talk the patrols into moving with care and decorum from the assembly area to the buses. Being scouts, they all responded and the Hide came to its close. With the senior scouts now safely on the train, we could all breathe again. Delighted Warragul senior scouts share in a “B” grade pennant: Russell Marriott, Stuart Burns, Colin Walker, Graeme Haycroft and Paul Pianta Having Tuesday as a school holiday, our local team of scouters had the opportunity to clean up at the Labertouche Hall and return the various items of equipment and the unused tins of food. It had been a memorable Hoadley Hide. 99 Chapter 2077 I realise that in 2010 these grouping tags might appear to be odd but they were happily accepted and became part of the ETSST’s “raison d’etre” well after the present writer left Warragul. B-P Revue – “Gangster” inspired “Coming Up” Secrets of success On Friday, 30th April, the 1963/4 senior scouts, received the 1965 “batch” of scouts in the 1st Warragul scout hall, in a “coming up” from the seniors point of view and “going up” from the scouts! It does no harm to remind readers that as I was a member of the high school teaching staff and with the technical school back-to-back in location, lines of communication were easy and always open, particularly as being in charge of the bookstall, I had my own room down the locker corridor amongst the lockers to issue newsletters and check for attendances. The host group “offered” Don Hastings, Neil Hardie, Peter Nobelius, Randall Cadby, Tom Elton, Eddy Valena and Tony Macafee. Michael Sheppard and Ray Gardner came from 2nd Warragul. Neil Hughes came from 1st Nilma North-Lillico and John Lynas was a member of 1st Neerim South. Also we had one genuine recruit – Chris Woodhouse. With twelve new members, the troop would have to be restructured. I had a few ideas to offer but the lads soon proved that this age group demands their own degree of selfdetermination. As a result Graeme Haycroft was elected troop leader “unopposed.” Graeme also elected to be a “seconder” in his patrol. I think the army term would be “double-hatted”! “The lowest twelve”: (Back) Ray Gardner, Eddy Valena, Tony MacAfee, Donald Hastings, Neil Hughes, Neil Hardie; (Middle) Randall Cadby and Chris Woodhouse; (Front) John Lynas, Tom Elton, Peter Nobelius and Michael Sheppard after their investiture as “senior scouts” “Royal Purples” An older group, all with their Queen Scout badge, which I dubbed the “Royal Purples,” unofficially termed themselves the “Kelly patrol,” a wish that had been first aired when the troop commenced in 196378. Clearly the program and methods of administering the troop were successful. The troop was seen as an organisation of which membership should be sought. It demonstrated the natural progression up the scouting ladder. The troop’s members continued to be registered by their own groups. But I was stretching the rule governing “district training” to its limit. The vertical groupings were for the three patrols (Forrest, Hinkler and Sturt), while the horizontal groupings were further divided into the “highest three,” “the middle nine,” and the “lowest twelve.” With the four members of “Kelly Patrol,” this resulted in a troop of 28 members. I continued not to countenance a special scarf for the “district” troop, but eventually I could not hold back the constant demand for one indefinitely. 77 Published, Ibid., November, 2007, p 30 In the ‘sixties patrol names were restricted to famous Australians. Ned Kelly’s name was not in the official list! 78 100 nightly ritual of the shower parade. Raised by a mini-block-and-tackle, the canvas shower would be filled with temperature-tested hot water. Sometimes the rose was incorrectly screwed and instead of a spray the water came down in a torrent. At least the wombats enjoyed the spectacle. Euroa camp This camp followed the successful one at this site the year before. The main party members travelled by train. They were met at Euroa railway station. This group comprised mainly the “new chums,” the more experienced members being in the advance party and travelled to Euroa in the van. Sixteen members attended the camp. Hampton hospitality The plan was for the senior scouts in camp to attend the Melbourne Gang Show on the way home to Warragul. To make it easier to attend the production at the Palais Theatre, St. Kilda, families of 1st Hampton scout group offered hospitality so that the boys could change, have a home meal and then proceed to see the show. While the main party went back to Warragul early the next day, some stayed to watch the film, Lawrence of Arabia, in the city. “Let me carry your pack” – Paul Pianta and a smile The B-P Revue The site lent itself to pioneering and hiking. Technically, there should have been cooking by patrols, but some items, such as the morning porridge, were cooked centrally. Some of the new members demonstrated their cooking skills. The weather tended to be overcast, unlike the frosty nights and sunny days of previous visits to this site. It seemed inevitable that I would want to test the water to see if there was sufficient interest in the Warragul guide and scout groups to stage a revue, basing much of its content on the “scouty” songs and sketches that had emanated from Ralph Reader’s London Gang Show. Good seed had already been sown as some years earlier, “The Gangsters” had visited Warragul and staged a “gang show.” This group of talented and key members of the Melbourne Gang Show would visit a regional centre and stage a show, having spent the Saturday inspiring the local guides and scouts to take part in the items and songs. Hence there was fertile ground for what I was proposing. I had had the idea for some time and had tossed around in my mind key matters such as theatres and dates. As most of the actors would be school students, it was important to avoid examinations and have the heads of the two government secondary schools, in particular, on side. Stuart Burns, Neil Hardie, Ray Gardner, Russell Marriott, and the head of Randall Cadby while “pioneering” Relevant to the social attitudes of the ‘sixties and having only the one sex, there was the 101 held the year before and perhaps there were some fathers looking forward to besting their sons. First steps The first step was to have a preliminary meeting between the group scout masters and the guide district commissioner. The latter was Mrs. Poole, the mother of Barry, one of the “Middle 9.” That involvement did not mean it was a foregone conclusion that the guides would be in it. Mr. Vern Haycroft and Mr. Bill Brooks took on the task of encouraging fellow “dads” to attend. Mr. Haycroft was a leading announcer with the local radio station, 3GL. As his son, Graeme, was the troop leader, it was inevitable that Vern became the “TL” of the fathers. At the meeting at the home of 2nd Warragul’s GSM, Tony Holland, it was agreed that the rationale for the revue would primarily be enjoyment for those taking part. If the revue played to good houses and some money came in, that was all well to the good. While the patrols in the ETSST would each put on an item, I would look to the various packs, troops and companies in the scout and guide groupings to present one as well. Finally, the participants as a whole would learn and sing the traditional songs associated in particular with the closing of each Gang Show since 1932. Basics Seeking a time between mid-year examinations and education week, the dates of Friday 5th and Saturday 6th August were selected. The Presbyterian Church hall booked. This would give the cast eight weeks in which to learn their parts, practise and stage the show Wayne and his father, “Bon” Hardie Once again, much of the first day of the camp consisted of the challenge events, such as burning through a piece of string and floating a flaming pyre across a stream. I could not suggest that any “cheating” took place. Shall we say, that some rules of guidance were stretched! Rehearsals would be held weekly on Wednesdays after school in the Methodist Church hall for all those who could attend. It soon became clear that there was considerable support for the venture. Items and songs were soon selected. Words were produced and distributed. A weekly planning meeting took place with a wide distribution of decisions via the minutes. Father and Sons’ camp On the weekend of 17/18th July I programmed another opportunity for fathers to show up their sons at various activities. After all, it had been The Carland family: Bill (Dad), Ken (Senior Scout) and Greg (Cub). “This is the way you cook it, son.” 102 In the evening in the Officer chalet, a mock court case took place. The charge against Mr. “Bon” Hardie was that he had been driving a tent peg while under the influence of coffee. Apart from the judge, all participants seemed to be biased in supporting their own age group, whether a father or a son. Fortunately lynch law was averted! Sunday’s activities were just as pleasant and entered into with a great spirit. Yes, some of the sons found out that their fathers did know a trick or two. The Guide companies were equally cooperative inviting me to their weekly meetings for rehearsing them Bruce Armstrong (brass), Wally McKenzie (drums) and Alison Bartrip (piano) put together a orchestra to support the organist, played by a student, Howard Jenson. His organ just fitted into the rear of my van. It was freighted in to the hall with great care. Concert ups and downs Some units took to the learning of their items with gusto. Others, particularly the senior scouts, lagged behind. There was only one slip up in communication but this was straightened out in time for the section concerned to take part. With programs printed and tickets being sold, the community awaited the first night’s production. Plenty of fingers were crossed. A proper dress rehearsal was almost impossible to stage. There would be a lot of learning on the first night. Concert rehearsals were held both after school and on Sunday afternoons in the available church and scout halls First night – first half A lot of assistance was offered by members of the community. A former scouter who worked for the then State Electricity Commission was able to guarantee power for the two nights. The fuse board had never been installed with concerts in view. My parents came from Melbourne. They had already “suffered” the revues in Mirboo North. I got marks from my father when the overture Bram Dawson came forward to work the public address aspects. These were the days of “reelto-reel” tape recorders. They were the size of a smallish suitcase and needed external power to operate. Don Leeson came forward to assist with the production side. The cast in all its splendour of ironed uniforms, washed faces and combed hair. But it was another thing to get them to open their mouths and sing out the words! 103 Brooks was unable to untie himself in the Houdini act, requiring several rolls of the drum until he finally succeeding in extricating himself. started at seven fifty-five. Right on time the curtain opened to reveal the uniform-clad cast ready to sing their opening numbers, Gee, It’s a Wonderful Life and You’re the Fellow for Me. I was conducting the show and of course wore whites (shades of Ken Bayly and others). I willed the cast to sing up but it needs experience for them to avoid being stage struck and embarrassed in front of all those people including parents. Many of the laughs came from the unrehearsed aspects of an item. The 1st Warragul cubs responded to “cue” cards, providing they were in the right order. The skit, The Scoutmaster’s Nightmare was one in more ways than one during the rehearsals. A “young” Don Leeson helped with the production Second half Bambazoolian Way complete with grass skirts, never fails to get applause. Operation Successful (1st Warragul scouts) was as gory as ever with the shadow on the sheet routine. The lead boy singer (Peter Martin) in Thanksgiving Day so impressed his parents that the extended family were marshalled for the second night to hear Peter use a voice that even his parents had not previously heard. “The Little White Bull” – a popular song at the time 2nd Warragul cubs enacted the then popular song, The Little White Bull, and received several encores. On the second night they nearly took the curtain with them. Ralph Reader and Ken Bayly music was strongly featured. I finally got the cast to sing I’ve got the Call in a “slow and sexy” manner, for which they did not need all that much encouragement. Ken’s To Australia marked the conclusion of the first half, with everyone being “proud of Australia.” And so on through the program, finishing off with a campfire scene with the cast singing Prayer for Brotherhood (Peter again, assisted by Denise Ray) and including the songs, These are the Times, In my dreams I’m going back to Gilwell, Taps, Who Wants to say Goodnight and (to conclude Gang Show-style, It’s a Great, Great Game. Then the audience would not go home – they wanted encores even with the stage cleared of persons and even many of the props. In the interval an angel (Mrs. Horton) produced tea and coffee for the backstage people. During the interval, several of the “royal purples” put on some acts which inevitably left shaving cream on the curtains (a “pie” act) and then Ron 104 7th Australian Jamboree Song 1. Come, my brothers, sing with us Of fun and friends we’ve found, Since we have gathered here at Dandenong In brotherhood and friendship strong. Ch. At the Jamboree, at the Jamboree, Camp of happy days for you and me. Join us, brothers, as we sing our song At the Seventh Australian Jamboree Howard Jensen, a Warragul High School student, came forward and offered to play on his own electronic organ The B-P Revue was to become a feature in the Warragul entertainment for many years. Don Leeson took over the production and when the two government secondary schools built their assembly hall, the new location gave added scope both in terms of numbers that could be accommodated and such matters as stage size and lighting. 2. Round our campfires glowing bright We’ll sing our songs once more, And in the songs we sing our voices rise In comradeship towards the skies. 3. Until we meet our friends once more, Perhaps on distant shore, Mem’ries we’ll carry on forever strong Of our Jamboree at Dandenong. If readers feel that a concert in August should be enough to account for the rest of the year, they would be mistaken. There was a trip to Tasmania in the September holidays, Queen Scout presentations, a paper drive and some hikes. Finally, I was farewelled as I would be in the UK on holiday in 1966. --Dandenong, Victoria, 1964-1965 105 Chapter 2179 scouts received them! Later, the airline apologised for this error of judgement A most rewarding times ends As Tony and I waited for the delayed aircraft to land, fog rolled in from the ocean. It was then announced that the flight would return to Wynyard, an airport further west along the northern Tasmanian coast. We could have driven to Wynyard in the first place as that was its first port of call. Consequently we lost at least half-a-day. It was some time before we caught up with the planned program. “Princess” to Tasmania I found there was sufficient interest in a trip to Tasmania in the September vacation to warrant planning going ahead. The Austin van would travel on the “Princess of Tasmania,” the then ‘roll-on roll-off vessel,’ and the scouts would go by air. Everything was booked and the departure date was awaited with enthusiasm. That night, while putting tents up in the dark, the troop was visited by a group of females who needed quite a degree of persuasion to leave the area and let us get on with the task of getting a good night’s rest.. Ken Carland’s father would drive the second vehicle, a Holden wagon but at the last minute he was unable to go. Tony Holland, GSM of 2nd Warragul, who would have flown with the scouts, stepped into his place. Mr. Carland was able to arrange for us to pick up a similar vehicle in Tasmania as a replacement, but this time a Falcon. As already set out in these pages, Tony could read a situation, act very promptly and come up with the right solution. The Nut When the stevedores came to finding a spot for the Austin van on the vessel, they were stumped. Finally an elevated spot on the mezzanine deck was found for it and Tony and I, after an excellent meal, settled down in our cabin for the night’s voyage Fogged in Randall Cadby, Ken Carland and Neil Hughes It should have been straight forward for us to meet the aircraft at Devonport but the farce started with me mis-reading the airline’s route. Meanwhile, we were notified of a two-hour delay at Essendon80. Finally, the passengers involved were switched to a DC-4 instead. At Rocky Cape there was a general store of the old type – the carrots were in amongst the shoes and everything seemed much cheaper; reminiscent of pre-inflation years. Unlike Victoria at that time, “salacious literature” was freely available to all ages over the counter – well, that is what my scouts claimed! To win favour with the passengers, Ansett ANA81 provided a special meal, which included a complimentary packet of cigarettes. Even the Driving down the Murchison Highway, the party camped at Hellyer Gorge. The next day the party proceeded to some old settlements, such as Tullah. That day we drove to Queenstown, where the scout hall was part of 1st Queenstown’s hospitality. 79 Published, Ibid., December, 2007, p 29 Tullamarine airport had not yet been built and aircraft operated out of the Essendon airport 81 The non-government airline of the day. 80 106 On another day at one “pit stop” the scouts had found a number of (44-gallon) oil drums which just asked to be rolled down the hill. What comes down has to go up, so they were “rolled” back up again, with some adult encouragement. they did enjoy several days in Tasmania’s capital city. Again, we were grateful for scout hall hospitality. At church on the Sunday, Major Butcher, a former Australian Chief Commissioner, together with his wife, invited us to their home for afternoon tea. Inevitably up came the question, “Do we have to wear uniform?” I was surprised they even thought of asking it! It was a very pleasant visit to the Butchers’ delightful home on the banks of the River Derwent. I am sure that the proprietor of the general store knew exactly what was in stock and where it was shelved That night we found some welcome huts at the Lake St. Clair camping area. We were all glad of a good night’s sleep, especially me. I was to learn the next morning that when ever I snored, air was released from my mattress until I stopped snoring – at least for the time being. More or less immaculate in their uniforms the party arrives at the Cadbury chocolate factory at Claremont. At the back: Tony Holland and Cliff Dent. L to R: Clem Jervis, Tom Elton, Randall Cadby, Michael Sheppard, Ron Brooks, Neil Hughes, Neil Hardie, Ian Jackson, Ken Carland and Graeme Haycroft. At the left is Bill Carland’s Holden station wagon that he arranged for us The following morning was spent visiting the Cadbury factory. Despite the liberal offering of chocolates, Tony Holland had his hand figuratively smacked by the guide for reaching before being offered! In the afternoon the party travelled to Port Arthur, but no member was locked up, despite a few of them giving every indication that they so deserved to be. I had to assume that their parents still loved them and would wish them to return home as planned. Rolling the barrels back up the hill again Our route then took us north through Richmond to Launceston with the opportunity to inspect Cataract Gorge and industry at Bell Bay. Hobart I am never sure why scouts consider that they are the best people to “paint a town red,” but 107 and a very successful tour of Tasmania came to an end. Not every incident on such a trip can be recorded – most members are still alive to deny their involvement! But with each member of the party accepting a task, such as being treasurer and distributing the pocket money, it was a happy learning experience for all. I should have realised that the special scarves produced for the trip would lead to the desire for a troop scarf, something that I had hitherto Tony Holland at Port Arthur tolls the bell Cards To enable the party to travel as one unit, Tony and I arranged one day for all eleven of us to travel in the Austin van for the drive up to Poatina. By then the lads were getting rather bored by the travelling and had switched to playing cards. When Tony and I tired of trying to point out interesting features, we decided to park and turn off the engine. Climbing the gangway to fly home. But the engines of the aircraft needed a lot of encouragement to start. Eventually they did so and the party flew out safely resisted. For three years I had insisted that as we were only grouped “for training,” we should wear our own group scarves. It was some time before one of the older lads finally asked as to why we had stopped. We thought the answer was fairly obvious – you do not need to be moving if you would prefer to play cards! The point was taken and we set off again. All around us was the outstanding Tasmanian scenery with the Western Tiers as a backdrop in the hydro-electricity country. Queen’s Scouts’ certificates Badges were presented on the 25th September and the certificates on 9th October at Government House to Ken Carland, Cliff Dent, Graeme Haycroft, Ian Jackson, Alex Kara, and Geoff Spencer. Return flight One could hardly expect that there would be trouble as well on the return flight, but the aircraft’s engines were reluctant to start. The more that attempts were made to start them, the closer did the fire wagons and other emergency vehicles seem to creep towards the aircraft. Finally the engines roared into life and the aircraft took off. Tony and I returned by ship Following on from Government House in the morning, the normal procedure to have lunch at the Victoria Palace. Then it was to the film, The Pink Panther. I thought it was funny, although I seem to have embarrassed the others in the process. 108 Time to say goodbye Returning to Warragul that night, I attended a function at which Ken Abrecht received his SSL’s warrant. I was taking a year’s leave from teaching to travel to the country of my birth (England) and it was a good feeling to know that such a competent leader would be leading the senior scout troop in my place Ken would take the troop to great heights. There was still time for a number of scout activities. One of these was to “Glen Nayook” Park where the seniors undertook a day of public service in the park. The badge that was worn on the back of the maroon scarf that was adopted for the district troop. On the 1965/6 badge, the words were more correctly “East Tarago Senior Scout Troop.” The Austin van was in silhouette. HH stood for the Hoadley Hide. The fleur-de-lys superimposed on to the guide trefoil was the badge for the B-P revue. Finally in the lower right segment there is the Dandenong Jamboree badge and the Hamarago flag tower The troop’s January expedition would be to Lindenow South. Ken Abrecht took me with him on a reconnaissance of the site. It was on the bank of the River Mitchell and it had great possibilities with a log cabin nearby in case the weather was uncooperative. Final function There was a final “hike,” in which I took part. This consisted of some genuine walking, but the van was used to get from one point to another. A highlight of this trip was to walk across the heritage timber trestle bridge at Noojee – now part of a timber trail. It has since been restored to the condition it was at the time of the 1939 bushfires when the train ran north from Warragul. The members of the senior troop, now all wearing their new maroon scarves, invited me to a special night at the end of the year. Ron Brooks dressed up as me as a teacher and Mesdames Dovey and Lynas as school students. The “Mickey” was fairly taken out of me. I responded by leading my special campfire item, Little Cottage in the Wood, which rarely fails to please. You do not have to be mad to be in Scouting, but all of us know that it does help! A “troop” scarf At a private farewell to me, I was presented with a maroon scarf complete with the infamous badge which in its several quarters had symbols of the activities that had been enjoyed over the previous three years, namely the jamboree tower, the Austin van, and the combined scoutguide badge of the B-P Revue. There was nothing I could do but accept it graciously. I had been outflanked. Ron Brooks, impersonating me, shares photographs with “pupils” Mrs. Dovey and Mrs. Lynas at my farewell 109 On Sunday, 2nd January, 1966, I sailed from Melbourne for Southampton (England) on board the P&O liner, the SS Oriana. About fifteen members of the troop came (in uniform) to see me off, or, as some suggested, to make sure that I went! The senior scouts were glad of adult support that understood and worked with them. Respect was still needed but there has to be a degree of give and take with this age group. The example set by the leaders was still all important as far as the moral standards of the boys were concerned, whether it was smoking, alcohol, swearing, sex etc. My years in Warragul – teacher, army reserve officer, scout leader and churchman – were very rewarding ones. Members of the troop prove that they can wear their uniforms correctly when the occasion arises. Here they are to farewell me on the P & O liner, SS Oriana, and make sure that I leave when the ship sails. One parent, who conducted a tourist office in Warragul, had no trouble in getting sufficient shipboard passes. Sailing time came. The boys went ashore. I stayed on board. The ship left the quay. A year’s adventure lay ahead of me – a year that would involve scouting in its many facets. In retrospect The senior (venturer) scouts of Warragul had clearly demonstrated that they were glad to be in a show that had clear objects, eg., Queen’s Scout badge, expeditions, social, etc. They clearly showed that they could conduct their activities in a democratic manner. The troop had sufficient numbers so that particular projects could take place, yet not every member of the troop had to take part to make them viable. Further, that providing there was good communication in all directions, they did not have to meet regularly, say every Friday night, but would come together when there was a program item in which they wished to participate. 110 Chapter 2282 and Alan Richardson, the two who had sought me out. Senior Scouting in England with 8th Cheam Landfall I migrated from England in 1937 with my parents when I was four. Now in 1966 I had the chance to really get to know the land of my birth. The last time I had been “home” was in 1951 for three months, when my father’s office gave us a three month trip. This was also the occasion of the Festival of Britain, held 100 years after the Great Exhibition of 1851. The Senior Scouts of 8th Cheam take me on a hike in Surrey. Here the troop leader, David Williams, checks the map at Shere assisted by Alan Richardson, with John Taylor, David Clarke and Rod Taylor to the left I was born in Cheam, Surrey. My Aunty Mary and Uncle Stephen (Nash) joined my mother moving to Cheam. I was now to be welcome in their home for all of 1966. They graciously tolerated my comings and goings. David, the TL, assured me that the troop was run by its Court of Honour. Similar to ETSST, the lads did not necessarily meet on a specific night but as and when their program indicated they should. 8th Cheam wore a green scarf! This was not a problem, as I could wear my green Australian scarf with the kangaroo emblem. The Victorian Education Department required me to teach for 80 days. 1966 provided a glorious year enabling me to teach, to meet my relations, take part in as much scouting as I could fit in, to be a member of a Territorial Army unit and, at the same time, see the country. Church and Scouts’ Owns th 8 Cheam In a very short time I made contact with several group leaders in Cheam to see who wanted me, if any! My first scout visit was to a 1st Cheam seniors’ meeting. 1st Cheam had some twenty senior scouts. I was pleased to find that they wore a maroon scarf. My new ETSST one would not be out of place, other than for its badge. The flags of 1st and 8th Cheam in their racks in St. Dunstan’s Church, Cheam But a day or two later, two senior scouts of 8th Cheam came to see me with an invitation to be their leader, as their own had just advised that he would now be unavailable. This was the way that B-P said it should happen. I was most impressed with the maturity of David Williams 82 On Sunday, 6th February, I attended morning service at St. Dunstan’s church, Cheam, where I had been baptised in 1933. On this Sunday, 1st Cheam held its monthly church parade behind a full display of their flags, which were processed up the aisle. Following the service these were Published, Ibid., February, 2008, p 28 111 “laid up” in varnished wood racks at the rear of the church. High School. David and Alan demonstrated fine qualities of leadership. SAGGA This acronym stood for the ‘Scout and Guide Graduate Association.’ This organisation encouraged students and graduates at university level to pursue their B-P interests, in much the same way as had the B-P Society at the University of Melbourne when I was a student. But it was taken to a further degree with a quarterly or regular magazine that contained academic articles about youth work: practical, philosophic and psychological. 8th Cheam conducted their Scouts Owns in the church hall, with the seniors able to provide the music and the order of service. Here David Williams, John and Rod Taylor, and Chris Hudson “beat” out a lively hymn tune My cousin, Elizabeth, and her husband, John, were both members, and they encouraged me to join. In a later trip to the UK, when I was now a Leader Trainer, I was pleased to obtain and use SAGGA material on training courses on my return and, in particular, the rôle-play and gaming ones. The 8th Cheam seniors, on the other hand, fulfilled their “Duty to God” by conducting their own Scouts’ Owns. These were held monthly in the nearby parish hall. The service was devised by the boys. Several of them were proficient enough with the guitar to provide music for their more contemporary songs. I attended either of these observances whenever I could fit them into my diary. Senior Scout conference I was taking every opportunity to attend relevant functions. I found out that the Greater London South West region was having a senior scouts’ conference. This was to be held at Wimbledon. A “wide game” meeting For my introduction to 8th Cheam’s mode of operation, I was given a grid reference with the first clues for a “wide game.” This activity would take its members around Cheam at night. My rôle was purely to be the “adult,” as the game was completely set up and administered by the boys themselves. On the morning two rovers described their “round the world” trip. In the afternoon the HQ commissioner, Lawrence Stringer addressed the gathering. The program also included some first rate moral “situations,” based on the “what would you do if” approach. Having been a subscriber to the UK Scouter journal, people like Stringer had been idols from afar. Here he was “in the flesh,” so to speak. Throughout the year I was to notice the differences in values and abilities between English and Australian youths. I thought my ETSST lads had been “self-starters,” but 8th Cheam seemed to be just as competent but in many different ways. I had much the same feelings when actually entering Imperial Headquarters (IHQ) in Buckingham Palace Road and standing where it had all been happening since this HQ was acquired by B-P all those years ago. For many years, Australian scouting had been the English brand re-labelled – uniforms, handbooks, Many of the 8th Cheam members attended what were known as “grammar schools,” the Victorian equivalent (for boys) being Melbourne 112 badges, ideas and structure. The differences are greater now. the 0820 Green Line coach to Reigate Hill. There were seven of us in the party, all wearing the scout anorak which gave unity to the uniform when in the countryside. Westminster Abbey service The plan was to follow part of the ancient Pilgrims’ Way to Guildford. There are plenty of open areas in Britain, but there always seems to be a village in view wherever one walks. The towers and spires of village churches ease the challenge of map reading. I was able to obtain a ticket to attend the annual service on the occasion of B-P’s birthday. It was entitled, ‘Service of Thanksgiving and Dedication for the Boy Scouts and Girl Guides Associations.’ It was held in Westminster Abbey. I was early enough with my request to rate a seat in the choir stalls. Princes Margaret was in attendance. The Dean of Westminster took the service. Mapping in the UK is so well developed that the maps that I was using showed all sorts of detail which our Victorian 1:25,000 maps rarely include. I had purchased some 1:25,000 ordnance maps but the lads only had the one inch to the mile series (1:63,360). I could have got maps on a greater scale which even showed individual house blocks! I sat alongside Scouters and Guiders from many countries, including the USA, Canada, the Pacific Islands and from Asia. It was a great experience, which was added to when, on emerging from the Minster, the Abbey’s bells peeled out. And without dropping names again, Mr. Neate of IHQ, was in my carriage on the train back to Cheam. The “gods” of whom I had read were human and real after all! Throughout England there are public footpaths. The right to use these and walk across private land is jealously guarded by many communities. But where were the towering gum trees and the impenetrable scrub and blackberry bushes at ground level of my native Australia? Where were the “bush” tracks? Woodbadge As I wished to undertake the senior scout woodbadge course at “the” Gilwell Park at Chingford in Essex while in England, I commenced the written part of the course. In those days, the woodbadge course was in three parts. The first was the requirement to respond in writing to some fifteen questions about scouting and one’s section in particular. Our route Leaving the bus at Wray Lane we walked in a westerly direction along the grain of the countryside. In crossing a stream we could have used a nearby bridge, but there were stepping stones, just covered by water. “Men” could handle these! Despite the well formed and signposted paths and grassy hillsides, a walker still needs sturdy boots when hiking. The second part was the practical side, conducted over three weekends or continuously, generally for a week. Finally, the Part 3 was the period when the trainee was under surveillance while she or he applied what had been learnt to their relevant section unit. Drinking water was carried in collapsible plastic water “jars.” Hot water for morning tea was heated over paraffin stoves. I had taken my petrol stove to England with me but it was not legal in the UK to sell petrol (even Shellite) except for cars in service stations. An 8th Cheam hike On the weekend of the 5/6th March, 8th Cheam members scheduled a hike and invited me to accompany them. I was advised to catch the No. 470 bus at 0810 hours to Sutton and then 113 Easter at Edale My cousin, Humphrey Nye, and I had met up on the Isle of Skye, where he had been an officer with cadets in camp. On our way back to London, we were able to visit the 8th Cheam seniors at their Easter camp in Edale in the Yorkshire Dales. The weather was typically English and we found some rather damp and perhaps dispirited scouts. Ablutions had to be carried out in the nearby council toilet block at a road junction. This facility clearly showed signs that there were too many campers in the area and it had not been regularly maintained. Since so much of the land is privately owned, local farmers do not take happily to these camping invasions, unless the group has leased their land in return say, for rent. When it came time to find a campsite for the night, David Williams approached a farmer who allocated a section of one of his cow paddocks to us. Now the culture shock really set in. Where was the flattish spot near the creek amongst the eucalypt trees! Or the bush in which to meet personal needs? Barbed wire fences surrounded us. England is still a big country and one can get right away from civilisation but there areas are rare. There are camping clubs and sites across the nation. The Scout Association has always owned well maintained camp sites. But the Australian notion of just driving out into the bush until a suitable site on the side of a creek is found is just not possible in many parts of Europe. We erected our tents on cow pasture, where their hooves had made indents in the ground. Well, B-P always talked about the virtues of hip-holes! It was clear that the lads were all very experienced and self-sufficient although my diary suggests that it was central cooking rather than pairs or individually. Our site was within easy walking distance of the local village, where the boys drank some non-alcoholic cyder83 as the chimes of Abinger Hammer rang in our ears. On the Sunday morning, the scouts went to the local Anglican84 church for the morning service before continuing on our way. Finally a bus took us home to Cheam. I doubt whether at any stage we were out of sight of civilisation. At night there were the lights of villages in the distance. Not that van again! 8th Cheam senior scouts hired almost an identical van to my Warragul Austin. This time it was a Morris, similar to the one that ETSST would later buy 83 ‘cyder’ before fermentation; ‘cider’ afterwards Then of course still known universally as the Church of England 84 114 But I was surprised to see the troop’s method of transport. There before me was an identical van to the one I had been driving in Victoria, except it was the Morris equivalent. There were other slight variations in that this hire vehicle had not had the same maintenance as mine and there had been trouble with its engine. I think I brought the makings of a severe cold with me to Edale as I recall a sleepless night. Twenty-four hours later I enjoyed a very warm hotel bed. Humphrey and I proceeded back to London, the scouts travelling back to school after the Easter break under another adult leader. In my dreams I’m going back to Gilwell When in the glow of a fire burning low, There are moments I recall, Back to my mind come the days far behind And the times that held me over all. Then the years fade a-way And again I scan stray To paths of a brighter hue, Where boys’ voices ring, Where youth is king, And the skies again are blue. The picture tells all! At Edale it was cold and damp. I am wearing my senior scout maroon beret legally! In foreground my cousin, Humphrey Nye, wonders why scoots subject themselves to such conditions in the name of “happy camping”! Note my green box in the tent. In my dreams I’m going back to Gilwell, To the joys and the happiness I found On those grand weekends With my scouting friends And see the Training Ground. Oh the grass is greener back in Gilwell And I breathe again that scouting air While in memory, I see B-P, Who never will be far from there. In conclusion There were other activities to which 8th Cheam would invite me, but the principal one was the annual expedition, this year being to the Black Forest in Germany, which rates a chapter in itself. Meanwhile I prepared to attend the continuous Senior Scout Woodbadge course at Gilwell Park, which is the next article. Ralph Reader 115 Chapter 2385 occasion! This was typical of his generosity to his “colonial” cousin. A Senior Scout Woodbadge Course at the English Gilwell From London Bridge station, I navigated across London to catch the next train to Chingford. At the Chingford railway station, Eric Colley (the equivalent of our camp warden) met me in the Gilwell “run-about” vehicle to take me to the camp. While in England in 1966 I applied to attend a continuous Senior Scout Woodbadge course at “the” Gilwell. I would like to think that most leaders dream of attending an overseas Jamboree and visiting some of the famous places associated with our Founder. I do not think I was any different. Arriving at Gilwell, I joined up with some eighty other leaders, a scout course also being run in parallel with ours. I was certainly excited about qualifying at such a course and having the UK Gilwell Park imprint on the certificate. Gilwell Park On later trips I would have the privilege of walking around Brownsea Island, visiting World Bureau HQ in Geneva and seeing the international camp at Kandersteg, Switzerland. But one has to start somewhere. In 1918 Mr. W. de Bois Maclaren offered to purchase the Gilwell property that would become Gilwell for both Scout camping and leader training. It was then some miles north of London. With the growth of London’ suburbs, it is now on the edge of the metropolis or even part of it! There was no M25 motorway in those days and in most cases, if public transport was available, you used it. But it meant that I would be taking the train to London Bridge station from Cheam, the underground to Liverpool Street station and then the surface train to Chingford. A “fang” The course was to start on a Saturday. My uncle, Stephen Nash, had been very kind to me already during my stay but I was unprepared for his enthusiastic support when I got back from shopping in Cheam that day. The Main Hall at Gilwell Park, Chingford, England On the site was a building, now known as the Main Hall. A number of sources refer to it also as the White House. It was once a hunting lodge. On one side of it is the training ground. On the other side, as at our Gilwell, is the “Boys’ Field.” I knew Stephen had been a Cub Master of a Camberwell (London) pack. But that Saturday morning he had ferreted through his trunks upstairs and unearthed the “fang” that Cub Masters in training’s early days received instead of the woodbadge beads. The English “field” is just that -- fairly flat, grassed, with very few trees, but with a superb view of London’s lights at night, whereas our Victorian one is eucalypt forest, hilly and very dark at night. Stephen then insisted on driving me to the Cheam station. It was thus a significant 85 Published, Ibid., March, 2008, p 24 116 at the start of each camping season. These are then auctioned at the end of summer, a new set being purchased for the following year. Other members of the Churchill patrol: John Aldhous, Neil Robertson, Brian Gillman, Derek Robinson, Alan Bradstock, Joe Vivian, with London beyond the “boys field.” It was not easy to get away from signs of cities Horace Taylor leads a discussion on the merits of hike tents. Mine is in middle of the picture. In the distance are the tents that are “permanent” throughout the summer A feature of the English Gilwell is the “bomb hole,” which Hitler’s Luftwaffe left behind after the World War II. It was later extended and filled with water. This small lake is the site for water-crossing pioneering activities in the same way we use our much larger Lochan. Similarly the fire places were semi-permanent. The wood supply consisted of “off cuts” from a local saw mill, but they still burnt well. English trees are relatively free of the debris that falls from ours. So, within the confines of the camp, foraging, to which are accustomed, was not practical. The training ground At first I was surprised to see the park-like nature of the UK training ground. It was a grassy field separated from the other buildings by deciduous trees and surrounded by lime trees. This rather lovely Lime Walk was its boundary. In the centre of the training ground was the campfire circle where most of the outdoor sessions took place. As at our Gilwell it was a circle of logs where the leaders sat to take notes during the training sessions or joined for campfires. Welcome and settle in Tony Allan, an assistant Camp Chief to John Thurman, welcomed us and showed us around the training ground and its features. Even by 1966 the post-war migration from the colonies to the UK had led to places of worship being developed for non-Christian religions, such as the Buddhists and Moslems. Director of Leader Training, John Thurman, conducts a session at the campfire circle at Gilwell using contemporary training aids. Note open fields beyond I was allotted to the Churchill patrol along with six others. John Aldhous from Farnborough was elected our PL. I was soon trying to understand the various dialects surrounding me. Once again I was to find that although I kidded Around the perimeter, but in the open, “permanent” canvas tents and dining shelters had been erected. I gather they were put up new 117 myself that I was still English in character86; I was now Australian in my values. My Scouting was Australian and to my surprise it was somewhat different. it – experienced Scouters devoting their spare time to Scouting and as required. A field commissioner, Harry Taylor, had been a naval Lieutenant Commander. He had been awarded the George Cross for valour during the World War II as a member of the bomb disposal squad. The saw mill off-cuts needed to be cut up into short lengths. A bow saw had been provided. The other leaders were cutting them up in an ad hoc fashion with the pieces of wood slipping this way and that. So I selected four or five sturdy lengths and, with some cord, constructed a “saw horse.” This made it so much easier to cut up the wood after that. Bill Charlton was a tall Scot from Lanarkshire. David Garnett was a Group Scout Master (GL). The QM was a Dr. John Andrews. Eric Colley assisted with matters such as knotting and pioneering – a bit like the Troop Leader or QM of our courses in the early ‘sixties. I cannot recall our sleeping arrangements but I think we had collapsible camp beds. The tent The course How was I to judge this? I had studiously avoided attending one of Ron Hamilton’s Victorian courses. Ron was said to conduct “physical” commando courses for his trainees – that was not my scene! But in comparison, the English course was almost gentlemanly – not all that unlike the Rover Part 2 that I later completed in Australia. I suppose it is hard to get “rugged” when manicured grass and delightful deciduous trees surround the site. Here Graham Farley saws up wood for the fire from building off-cuts. He is using the “gadget” that he made so that the wood lengths could be more easily handled It was fairly clear that there were aspects of the course that were experimental. Hence, there was considerable deviation from the Gilwell handbook, which seemed sacrilege to me! floor was grass. Oh, for the training huts and permanent facilities of Gilwell, Victoria! The team On the first day, the Sunday, the weather was quite hot. Dr. Andrews provided us each day with a weather forecast – it was his civilian occupation. The then well-known camp chief, John Thurman87, was in overall charge of the two courses. Tony Allan was responsible for the conduct of ours. His supporting team was quite a distinguished one, but rather similar to the Victorian Training Team as I would get to know In the evening we were encouraged to attend local church services, although we had gathered for “Duty to God” in the camp chapel that morning. We were to report back and comment about how each denomination went about practising its worship. 86 Having been born in Cheam, Surrey, England in 1933 and accompanying the family to Australia in 1937 87 John Thurman was a prolific writer of Scouting books. There are two on campfires and at least four on pioneering projects. He visited Australia in the early ‘fifties and conducted courses at the main state training grounds 118 One only had to walk a few hundred yards before crossing a sealed road along which flowed quite a bit of traffic. As with the 8th Cheam hike, we never seemed to be very far away from human settlement. Map scales were generally down to 1:25,000, with the trees almost marked on them! During the expedition we did our second “good turn.” Towards the end of the day’s hike we solved a code and found ourselves at a Dr. Barnardo Boys’ Home. Here a Scout meeting was in progress. We joined the meeting and afterwards camped nearby. In the morning we carried out a “Herculean task” in the stables. Do I need to explain further? The camp Anglican and Protestant chapel at Gilwell The course proceeded into the week. The syllabus included the usual topics, such as pioneering, “Knowing the boy,” and the good turn for the course. The latter consisted of cutting away at what I termed “scrub,” but the English knew it as brambles, ferns and the like. This vegetation then had to be burnt off. I was able to demonstrate the virtues of kerosene! But when it rained, outdoor activities continued, but not the note-taking! To offset the dampish climate there were warm showers and drying rooms for clothes. I should have mentioned that “plimsolls”88 were the de rigueur footwear in English scout camps The colonial Both in scouting and in my service with the Territorial Army I found that I had to play the part of the colonial. I suppose my size attracted attention, but there seemed to be an expectation as to my performance and involvement. I coped with this and trust that I upheld “Aussie” traditions and expectations. Back at Gilwell Park we witnessed the presentation by the Chief Scout of the Commonwealth, Sir Charles Maclean Bt., and his commissioners of Queen Scout certificates to the many Senior Scout recipients present. The Expedition Scout courses have always had an overnight expedition89. But whereas around Gembrook scouters find themselves very soon in dense bush, here at the UK Gilwell, Epping Forest was a far less challenging equivalent. Sir Charles Maclean, Chief Scout of the Commonwealth, addresses the senior scouts who have earned their Queen Scout certificate – the equivalent of our Government House investiture ceremony 88 The tennis shoes were “runners” in my parlance. This was before the coloured and built-up sports shoes of today. 89 A cut-down version of the First Class overnight hike 119 These Senior Scouts would in due course parade before royalty at Windsor Castle. A campfire before hundreds took place in the evening. It was a quality program – no bugle calls or whistles. The following day the course concluded. I joined the 8th Cheam Seniors who were camping at Gilwell and returned home to Cheam with them by train and underground. Members of the 17th Senior Scout Wood Badge Course with their trainers, notably John Thurman in the centre seated. I am behind him. Please note the Scouter at the right end of the second row from the rear Wally Eacott. Wally was to migrate to Australia. He became a commissioner in Hoadley Area/Region. Neither of us had come across each other’s tracks until his granddaughter, who was a student at Braemar College, where I was headmaster, spotted me in the course photograph in Wally’s home! It can be both a large and small world! But I would be returning on several more occasions to the English Gilwell, with unexpected invitations to some very outstanding events. 120 Chapter 2490 asked for directions to the farm of Frau and Herr Hugg, whom I think was the Burgomeister. With 8th Cheam to the Black Forest in Germany I was fortunate that the dates at the end of July of the troop’s annual expedition fitted in nicely with my own plans. It was to be a 12-day trip, with four of those days taken up with just getting there and back. The decision had been made by the Court of Honour to go to the Black Forest (Schwarzwald) area of West Germany. I am not sure how the farm where we would camp was chosen or arranged. This was owned by Frau and Herr Hugg. It was harvest time. We would help with that. Our visit also coincided with the World Soccer Cup final. 8th Cheam Senior Scouts walk to their campsite The site It was a stiffish climb up the hill from the farm to the allocated site; a hillock amongst meadows. I should have immediately thought of cows and their liking for any form of salt, whether on persons, tents or eating utensils. We were to find out and soon. I was not to be in charge, which was a blessing in disguise; although I think I earned my keep. I was made very welcome. Peter Hudson, the leader, another of 8th Cheam’s scouter team, could speak German. Several members of the troop wore “interpreter” badges for French and German. Getting there There was no Eurostar rail service under the English Channel in those days. Our party would travel suburban into London Victoria and then take the “boat train,” as they were generally called, to Folkestone on the Kentish coast. The author proudly shows the Australian pennant flying from the ropes of his hike tent with the glorious countryside of the Black Forest clearly visible beyond Here we were to board a ferry, which in due course would set us down on the shores of France at Boulogne. The journey was then by rail across France. It was apparently quite easy for parties to like ours to reserve compartments in a carriage both ways. Customs and passport check too place at Mulhouse. There were two villages visible from the site. Kirchzarten was in one direction, while the twin towers of the Church of St. Peter were in the other. In addition to the twittering of birds and the peace of the meadows, we enjoyed the sound of church bells in the distance and the tinkling bells of the cows. Frieburg was the nearest large town to the camp site. Here we alighted and went by tram part of the way to the village of Wittental. Here we 90 Published, Ibid., May, 2008, p 30 121 We were nowhere near Austria, but the countryside reminded me of the musical, Sound of Music. We had soon erected our hike tents and we looked forward to a restful camp surrounded by magnificent views. The stockade Cows I spotted some discarded posts and coils of wire. I thought it might be possible to find enough posts to make tripods and then to place them in a circle with our tents in the centre. As with the “saw-horse” at the woodbadge course, I could see that something needed to be done to keep the cows away from the tents. During the first night, I could hear the cows, with their bells, wandering amongst our tents. They would stop to lick our food plates even cleaner. Would they also damage the tents as they wandered unrestrained? Wire could then be strung between the tripods, which in turn would need to be guyed. Peter Hudsonhelped me in this enterprise. Having built the barrier, we walked down to the village of St. Peter. The hikers returned shortly after we got back to the site. They were to show appreciation for the security of “the stockade,” as it became to be known. Activities Apart from housekeeping, obtaining supplies and cooking their meals, the Senior Scouts had a range of planned activities. On their first day they headed off for a two-night hike through the countryside. Peter and I went into Freiburg, where he showed me the sights and introduced me to all sorts of experiences, such as the open air cafés, the beer garden for lunch, and the opportunity to see over the Minster. We returned to camp by bus via Kirchzarten only to find that Peter’s tent had a large hole in the fly, presumably from an inquisitive cow. But the problem of their “invasion” was still offset by the solitude and the sight of the floodlit twin towers of the baroque church at St. Peter. 8th Cheam senior scouts have lunch. Calor gas bottles upon which the pannikins were balanced was the standard eating system amongst the lads with which I lived Sunburn I am sure it is possible to get sun burnt in England but the Senior Scouts were not experienced with a summer continental climate. With mild fine weather, they stripped off to the waist and then were surprised to find that their bodies were quite red and sore. World Cup It would have to be that England would be playing Germany for the 1966 World Cup in soccer. It was arranged with our hosts for us to Ray Gill has his hand on one of the bipods that surrounded the campsite with its wire rope to keep out the cows from licking clean the eating utensils &c 122 view the match on TV that afternoon, but before that the troop members gave a hand with the harvest. The 8th Cheam party having arrived at Schaunsland gather around the telescope/binoculars: David Clarke, Martin Burgess, Chris Hudson, Mike Hudson, Peter Hudson (trip leader), Alan Richardson and Ray Gill. The lads were arrayed in typical 1966 scout rig The good turn for Herr Hugg on the day of the World Cup The soccer match see-sawed, with neither side dominating. An equalising goal to Germany on the bell (or was it a siren) meant a further period of play. During this extended time, England scored a goal that was considered controversial, but it gave England the cup. Of course I was neutral! On returning to camp, we found that a party of German scouts (pathfinders) had joined us and we all studied their camping equipment and methods. Then a soccer match was held with “pick up” sides, which included the sons of the Huggs. Basel On the Monday, Peter and I took the train to Basel, on the borders of France, Switzerland and Germany. Meanwhile the Senior Scouts headed off by themselves for the day. Church and cable car In addition to morning prayers, we all went down and attended the service at the evangelical church in the township below, finding that we could follow the service quite easily. After that the troop had lunch at the “gast” house, where Peter kept an eye on their drinking desires, although UK lads in 1966 were allowed considerable leeway. I have a lasting impression of the Basel railway station. There must have been at least three trains ready to leave at the same time. Overhead clocks ticked away the seconds with their second hands literally clicking. As the various clocks showed the same time and the second hands clicked through the “12” at the top of the clock, three trains pulled out of the station. We were all a little tired. A couple went off on their own undertakings, others went back to camp, but I tagged along with the party that was heading for the “Rigi” or cable car, Schaunslandbahn. I am not good at heights and I have seen enough James Bond films to imagine what happens when the cable breaks! However, I did survive, as did the others and was delighted with the experience of being able to see the countryside and the tops of fir trees from aloft. Using bus and train transport, as well as our legs we saw a lot of the local country and visited all three nations. 123 By now most of the scouts had run out of pocket money and a special dividend had to be declared. On my own Despite the light rain that was falling I was determined to walk in the Black Forest. I set out with food, map and compass for a very exhilarating experience. The maps showed all the tracks and they in themselves were very well signposted. When the Boulogne train came in, there was the reserved compartment for 8th Cheam. I was relieved both for the partial comfort and privacy that it would give us and also to confirm my reading of the ticket date. A day too early In review Being a guest in the party, I had to hold my tongue at times, but experience is a good teacher. The lads started to pack up believing that they commenced their return trip that day. Something made me ask to see the tickets and there, quite clearly, was the date of the following day! We would have looked a bit silly trying to find a reserved compartment 24hours too early. It has always been my habit after trips such as this to list their good and bad features. The Senior Scouts certainly showed that they were independent and “self-starters,” but at times this verged on selfishness. A reconnaissance would have greatly helped. Forty-two years later, the more modern trains and the channel tunnel would have made getting there and back so much easier, quicker and more comfortable. But we all appreciated the scenery, our experiences and the assistance of some very generous people. Having proved to myself that I could explore on my own, I headed off on this bonus day to Freiburg. Here I found a jeweller’s shop with the comforting sign in the window that the salespersons spoke English. I bought a watch. I also purchased a number of gifts that I would present both in England and when I got back to Australia. Having lost a day, my pre-arranged eight-day rover ticket now commenced the following day. On arriving back in Cheam I got on with preparations for it, but as it was not a scout trip so it has no further mention in this continuing story. In taking the bus back to the camp, I received every help from the other passengers on it as they spotted the Australian badge on my scout shirt. They made sure that I got off at the nearest stop to Herr Hugg’s farm. Oasis My diary refers to this place and it must have been a source of both food and drink. When the Senior Scouts tired of their own menus, they tended to head for this café come restaurant. Returning home Having cleaned up the campsite and made both our farewells and expressions of thanks, we headed by train for Freiburg. At Mulhouse we had a four-hour wait for our connecting train. 124 125 Chapter 2591 Scarf I had already been issued with the standard Australian green scarf with the kangaroo on its apex before I set out for the UK, but I suggested to “Bus” that I would now be eligible for the official one with the coat of arms. He agreed, but would not be able to get it to me in time. Fourteen unforgettable days at Gilwell, UK A surprise phone call Society seems to have to suffer the jargon. For me in 1966 it could have been: “Things do not get better than this.” One Saturday morning while in England I received a phone call from “Bus” Derrick, then state training commissioner in Victoria, but who had many other portfolios. To use another piece of jargon, it was like “landing on one’s feet.” The Training the Team (TT) course would commence on Monday, 29th August. But only the day before I would have returned from a two-week tour of Scandinavia, that was nothing to do with Scouting. My Aunty Mary helped me with the clothes washing so that I could set off looking spick and span. “Graham, Australia has been invited to send delegates to the 4th World Training Conference to be held at Gilwell Park, Chingford. Would you be interested?” I accepted on the spot and then checked dates to make sure that I could attend. Gilwell again Perhaps I had not received a confirmation of my attendance, for early on the Monday I rang Gilwell and was put through to John Thurman. He assured me that I was expected. The rest of the day was spent in travelling to Gilwell and meeting up with the other members of the patrol on the TT course. My “Training the Team” course patrol: Irwin Jones (Jamaica), Joe Wehbey (Syria), Graham (Australia). David McCallum (Scotland), Vera Farrell (England), H. Belabdelouahab (Algeria), J Verschure (Netherlands), Tony Hung (Hong Kong), Gamill Fatana (Saudi Arabia) “Further, you might like to be nominated to attend a Training the Team course in the week before. If you can make it, then there is also the Gilwell Reunion in the middle weekend.” The grassy lawns of the English Gilwell at their best The White Wolves patrol, of which I was a member, included international representatives from Jamaica, Syria, Scotland, England, Algeria, The Netherlands, Hong Kong and Saudi Arabia. The other patrols seemed to have a similar makeup – this would be a fortnight of the “united nations” in Scouting. “Bus” added that he had been approached by John Thurman to include Alex Shaw in the training conference. Alex was an assistant leader trainer from Western Australia. He had been working in Scotland for three years. 91 Published Ibid, July, 2008 126 “Smartness and Good Order” I think we expected “central cooking,” as is the case with Victorian courses, although I would be the first to agree that in 1955, when I did my Scout course, the interaction around the cooking fire for all three meals a day was probably the most memorable part of the course. In the ‘sixties one could expect every course to start with this session. I was not disappointed. Gerald Baerlein, a deputy to John Thurman, took this session. Yet I doubt if there were two of us on the course wearing anything like the same uniform since we came from so many different countries. I think on the TT course we did have one meal cooked for us each day, but that first breakfast was eye-opener as each one looked at the other for someone to do it. I was not free of this “sin”! Sessions Perhaps I expected something on a far more advanced basis than some of the sessions that followed. There was even a publication on the subject. The photo on the cover shows Queen Scouts marching out of Government House, Hobart, following a ceremony After that session came the course photograph (shades of Kingsley Davis). When the photograph was made available, it came with the trainees’ names already printed below it – something that seems hard to achieve with our Victorian courses. Participants in the TT course during a session around the campfire circle. The course experienced good weather The title of the course conjured up in my mind all sorts of stimulating sessions. Having done some university study, I had probably hoped for something more theoretical than the practical sessions we still enjoyed. Cooking When it came to breakfast the next morning, I was reminded of the cartoon of the captain of the crashed aircraft talking to the survivors on the nearby desert island: “Twenty-five scientists, ten teachers, fourteen managers, but can anyone cook?” I have already mentioned The Scout and Guide Graduate Association with its quarterly magazine consisting of intellectual articles on Scouting and Guiding. The cooking task initially fell to Vera, the English Scouter. There were those amongst us who were prepared to stand on their dignity and others who had no domestic experience! The steady rain did not help. I felt that the TT course was still following the same structure of section Wood Badge ones, where the trainees act the parts of Scouts and the trainers, the Scout Masters. If “recognition of 127 prior learning” had been applied, I think quite a few of us might have had little to do. the many nationalities involved. As well, the Gilwell site has many structures which have been the gifts of various nations, including our Australian gateway. Nor did it help to have such a range of nationalities with varying degrees of ability with English. The international mixture of the group demonstrated the world-wide nature of BP’s Scouting, but there were downsides to this. But these comments do not suggest that the course was not worthwhile. We had the privilege of listening and working with many very experienced members of the British Boy Scouts Association and getting to know many leaders from other countries. That there were questions in the minds of some of them as to how to go about Scouting in 1966 would become apparent when the Advance Party Report92 came out later that year. Course concludes John Thurman spoke at the final flag circle. Here the certificates were handed out. That was followed by a hand-shaking ceremony, where we moved round the circle farewelling every member of the course. Most of us now left for their homes, but I was not the only person attending both main functions. One of these was Ian Hutton from New Zealand, with whom I maintained a correspondence for many years. Many sessions consisted of the members of the course giving impromptu responses, having been given a card naming the topic. But I was still expecting sessions on how to staff, promote and administer a course and, in particular, to get assistance with the challenge of the personalities on a course. I would be learning this by bitter experience in later years. Training handbooks Psychometric approach As a result of the contacts made over the fortnight, there was quite a bit of sharing of training handbooks. These were mainly at the Preliminary course level (now named “Basic”) but it gave me the opportunity to develop a library to some extent of what other nations were doing, particularly the Commonwealth ones. My diary uses this phrase twice. I think I meant by it that contemporary methods of instruction might have been used much more. Only one session went along these lines. I did not get the feeling that the course wished to explore in any depth a lot of the underlying psychological aspects of the movement. It had been a very practical week. Gilwell Reunion Ambience This commenced with afternoon tea on the Buffalo Lawn. As might be expected there were far larger numbers in attendance than in Victoria and most came equipped to camp in hike tents on the training field, catering for themselves or in groups. On the other hand, to attend any course at Gilwell in the UK was a privilege and I thoroughly enjoyed moving around the site whenever the opportunity arose and mixing with 92 Discussed in a later chapter 128 After that we all gathered to hear three speakers. The first was Lady Olave Baden-Powell. She was followed by the Chief Scout, Sir Charles Maclean, and then John Thurman. I was able to photograph Lady Olave with her family in front of the famous caravan, “Eccles.” By now the rain had become steady and all other activities were cancelled. I and others were glad to have the use of a hut in which to cook our lunch. The reunion now ended, but I was staying at Gilwell until the World Training Conference commenced on the Tuesday. Afternoon tea at the Gilwell Reunion Campfire This was held on the Saturday evening. Memory does not tell me as to whether the timehonoured “Back to Gilwell” song was rendered for each patrol name that might have been present, but I guess it was on the list. St. Albans I am not sure how the offer arose on the Monday, but Arthur Newcombe offered to take me, together with Ian Hutton (NZ), S. Masizana (Bechuanaland) and a leader from Tanzania, for a drive to Waltham Abbey and the cathedral city of St. Albans. We returned in time for the start of the conference that evening. Certainly John Thurman, with all his experience both practical and written, ran a very good campfire. At some stage the nations were called and I stood proudly for Australia. I met up with Alex Shaw and we soon formed an “Aussie” team, making sure that as many delegates as possible would hear about Australia down under.” Sunday I attended the Church of England (now “Anglican”) Holy Communion service on the Sunday morning and later took part in the Scouts’ Own. This was conducted by the National Roman Catholic Chaplain for Scouts, with Canon Lovelace reading the lessons. The well-attended Gilwell Reunion on the middle weekend. Would the conversation every run dry? At the final dinner we presented a couple of large varnished plywood kangaroos to a couple of the leaders. Lady Olave Baden-Powell and family in front of the caravan, “Eccles,” presented to them some years ago. The Melbourne based, Hon. Michael Baden-Powell is on the left. The present Lord Baden-Powell is on the right 129 The conference I soon realised that I was in the presence of some of the key leaders of the Scout movement from the countries that made up the World Bureau. In pleasant outdoor surroundings, we listened to papers and then discussed them about the state and future of the Association. Perhaps this was more along the lines that I expected the previous week. Alex Shaw and I presented “cardboard kangaroos” to Tony Allan and another training leader, Tony Kemp. I found myself taking copious notes. I noticed that there was a conservative group that was happy to continue to follow the Founder’s basic principles without seeking any great change. On the other hand, there was a group that wished to make the movement more “relevant” and to “bring it up to date.” There were few nations by 1966 that had started to include female members other than as cub masters. I recall chatting one night to a Swedish Scouter about their experiences, all of which seemed to be positive. On the second day, a paper was read on behalf of Bruce Garnsey, then Australian National Chief Commissioner. Australia was prepared to step the middle way between the conservatives and the progressives. Challenging I found that my approach to scouting was being directly challenged and I had to think about what I thought I was doing in offering my time as a leader. If I had to list any other activity in Scouting that has obliged me to think it through then I cannot name it. John Thurman presides at the dinner at the end of the World Training Conference at Gilwell Park, UK. Fairly weary, we packed up and departed. I was to show my thanks to “Bus” in a minor way a few weeks later by obtaining copies of the Advance Party Report. Final dinner and campfire At the final dinner Alex and I presented the “kangaroos.” At the campfire the pair of us stood and sang Waltzing Matilda and the Kookaburra song. The various patrols and groups of leaders put together some excellent sketches. One of these lampooned in a happy manner the training team – generally an indication of a successful experience for all. 130 The cover of the condensed version of the APR 131 Chapter 2693 Senior Scout and Rover sections were to become one section – Venturers. Farewell to Old England Rarely does Scouting review itself without varying the uniform in some way. This occurred in the APR with a view to” modernising” it. Berets were already “in.” but long trousers, dress shirts and ties would soon be the dress of the day. After an extraordinary year of rewarding activities in all of the interest spheres of my life, my Scouting experiences in the last few months before I sailed back to Australia were still varied. There was to be less emphasis on The Jungle Book and the Wolf Cubs would be re-titled Cub Scouts. The Scout Laws were revised in terminology and reduced to eight. The year 1966 was a year of change for British Scouting. Already the beret had replaced the scout hat. When on the two wood badge courses and the World Training Conference, I had sensed that change was in the air and not just in Britain. Australia’s own review of Scouting appeared in 1970, titled, Design for Tomorrow. The APR International weekend The Advance Party Report was to have a significant effect on Scouting in the UK. When it was released in September, 1966, it received considerable press publicity and was widely discussed in Scout and community circles. An International Weekend was held at Gilwell Park on the weekend of 25/26th June. I could not miss this. I had been allotted the nation of Liberia to represent. On arrival at Gilwell Park I was unable to find anyone else witnessing for Liberia so I gathered some Queensland Rovers to make sure that Australia was well to the fore. I was able to obtain copies of both the full and the abridged report. I mailed them to “Bus” Derrick in Australia, as I was sure that they would be of interest in Australia On a wood badge course that I attended I had already met Don Alverez, a London Scouter. Don invited me to supper with his team of Scouters. Half way through the campfire rain fell and I was glad to have Don’s invitation. Sir Charles Maclean, Chief Scout of the Commonwealth, had in 1964 commissioned a group of 24 experienced Scout Leaders, all under the age of 45, to examine the movement and make recommendations. He gave this important committee his assurance that its findings would most likely be adopted. On the Sunday after church, I returned to my tent for breakfast. I lit my portable stove. Unfortunately I suddenly realised that the entrance flap of my hike tent was smouldering. It was too close to my primus stove! Recommendations At the time the recommendations were “revolutionary,” but looking back with the hindsight of what the movement is now, it is interesting to read that the age of eight was to continue to be the youngest that a boy could join. No one talked about girls in the APR. The 93 I managed to extinguish both the stove and the smouldering flap but it gave me a bit of a fright. It could have been very serious. My Aunty Mary ironed on a replacement patch a few days later, but it was a lesson to me on where to set up stoves with naked flames in tents. You don’t! Published, Ibid, September, 2008 132 The resulting canvas would appear to have been lost but I have a photo of it. When, in my professional life, the school board decided to have a portrait of me in academic dress, I put forward Don’s name and he was commissioned Gang Show I bought tickets and attended the Gang Show at the Golders Green Hippodrome, taking with me some relations and friends. While the Melbourne Gang Show was of an equally high standard it was very satisfying to have the chance to see the celebrated show produced in its home theatre. Until the changed format of the Melbourne Gang Show, there was generally a two-year gap between the UK show and the use of some of its material in the Melbourne one. I can hardly claim to have met Ralph Reader, the Gang Show producer, but I had brushed past him on entering a lift in B-P house in 1974. He was out of sight before I realised fully as to whom I had seen. Camp sites British Scouting had a network of camp sites across the nation which could be used by its members and visitors. On several of my trips I was able to erect my hike tent in these secure and sylvan surroundings, namely at Folkestone and Arundel to paint it. ETSST Meanwhile in Australia the East Tarago Seniors, under the leadership of Ken Abrecht and Graham Dorling, were more than just surviving in my absence. In January, 1966, they had a very successful expedition, which included the opportunity to sail on a boat while off the Ninety Mile Beach in Gippsland. Portrait On the ship going to England I had shared a table with the Cameron family of Kew, Victoria. Don Cameron was an art teacher, but who had also designed coins for the Australian Royal Mint. I maintained this friendship with the family in England since they lived nearby at Morden while I was in Cheam. Probably encouraged by their leaders, the Tarago boys kept in touch with me by letter, telling me how they were faring. Under their new adult leadership they were clearly going from strength to strength. As Don was also a portrait artist, he asked whether he could paint my portrait in scout uniform. On a number of occasions I walked across Nonsuch Park94 to sit for him. The troop members had also improved their skills at the Hoadley Hide at Easter, when it was held in the Angahook Park – Lorne area, with a South American theme. 94 Henry VIII had a palace in this park, but only some foundations remain. It would not then have been “public.” 133 was considerable excitement in the group as the framework of the new 8th Cheam Scout hall was taking shape. th Adieu 8 Cheam In the latter part of 1966, I returned to the Therfield School at Leatherhead to complete my teaching obligations to the Victorian Education Department. I was required to teach a total of 80 days while on leave. On the following night the Senior Scouts and their parents staged a special night to farewell me. I received a carved wooden fruit bowl as a parting gift. On the following Sunday, I attended my last Scouts’ Own with 8th Cheam. My Senior Scout Woodbadge certificate and beads were presented to me following this service. As with the flags of 1st Cheam, 8th Cheam’s were also kept in the nearby parish church of St. Dunstan. The year was all but over. I now had to pack and look forward to sailing back to Australia, but this time via the Panama Canal. I had come to the UK through the Suez Canal. 8th Cheam’s Scout Hall begins to take shape Autumn and winter meant that the opportunity for outdoor Scouting activities was fewer. By now, Wally Wood had become the warranted SSL for 8th Cheam, so any responsibilities that I had for its supervision were at an end. Panama Canal It was not long before I set sail for Australia on the S. S. Oronsay. On board I met Fred Hill, MBE, who was on the Kent County team lay team. We took part in the ship’s play and other activities before he left the ship in America. On the 22nd October I went with the Senior Scouts for a day when they went on an overnight hike to the Bentley Copse, Leith Hill and the Holmwood area. Before passing through the Panama Canal, the ship called at Trinidad. On a local tour I passed Scouts of the 5th Port of Spain Troop practising pioneering, using sugar cane trunks and local cordage. A week later, I accompanied a party of the Seniors to the play, Forever April, which was definitely only for “over fifteen’s”! A farewell function by 8th Cheam in my honour On 17th November the Group Council thanked me for my involvement during the year. There 134 Revue of 1966 At the end of 1965 I had obtained a letter of introduction as a Scouter and also purchased the Australian scarf. I hoped to make some Scouting contacts during 1966 while on leave in Britain. At the start of my trip I obtained an invitation for the B-P anniversary service in Westminster Abbey. That had been a most stimulating experience. I was then thrilled to be asked to be 8th Cheam’s Senior Scout Leader – and by the boys themselves. I went on several hikes with the Senior Scouts of 8th Cheam, taking part in a range of activities whenever the dates fitted in with my diary. These included an expedition to the Black Forest in Germany. It was stimulating to be present for their Scouts’ Owns, for which they wrote the service and provided the music with guitars. Scouts of 5th Port of Spain (Trinidad) practise pioneering At Los Angeles I was hosted by Vern Dunn of the Boy Scouts of America. Unfortunately, Disney World was shut that day, but Vern took me to Knott’s Berry Farm, which was not dissimilar in its concept. The theme was more the “Wild West” and, apart from guns, horses and the train being held up, the layout was not all that different to one of Australia’s pioneer settlements. At the adult level, I completed a Senior Scout Woodbadge and then unexpectedly was asked to attend a Training the Team course, the Gilwell Reunion and the 4th World Training Conference -- all in one fortnight! I was able to get to one or two conferences on scouting. Welcomed home On arrival back in Elwood to my parents’ home, I was delighted to find that a large group of the Warragul Senior Scouts and Rovers had come down for afternoon tea to welcome me back to Australia. It was a seminal year in that the Chief Scout’s Advance Party Report was released. The Girl Guide Association also released their survey, Tomorrow’s Guide. I look back on 1966 with great satisfaction and have many happy memories, particularly of Scouting. A welcome home by ETSST members. Not quite the “uniform” of the ship farewell a yea earlier 135 Chapter 2795 Back in the land of Oz Geelong Prior to leaving for the UK I had successfully applied for a position at Bell Park High School in Geelong. With the trip behind me, I would need accommodation nearby. I found a unit in Belmont. I lived there for five years before marriage came along and a new life began. Flanked at my “welcome home” Warragul night by Randall Cadby and Russell Marriott I had not given it much thought but presumed that I would still do Scouting in Geelong, preferably with the Senior Scout section. These were the days before mobile phones. Yet telegrams could still miss the person for whom they were intended. It is hard to recall the world before the ubiquitous “mobile.” Nor was I sure how much spare time I would have for Scouts, seeing that I would also be continuing my military interests with the artillery regiment in Geelong. Ken’s party left Sydney a day early, but a slight “bingle” in Canberra with one of the vehicles had led Ken to be a day late in coming to Cooma. Ken sent a telegram to my home address about the alteration in dates but I had already left. Short of involving the police my parents would not be able to contact me. In the month before school resumed I somehow fitted in a trip to Warragul, the Gilwell Reunion and an attempt to meet up with the ETSST’s expedition as it came back into Victoria from NSW. I would attend my first training conference weekend a week or so after I started at my new school. In case the Scout party had overtaken us, Randall and I fell back towards Bairnsdale, making inquiries on the way as to whether the other party had been seen. This was all rather disappointing, but the pair of us found plenty of interest in the meantime. East Tarago’s trip I had borrowed the Austin van that I had presented to Warragul at the end of 1965 but having purchased a Valiant station wagon I returned the van to Ken Abrecht. Back in Warragul I was given a “welcome home” by my former East Tarago Seniors. Caught up at last Two nights later we were having an evening meal in a café in Bairnsdale. What made me look along the length of the shop to the road? I then spotted the green Austin van driving happily past. Ken Abrecht and Graham Dorling were to take the East Tarago Senior Scouts to Sydney and Canberra later in January. I planned to meet them on their way back, possibly at Cooma. One of the lads, Randall Cadby, who had been sick when the main party set off, came with me with his parents’ permission. 95 Telling Randall to stay where he was, I made haste to get to the car and chase after them – observing all road rules and due diligence in the process. Some distance towards Sale, the Scouts in the back of the van finally noticed my flashing Published Ibid, November, 2008 136 I was also aware that a “Boss” Hurst97 had been very active in developing Scouting in the area. Further, that he had assisted scouts from Nauru to the extent that the Scout Area was known as the Geelong – Nauru Area. Mr. Harold Hurst in his career had invented and patented the doublepointed wool-bale clip. lights and we both pulled over to the side of the road to meet up. My limited knowledge of Geelong was based since 1937 on many family trips to Geelong since we had cousins there. I had also camped at the Eumeralla Scout Camp near Anglesea in 1954. Neil Hardie and John McLennan wash the Austin van, now complete with its banner of ownership for ETSST Nauru In the days when the British Phosphate Commission (BPC) was mining that commodity in Nauru, Nauruan Scouts, in making their way to Australian jamborees, could only reach it by a BPC boat to Geelong. I returned to collect Randall. The vehicles drove home to Warragul in convoy. I slept that night in Warragul joining the Senior Scouts next day for the clean up. A training warrant At the Frankston Jamboree in 1934/5, when rain washed out some of the camp including the Nauruan party, “Boss” Hurst took them back to Geelong to “dry out.” Mr. Hurst was to play a leading rôle in the development of the Nauruan nation and its obtaining of independence. 96 About this time Norman Johnson , Branch Commissioner for Training, approached me about being the training commissioner for Geelong; the warrant in those days being ‘Assistant Area Commissioner for Training.’ My attendance at the Training the Team course in the UK was already influencing my life. Training conference I was invited to attend the annual training team conference at Gilwell Park. I drove my neighbour, Jo Allen, to it. Did one ever have an option with Norman? This was a challenge that I had not expected to come my way, although I did not shrink from accepting it. I met many old friends and started to grasp as to what would be expected of me in terms of conducting courses, supervising Geelong’s Eumeralla Camp training ground, and in encouraging leaders to undertake training. I knew very little about Scouting in Geelong, but was aware that there was a link with the nation of Nauru. Geelong was very proud of its history and its achievements. I was told that Mrs. Joan (Jo) Allen held an honourable charge and ran many of the training courses. Then I discovered that she and her husband, who also assisted with training, lived next door to where I had obtained the flat! 97 For further information on “Boss,” see: Chambers, David, ‘Boss’ Hurst of Geelong and Nauru, Hyland House, 1949 96 Norm was the author of Camping for Scouts and Others, a textbook for that part of the Scout program 137 reminiscent of that encountered in Warragul four years earlier. In turn I explained how the East Tarago Troop had come into being and its operation. He was very interested in this approach being explored in his district. Barwon Seniors Des Bath, GSM of 1st Belmont, supported the proposed formation. Peter MacAuslan, GSM of 1st Highton, was not so sure. He could see the benefits, but he had just completed a practical Wood Badge course. At this course, “Narse” Lesser had impressed on the trainees the goal of having a complete group, that is, one with (in those days) all four sections. My Honourable Charge as an Assistant Deputy Camp Chief (ADCC) . Later the general title of “leader trainer” was adopted (ALT or LT) Area meeting Jim Money, a holder of the Cornwell Scout badge for rescuing someone at sea, was Area Commissioner. I was not too sure of the area structure but accepted the invitation to attend the monthly area meeting, However Peter knew that I was coming to Geelong as a cousin of mine was on the group committee of 1st Highton and, at a meeting, casually mentioned that I was coming to Geelong and that I “knew something about Scouting.” I think the meeting included all area committees as well as the Ladies Committee. It was held in the Guild Hall. The various commissioners, both area and district, gave their reports, but I felt that training did not have a high priority. Given the history of training in Scouting, this was not all that unusual. But Barwon District already had a district Rover Crew that worked well. Somehow I had to convince Peter that under my scheme he would have his “own” senior scout section, but not have the load of providing its program of activities. It remained to see whether he was convinced. Hence, if there was little for me to do as yet in training, I might as well see what I could do at the Senior Scout level. Ture Hergstrom GSM of 2nd Belmont98 could see the benefits. Rod Bryant, already a warranted ASSL with 1st Highton felt that we could work well together. Ossie Lawson Ossie was at the area meeting. He was the DC for Barwon District. After the meeting I approached him and expected to be kept at arm’s length considering that he knew nothing about me, but he was eager to harness me and I had a meeting with him the following Monday night. In the course of the next week, I met the Senior Scouts from the three groups. I have no idea what they thought of me at the time, but it might have been a case of “any port in a storm,” and “we might as well let this unknown tall character from Melbourne have his head.” At this meeting Ossie explained that the Senior Scouts in his district groups were fragmented with little trained leadership, a situation very 98 138 Also AAC Scouts and acting AAC Training If the East Tarago Seniors could have the acronym of ETSST, then the Barwon District equivalent would be “BDSST.” However, the nature of the soil quickly led to bare patches if disturbed, and campers had to show care in how they moved off tracks. Groups were permitted to build shelters so that their roofs would catch the scarce rain water in tanks. First “Prelim” course These were the days when there were three fulltime Field Commissioners on Branch Headquarters. Amongst their duties was that of conducting Explanatory and Preliminary training courses, particularly in country areas.99 Yankee Gully It now remained for me to find a place that would be similar to Crossover near Warragul, where the ETSST had their first outdoor meeting in 1963. Once again the program would consist of a series of Scouting challenges. I had been recommended to look in the Steiglitz area, but on a reconnaissance after school one day with Michael Killingsworth, a 1st Belmont Senior Scout, I found that it was too dusty and that an area known as Yankee Gully would be eminently suitable instead. Stretcher cases on the Scout Prelim. At right is Max Grinter who was manager of Griffiths Bookstore As Geelong did not have a warranted scout section trainer, Allan Thomson ran a Scout Preliminary course over two weekends, the first at the end of February. I was on his team. I was being blooded! Eumeralla The Geelong Area had a fine camp site near Anglesea. This had been developed by “Boss Hurst.” Its southern boundary was the cliff top with magnificent views over the ocean. A “goat track” path led down the face of the cliff to the sandy beach below. “Boss” Hurst had his holiday home there and would drive down most weekends. He was very generous in providing camp improvements. For training, there was a large troop hall and some well-sited patrol huts. 99 Introduction to Scouting and Basic Sectional Techniques courses 139 Chapter 28100 hall. My cousin Catherine was out from England and as she was an experienced Guider and camper, it seemed natural to include her. I suggested that she might like to be on the subcamp team for the Hide. She gladly accepted. We both went to the briefing. Nothing had changed. There were a number of last minute decisions in response to queries from the floor. A full Scouting life Overview As 1967 developed, I found myself involved in three areas of Scouting. In Geelong I was forming the Barwon District Senior Scout Troop as well as “treading water” with the Area training portfolio. The third scouting interest was still in the fortunes of the Warragul ETSST lads. A small party of Guide Rangers would also be helping at the Hide. I was asked transport them to it. They would go on to camp at their own guide camp site at Warburton (Britannia Creek). In addition, I had been re-elected chairman of the Gilwell Reunion and was still involved with the Campfire Club. I also seemed to pick up tasks, such as helping at field days. It was a full Scouting life! Hot weather Little or no rain had fallen in Victoria since the previous Christmas and drought conditions existed. There was a high bushfire risk. There was every possibility that the Hoadley Hide would have to be cancelled. However just in time, the temperature dropped and rain fell on the eve of Easter in the Warburton area where the Hide would take place. But it had been a near run thing. Being still single, it was possible with careful planning to fulfil my professional role as a secondary school teacher at Bell Park High School, my Army Reserve membership and the three spheres of Scouting listed above. This chapter tells of the success by Warragul Senior Scouts in the 1967 Hide. Getting there At the end of the school day on the Thursday on the eve of Good Friday I packed everything I needed into the Valiant station wagon and drove up to Melbourne. In a mutual “tit for tat,” John Glover accepted a lift from Ringwood to Warburton in return for helping with the Gilwell campfires – just another little side commitment that I accepted. The Hoadley Hide On the Tuesday before the annual Easter competition, a briefing was held at a Kew scout Maximum seating for the Valiant was six persons101. Somehow we all found room as well as the camping gear in the station wagon’s luggage area. The party of two males and four females drove to Warburton on Good Friday morning through more very welcome rain. Catherine Carle (far right), my cousin from Sutton, Surrey,, England, with other lady (“slushy”) helpers 100 101 Published Ibid, December, 2008 140 Three across the front seat – no console in those days Airline booths A bonus night’s rest The Hide organisers would always find an excuse for checking the contents and weight of packs. On this occasion as the teams were “flying” in they could not have “excess luggage.” My party staffed two of the check points. Ken Carland was a member of one of the three ETSST patrols. Within an hour or two of commencing, Ken suffered a migraine headache and needed medical attention. As part of the Hide’s medical plans at sub-camps, Pat Kelly had turned his station wagon into an ambulance but at that stage there were no other facilities. It was decided initially to keep Ken on site under observation as he mainly needed rest. Ken was not much better an hour or so later. It seemed to me to be wise to drive Ken home to Warragul as he really needed home care. John Glover said he would come with me. It was not all that difficult to cut across the ranges and hills from Warburton to Warragul. We were soon at Ken’s home where two grateful parents in turn offered us a bed for the night. How could one refuse? John and I both had a good night’s sleep, a warm shower and a hearty breakfast before setting out to return to Warburton on the Saturday, but without Ken, who was still not fit. Gilwell campfire Ken Abrecht weighs in a scout’s rucksack After lunch, I drove Catherine and John across to Gilwell Park, meeting up with Dudley Wilson at the Wesley College campsite. Dudley was in overall in charge of the campfire. We “scrounged” meals with David Stidston at his 8th Prahran troop site. Trains brought the Senior Scouts to Lilydale. Buses, masquerading as aircraft, took them via Yarra Junction to the area in which the Hide would take place. “Ark” Sims was in charge of our sub-camp. The site was in dense bush. The only space in which to erect the square tents was on a track. We helped to make the camp ship-shape. Catherine’s guide companions included two Lyn’s and a Betty. In the meantime the Senior Scout patrols were getting on with the task of competing in the stunts which have always been a regular part of the Hoadley Hide. They looked a little bedraggled after their early start, particularly with the sudden change in the weather and the humid conditions in the buses. David Stidston plays host with 2nd Prahran at Gilwell 141 The campfire went well. We returned to the Hoadley that night. naming the time of any cup of tea or coffee, such as “a quarter to four-sies”! Easter Day Olympic games The three mainline churches had responded to requests to arrange clergy to conduct their denominational services. Father Geoff Stevens came on behalf of the Anglican Church. By now brilliant sun and warmth came to the area. Geoff wore his full robes including a cope, but, risking a double pun, he “coped.” All services were well attended. The Monday dawned and the washed-out games of 1965 now took place in the only area that was relatively flat and free of trees. However, many Senior Scouts just lay down and recovered from the exertions of the past four days and probably the lack of sleep. Graham Dorling, Ken’s assistant, and I supervised basket ball (Well may you ask as to what I knew about the game!) Ken ran an assault course. Every time that another patrol recorded a faster time, one of the ETSST patrols came back and bettered it. From where did they get the energy? Clean up It always seems to be easier to establish a camp than to clean it up. As usual, there were food supplies over. Without the Rangers to take home, much of them came my way. But I trust that when we eventually cleared the site we left it as B-P had said we should – the only thing we had left behind was our thanks! Reverend Fr. Geoff Stevens, Anglican priest, awaits his congregation at the Hoadley Hide, assisted by a Rover Three A-Grades After lunch I helped on a check point, Chunking. Here there was a customs post and the lads had to be positive if asked whether “they had anything to declare.” I was impressed with one of the Warragul patrols that came through, but of course, I was not biased. I had not been involved with their training for fifteen months! The final ceremony was held at Lilydale. Here the many tired patrols lined up with great expectations. Bob Swinton was the Commissioner for Senior Scouts. The lower grade winners were read out first. Even when it came to the “B” grade level, up from “C,” none of the ETSST patrols had been read out. “Elevenses” Then, almost in succession, the home troop names of the three Warragul patrols were announced. The three East Tarago Senior Scout Troop patrols had each been awarded an Agrade pennant. Catherine, being from England, was used to the idea that morning tea was known as “elevenses,” it generally being served at that time of the day. This was too much for the Australians and, led by Ken Abrecht, continued over the weekend to pull Catherine’s leg by 142 There was an outburst of joy at this achievement. Ken Abrecht fell to his knees in joy and prayerful thanks. I shared in his pleasure. They had been hoping for some boys from the home troops to be present but were not ready for the invasion of the victorious ETSST party, together with former members of the troop who wished to share in the victory celebrations. It was quite a night of dancing, charades and campfire stunts. Ken Carland was back on deck – you could not keep a good man down! A visiting Ranger was Barbara Robinson. A hesitant invitee was Ian Hastings, the first Troop Leader of the ETSST in 1963 and a born leader. They introduced themselves. A year or two later they were married. They now live in Ballarat, where Ian works in forestry with the DSE. Bob Swinton, HQ Commissioner for Senior Scouts, presents the first of three ETSST patrols with their ‘A” grade pennant. L to R: Geoff Spencer, Don Hastings and Paul Pianta Out marched the three PLs – Paul Pianta, Donald Hastings and Geoff Spencer -- to receive their pennants. Geoff had won with only three members in his patrol, Ken Carland being still home in Warragul. (On a happy note the powers that be declared Ken to be a member of the patrol and he received the appropriate badge for his very short-lived contribution.) A group of triumphant winners stop on their way home for a steak meal at the Golden Fleece service station on the Warburton Road. The pennants were the first of many Telling the world Before I left Warragul to return home to Geelong I was given the task of writing the press reports for the two local Warragul newspapers. Gratified all round, Catherine and I returned to Melbourne after lunch on Easter Tuesday. Rangers’ social Ken Abrecht stopped the vehicles on the way back to Warragul at a café where there was a celebratory meal. While they had steak, Catherine and I remained very British, enjoying our “scones and cream.” Senior Scouts from 1st Highton, soon to be part of the new “BDSST”102, had secured a “D” pennant. It takes a year or two to develop the That evening, another party of Rangers on a train trip, had arranged to have an overnight stop at Warragul where there would be a social. 102 BDSST – Barwon District Senior Scout Troop as distinct from ETSST – East Tarago Senior Scout Troop. Tarago District included Garfield, Drouin and Warragul amongst other townships 143 skills and techniques to attain the “A” grade standard. Now the potential members of the acronym, BDSST, had a clear aim. They would not disappoint themselves a year or two later. On the Crest of a Wave We’re riding along on the Crest of a Wave And the sun is in the sky. All our eyes on the distant horizon Look out for passers by. We’ll do the hailing When other ships are around us sailing We’re riding along on the Crest of a Wave And the world is ours. Ralph Reader 144 Chapter 29103 Venturing into a new Area First meeting Unlike the Warragul experience, which had commenced with a get together “in the field” at Crossover, the potential Barwon Senior Scout members were invited to a meeting at the 1st Highton Scout Hall. The first members of what would be the Barwon District Senior Scout Troop (BDSST) at a challenge day at Yankee Gully north of Geelong. We start again This hall stands impressively on a road frontage with a sizeable piece of land around it. It includes a “gully,” useful for pioneering – even if there was no water and hence neither crocodiles nor man-eating piranha fish in it! Other factors restricted the day to an afternoon, but the photographs and later attendances indicated that it had been a successful introduction to what could lie ahead. On arrival that night, I was glad to see a number waiting at the door and also that they were carrying or wearing sand-shoes to protect 1st Highton’s high quality flooring. With the twelve lads present I conducted a program of games, which included basket ball with balloons and the challenge to construct a Scout Transporter104 across the aforesaid “gully.” To work out patrols, I distributed a sociogram105. I suppose there was some point to this stunt! Charioteers: Peter Houston, Ross Howard, Barry Rowlands and Peter Howard; Duncan MacAuslan, Paul Thetford, Paul Hergstrom; and Graeme Little, Michael Killingsworth (the horse), Peter Rogers and Keith Lowe Yankee Gully The first field day went very well. Thirteen potential members of the new district troop turned up to take part in the series of scout skill challenges. These included decoding, map references; crocodile- filled rivers; and electrified fences that had to be crossed. Snow shoes had to be fabricated. A stretcher, able to comfortably carry an adult, was required to be constructed. As I had learnt at Warragul, a workable Senior Scout team had to have enough numbers to make it possible to hold a wide range of activities without any member feeling that they must attend every one for it to take place. Would thirteen be enough in Barwon District? Lady B-P Olave, Lady Baden-Powell, was visiting Australia in 1967. This was the sixtieth anniversary of Scouting. I took my Girl Guide English cousin Catherine (a Guider) to the gathering for Olave’s welcome at the Festival Hall. Dudley Wilson was MC for the function. 103 Published Ibid, May 2009 A pioneering construction of spars and ropes which pivots vertically for each scout to cross the gully 105 Invites the individual to indicate with whom they would like to be associated and with whom they would not 104 145 mothers, can be quite certain of what is planned, how and when. Ture Hergstrom, Area Commissioner for Scouts and GL 2nd Belmont, takes it easy on the stretcher stunt. He was one of several GLs to give BDSST every support Communication The big difference between the Warragul group and the Barwon would be that communication had to be handled differently. I was not a teacher at the school where most members attended; which was Belmont High School. “Word of mouth” could lead to confusion. In the end the only effective communication was by circular. Peter MacAuslan, GL of 1st Highton Activities Unable to find a find an unused scout hall, I had the Court of Honour106 of elected patrol leaders for a meal at my flat with the other members coming later in the evening. Des Barth, GL of 1st Belmont Rod Bryant, Assistant Senior Scout Leader Fortunately as a touch-typist and having access to school duplicators, I was able to put out a regular news sheet with complete details of activities, including uniform needs. When this method is used, then parents, particularly the In May, a group of the new troop camped over the weekend at the 2nd Belmont site at 106 146 Now known as the Troop in Council Eumeralla, where a lot of pioneering was practised. I had always been interested in projects that could be achieved with ropes and spars. A similar weekend was held later in the year. A “father and son’s day” was held with five sets attending. when the Barwon lads, led by their Scottish member Duncan MacAuslan, wore them as if they were Tam O’Shanters! David Ruppin, Ray O’Brien, Duncan MacAuslan and Paul Hergstrom on a commando bridge at Eumeralla Philip Law Barry Rowlands at Eumeralla weekend camp Geelong scouts annually staged Showtime, which was probably inspired in part by the Melbourne Gang Show. A bus was generally chartered to take scouts and parents up to see the Melbourne Gang Show each year. Philip Law107, AC, CBE, the famous Antarctic scientist and explorer, was the President for the Geelong Area. He made his time readily available, especially attending AGMs. He generally gave talks about his experiences in the Antarctic. At the AGM for 1967 he listed the changes and inventions in society since 1945. If he was to repeat this address today, the list would be much longer and more startling. After all computers were the size of a building in 1967 and as for mobile phones! Scarves and berets Having experienced the pressure in Warragul for a district scarf, even though it was against the spirit of Scouting’s rule book, I knew that there would have to be one for the Barwon District troop. Warrnambool “Prelim” The chosen pattern was maroon with gold piping. I had to find a mother who would make these scarves in a quantity so that I would never be caught napping at an investiture. My first training course as an Assistant Deputy Camp Chief108 was at Warrnambool, where I was assisted by John Dallimore, DC for Corio. At the time, English Senior Scouts wore maroon berets. I had either brought back some on the ship or had arranged with a supplier, probably a UK Scout Shop, to provide me with sufficient numbers and sizes. Once again I was upstaged 107 These were Mr. Law’s honours at the time referred to. He was later appointed Companion of the Order of Australia, (AC), in precedence senior to an Imperial Knight 108 In those days a Leader Trainer was known as a Deputy Camp Chiefs (DCC) and his assistant as an ADCC. 147 The course was listed for GSM’s (Group leaders). Country courses, although Warrnambool was hardly country, were always more demanding in organisation than those in the metropolitan area. I was issued with a third bead in time for the weekend. The course meant a car trip with home stay hospitality. The course was titled a “Preliminary Course,” the name traditionally used in the UK when, in the early days of training, it was found that scouters coming on a wood badge course did not know enough about Scouting; so they did a preliminary course to prepare themselves for it. Ian Hastings with his father at Brighton Grammar School camp at Labertouche, West Gippsland Explanatory course I was pleased that twelve members of the new troop were able to take part. Two other cars assisted with the transport. I met Barry Marshall at this weekend, which was also held in the Labertouche area. This was held a week or two later at the nearby 1st Highton hall. It was conducted by Mrs. Joan Allen and her husband with me assisting. The Explanatory course title (or nowadays “Introduction to Scouting”) prepared Scouters for the “preliminary” one! In 1967 it was an Saturday afternoon and evening course, with the evening meal supplied Labertouche The Warragul Senior Scouts were holding their father and son’s day at the Brighton Grammar School camp, Labertouche, which had been the forward HQ for the 1965 Hoadley Hide. I was able to fit this event in, using the excuse that I was taking Ian Hastings, now a student at the Creswick Forestry Commission school, to it. Somerama patrol: Paul Thetford, Duncan MacAusland, Michael Killingsworth and in front Ray O’Brien and Peter Howard at the hermit’s camp Somerama Euroa camp In addition to the annual Hoadley Hide, there were other metropolitan initiative weekends, such as Somerama and the Melbourne Gathering. Somerama was held in August in 1967. I still had the cooperation of the farmer, who had rights over the Seven Creeks area, to hold hikes or camps on his land. It again seemed to be the logical place for the first camp with the new district Senior Scout members. 148 Euroa camp on banks of Seven Creeks: Ross Howard, Duncan MacAuslan, David Ruppin, Adrian Lawson and Peter Houston In getting to the camp I had to come to terms with the smaller carrying capacity of my Valiant station wagon as against the previous 11-seater Austin van – now owned as a gift from me to the Warragul senior troop. David Ruppin washes his hair in the river Field Day Barwon District held a successful field day for the Scout Section in an area of Anglesea not far from the Eumeralla camp. Members of the new Senior Scout Troop were invited to assist with the projects and stunts. Ken Carland, a former member of the ETSST unit, came and lent a hand. The Seven Creeks was an idyllic site, with the sounds of the river rushing over rocks and encouraging peace and harmony. Unfortunately, both flood and bushfire have had their sad influences but time should erase them On the second day of the camp, the party set off for a three-day hike in the Strathbogie Ranges with the cooperation of the Forestry Commission of Victoria and a local landowner, Ken Dunnachie, of Forest Hills. On return, there was a visitors’ day before returning home to Geelong. In the evening a successful camp fire was held to complete the day’s program. 149 Unfortunately on the third weekend of the course it was found that a St. John’s Ambulance exercise was also taking place at the Eumeralla camp. This stretched accommodation to the limit. However the St. John’s personnel were able to demonstrate their skills in retrieving injured persons up the cliffs, using similar abilities to those taught in scouting. Ossie Lawson, DC of Barwon District Hiking Hiking would be a major activity in the BDSST. On one of the first hikes, Duncan MacAuslan and Paul Thetford joined me for an overnight hike in the Brisbane Ranges. Marc Blount, a HQ Field Commissioner, checks knotting skills of Ted Lowe, Max Grinter and Derek Colvin 100th Scout Woodbadge This course was conducted by Field Commissioners, Allan Thomson and Marc Blount. Gerald McNamara, who had been GSM of my first group, 15th Malvern, and now a widower, was glad of the opportunity to assist the course, mainly “back stage.” It had been a very dry spring and bushfires had occurred as early as September. Consequently, camping and hiking by Scouts were greatly restricted. For the “overnight” hike of the woodbadge course, the food was cooked at the camp and taken out to the hiking groups who were never far from urban settlement. Max Grinter, Allan Thomson, Jim Money (Area Commissioner), Mrs. Money at wood badge luncheon Gerald McNamara, GSM of 15th Malvern in 1952 when I became a Scouter. He helped on the staff of the course 150 2. You have been a lovely audience And your laughter came just right, No wonder we feel sad, Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? When we heard you all applauding We were keyed up with delight, O blow the passing hours Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? If you’ll all forget your buses And agree to lose your train, If you don’t go then we’ll do the Show Right through again. And you won’t get home ‘till morning With the milkman and the light, But when you’re here, the Gang is here And life is bright. Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? Rodney Drew, first BDSST Queen’s Scout Jindalee Jamboree, Queensland 3. When you realise we won’t meet For another twelve months quite, With such a dreadful thought, Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? You will all have lots more wrinkles, Double chins will loom in sight, so while you’re not too bad, Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? How about this for a notion, And we think it’s worth a cheer, It’s an idea this, we can all spend Christmas right in here. When you’ve really had a party Like the one we’ve had tonight, Let’s all stay glad and all go mad In sheer delight, Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? Preparations were well in hand for this event at the end of the year. The theme was “pirates,” as if senior scouts needed any such encouragement! Barwon and Warragul senior scouts would combine with others under my leadership. Who Wants to Say ‘Goodnight’? 1. When you’ve had a lovely ev’ning, Ev’ry thing’s been going right, No matter if it’s late Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? When you’re with a certain someone Who can set your heart alight, And you are in the mood Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? For the time and place don’t matter Even though the day is done You’d rather stay when you feel OK And have some fun, But the ev’nings nearly over For the hours are taking flight, And though it ends among such friends So warm and bright. Who wants to say ‘Goodnight’? Ralph Reader 151 Chapter 30109 the group site. I think our troop did well in the site selection. Jindalee Jamboree Queensland with its theme of Pirates The lead up In the months leading up to the Jamboree, I used what influence I could to successfully combine the Barwon with Warragul Senior Scouts in the same jamboree troop. Other troop members were from 1st Leongatha, 1st Koonwarra, 1st Dumbalk-Mardan, 1st Longwarry, 1st Garfield and 1st Meeniyan. Having had the experience of the Dandenong Jamboree, Ken Abrecht and I worked closely together with the Scouters from the other groups. We built on its lessons. Ken had a fabricated kitchen constructed and this was to be sent up to Brisbane with the other camping gear. Ken Picot, Jamboree group leader At the jamboree, Ken was assisted by Jim Rapkins. They worked well together and greatly added to the event’s enjoyment by all us in their group. Back at the Dandenong Jamboree our troop had erected a flag tower. It was thus inevitable that the Jindalee site had to have something similar. A ship’s mast would be in line with the nautical and pirate theme. It had to be taller than any rival construction. Obviously one of its flags would be the “skull and cross bones.” Picking up sticks Ken Abrecht must have had some bad experiences of travelling to Brisbane by road or rail. I could well recall the Greenbank Corroboree in 1957, which involved two to three days on vintage trains, with all the ensuing problems of sleeping, feeding and keeping clean. Ken Picot There were to be four troops in a jamboree group. One night I got a phone call from Ken Picot, an ADC from Ballarat. He was a department store manager. He said he would be the group leader for the jamboree and he asked me to come up to Bacchus Marsh for a meal at a local hotel to meet him and the Scouters leading the other three troops. I would escape this by driving up to Brisbane with my parents to stay with my sister and her family. Ken decided to encourage the ETSST and other Gippsland members to raise funds so that they could fly instead. I duly travelled to Bacchus Marsh and was impressed by Ken’s dynamic leadership and management abilities. A few nights later he arranged a telephone link up so that we could “toss” to see which troop had which quarter of 109 To earn enough money the Senior Scouts found that landowners in Gippsland were in the practice of burning off unwanted scrub and bush on their properties and would then hire people to pick up these burnt sticks and stack them for removal. Published Ibid, April 2009 152 It was dirty and exhausting work, but it brought in sufficient cash for the party to arrive fresh at the jamboree. They raised (in 1967 money values) $2,000, which covered air fares and jamboree fees. First “Scouts” Bill Dawson asked me to enter the camp a day early. This fitted in with my plans. I was to help Victorian Senior Scouts find their sites, when they arrived by train, for them to set up their camps, having located their equipment boxes. “Warratarbargo” Large swappable name tapes were ordered in similar vein to the “Hamarago on the Hill” one of the 1964 jamboree. The coined name of “Warratarbargo” combined the names of the Warragul, Tarago and Barwon districts. With a suitable degree of wheeling and dealing I was able to get some of the early arrivals to locate and transport the ETSST equipment boxes on to our site. Scouts will do anything for a badge or nametape! A local resident provided a Kombi van by chance and this made the task all that much easier. A hiccup Who knows what warning country troops got, but Ken Abrecht was suddenly faced with a “this day” requirement of packing up the gear for the jamboree and making it available for onward transport. As for 1965, we had amongst our gear a marquee, tables and forms so that in the hot and humid summer Queensland climate we could be as comfortable as possible. In the rush to achieve this, the various boxes that were available to Ken were quickly filled with cooking equipment and the like and the lids nailed down. But they were not roped. Warragul arrive At Jamboree HQ, I found an efficient person handling transport. A bus had already been allocated to go to Eagle Farm Airport to pick up the “flying Tarago boys.” I accompanied it to the airport. The flight, a DC9, was just about to land as we drove in. Out of the aircraft poured the clean, fed and fresh Warragul Senior Scouts! Arrival I arrived in Brisbane on the 23rd December, four days before the Warragul boys flew in. I could not resist the chance to drive out to the Jindalee site on this and the next day. I located the troop site and also looked for the boxes that Ken Abrecht had packed and sent up. Back at the site, everyone got stuck into the task of making the site “ship shape.” By now the boxes or rather their missing contents in some cases were affecting our site establishment but necessity is the mother of invention and we coped. The biggest losses had been some of the dixie lids and some personal gear. The site was a good one, but the boxes had been unloaded in several dumps. Some had remained intact with their lids. Other boxes had not been so fortunate – their lids were missing and their contents astray. The mast A day or two later, the Warragul lads, under the leadership of Paul Pianta, tackled the erection of the ship’s mast. This reached some fifty feet (17 metres) in height. It was safely guyed. A rope ladder led to the “crow’s nest” constructed at the top. This “look out,” complete with flags, had a dominating view of the surrounding sites. I celebrated Christmas Day with my parents and sister’s family. The Jamboree and its problems could have a breather. 153 of water. Several times a day the site was hosed down to control the dust. I think it saved our sanity. One needed a head for heights and faith in the knots and lashings, but many “pirates” ascended the structure. They also descended safely. Would such a mast be permitted nowadays with all the requirements for safe working? The view of the jamboree from the top of the mast The crew of the pirate ship assembled to meet the Governor of Victoria, Sir Rohan Delacombe The “ship’s mast” on our site Routine Patrol Leaders The weather was very hot and steamy. One day it reached 100 degrees Fahrenheit (38 C). To use my phrase at the time; “it was debilitating.” I decided that the same principles used at Dandenong in 1965 would be appropriate. Meals and parades would take place to the second. Uniform would be worn to meals. This regimented approach helped the lads to cope with the conditions. One or two of the ETSST Patrol Leaders would have been over 18 by the time of the jamboree. Neither Ken nor I saw any problem with this but the jamboree administration did! Ken wired me when I got to Brisbane warning me about this late advice by circular. The over-18 Senior Scouts were to report to the Works and Services Camp. I decided to support, if possible, the wishes of those affected to still enjoy the jamboree as PLs. My experience of bureaucracy in a volunteer organisation was that sooner or later the “chiefs,” who had made the decision at such a late stage, would have other challenges with which to cope, so I admit to being “lethargic” in complying with the ruling. The troop invited guests to meals whenever they could. In keeping with the theme a “long boat” with a crew would be sent to bring them to our “island” site. Very early in the jamboree Ken had bought a garden hose. In 1967 Brisbane had no shortage 154 them. I often thought that the theme of the jamboree lent itself well to the Senior Scout section. We became past masters at borrowing useful equipment and hanging on to what we considered was our own. I found after a day or two that Victorian contingent HQ had only listed the names of two of our “over- 18’s.” We kept the existence of the other four under cover until I was eventually called to front the Victorian Chief Commissioner. Interstate rivalry But after “free and frank discussions” a compromise was agreed, with the “over-18’s” being allowed to sleep with the other adults on our site and only one of them required for “works and services.” Instead of having a Jamboree scarf, there were State scarves. Perhaps the troubles would have occurred anyway but this easy State identification encouraged the groups of New South Wales and Victorian Senior Scouts to heckle each other. Victorians made up a third of the scouts in camp. Whenever the troop could, it volunteered to do service in the Jamboree area, in part to be Scouts but also to show that Troop V4P3 was very willing to build up credit and offset any negative feelings towards me and the troop because of the “over-18” sequence. Chief Scout The Chief Scout of Victoria, Major-General Sir Rohan Delacombe, visited our site. We were probably as good a band of cut-throats as he could have found. He did not attempt to climb the mast. In this he was only following my lack of example! BDSST lads entertain Sue Falconer of 2nd Belmont My memory is that when the “Vics” said, “Up the Vics,” the New South Welshmen would reply, “By the neck”! Feelings got quite heated and I advised my members never to go walking at night singly or to seek trouble. Program The Jamboree program was as usual a very full one. The arena always had displays or concerts day and night. The Victorian display of pirate treasure and the crews of four “ships” fighting each other was spectacular, but all makeshift swords had been confiscated before the event. I wonder why? The Governor of Victoria, Sir Rohan Delacombe, visits our site: Paul Thetford, Duncan MacAuslan and Ken Abrecht Seafaring terms A Discover Brisbane challenge encouraged the interstate visitors to get out and about. Prior to the jamboree I had bought a book about pirates. I also tried to master ship’s time with its various bells and watches. A hand bell sounded 155 The ETSST lads scampered across the short distance to the aircraft in the rain and flew back in comfort to Melbourne. Rain On the final Friday night rain fell. Saturday was the day when the tents would be struck. With fears of canvas being mildewed if packed wet, there were frantic efforts by many leaders to consider whether flying the canvas or using a fast truck to get them back to Victoria would be better than the planned arrangements. The Jindalee Jamboree was over just in time. Over 300 mm of rain fell in Brisbane over the next few days! It would be the last jamboree to which Senior Scouts would be invited. From then on they would attend “Ventures.” My involvement in the second of these at Nunawading in 1969-70 will be shared in a later chapter. The rain did ease to permit drying out to take place, but not all tents or marquees could be packed dry. The last forty-eight hours of the jamboree were a little “harum-scarum” as a result. This time the Warragul boxes were thoroughly roped for their safe homeward journey. Training Team meetings Without putting an exact date on them, Norm Johnson, the training commissioner, regularly called meetings of the various Assistant Area Commissioners for Training at the then branch headquarters, namely in Elizabeth Street. Jamborees have some wonderful benefits in terms of meeting scouts from other nations and taking part in some memorable activities. I can still vividly remember sitting on the ground one night and listening to the Sydney Symphony Orchestra at the 1952 Greystanes Jamboree. He got into the habit of booking in my name a table at the Naval and Military Club110. I would drive up from Geelong and join Norm, together with others, such as Ken Bayly and other “single” leaders. Norman was glad to relax at the end of a day of dental surgery. Meal and wine costs seemed ridiculously low in comparison to 2010 values, but then most of us had ready income. Warragul fly out There was a slight muddle with the return bus to the airport but the chap in charge switched an available bus for our needs. In those days, passengers normally walked across the tarmac to join their planes. This was how it was that day but just as the Boeing 727 was about to load, there was a rain squall. Without too much regard for punctuality, we would then move to the meeting in the headquarters building where on more than one occasion we found a group of stone-cold sober AACs awaiting us with barely disguised irritation. But the meetings were always fruitful and ended in a high morale and expectation, such was Johnson’s personality111 110 Unfortunately, this club folded in 2009 through a number of factors. These included a change in attitude to club life; the decline in the army reserve; the move of regular army personnel to Canberra and beyond and the like. It will be sadly remembered. 111 Norm was the author of the booklet, Camping for Scouts and Others, and was renowned for his success as a scout leader. His personality attracted many outstanding leaders to staff his group’s sections, including Bob Stinton. Warragul boys run to catch their flight home to Victoria 156 between 14 and 17113 require quite a degree of sophisticated understanding and they more than test the fortitude and experience of their unit leaders. Chapter 31112 Multiple warrants and the Axedale Hoadley Hide I was also chairman of the Gilwell Reunion again and still very much involved with the Scout Campfire Club. You don’t have to be mad I would not recommend the pace of life that I set myself as 1967 became 1968. Back from the Jindalee Jamboree and ready for another year at Bell Park High School as a commerce teacher, I had other responsibilities than just Scouts. Australia Day At a reception at Eumeralla Scout Camp, the Chief Scout of the Commonwealth, Sir Charles Maclean, Bt., and his daughter, Jeannette, were guests. The Area Commissioner, Jim Money, presided at the luncheon. BDSST members took a leading roll in the function But I still fitted in a week as a QM at a Gilwell woodbadge course. The experience was similar to the 1965 course when I was TL, but I was now administering training in the Geelong Area. I think I had “won my spurs” to be on the training team. Raft race I held major’s rank in Geelong’s CMF artillery regiment, and shortly was to be seconded to prepare for the tactics course for the next level in rank, that of lieutenant-colonel and unit commander. I was also a lay reader in the Anglican Church and often took the service at St. James’, one of the “daughter” churches of St. Stephen’s Belmont. Multiple warrants The Geelong Rovers annually conducted a raft race on the River Barwon. Rafts of wood and large metal drums were constructed and then floated on the River Barwon. The crews “rowed” them to the finishing line with every chance that other crews would ‘bombard’ them on the way past. It was the BDSST’s first time to enter and they won the Senior Scout event. In hindsight I agree that one warrant (or certificate as it is nowadays) should be sufficient for anyone to conscientiously discharge, but try telling that to the likes of a Graham Farley in 1968. Thre Area (now Region) warrant as AAC Training was quite sufficient. I was also the DSSL with Barwon District. Gilwell Reunion Probably all Scouters consider that they are leading the most challenging section, but I would suggest that youth members aged If I was to ever write the history of the Gilwell Reunion, I would have to admit my endeavours, together with those of Norm Johnson, to significantly separate the dates of the reunion 112 Following a change of editorial policy, no more of these chapters have been published, but have been placed on CD 113 157 Fifteen to eighteen in 1968 It was at the 1968 reunion that Bill Agar and his friends began the Saturday night social program with dressing up, dancing and frivolity on every side. For once Scouters could legally kick up their heels! Sir Charles Maclean As the Chief Scout of the Commonwealth had visited Australia for the Jindalee Jamboree, he stayed on for a while visiting scouts across the nation. Having won the raft race, the intrepid crew turn to give 1st West Geelong a welcome with suitable soft missiles Geelong-Nauru Area was privileged to host him and his daughter, Jeanette, on Australia Day at the Eumeralla Camp. from those of the Training Team weekend. Traditionally the reunion had been on the Australia Day holiday weekend with the training team’s conference a fortnight later. The reunion organisers always hoped that members of the training team would appear at the reunion to share with the leaders that they had trained. But the two weekends so close to each other at that time of the year often proved to be too much. To break this nexus, Norm and I changed the date of the reunion to a weekend in the middle of March. We got away with this for two years before Gilwellians requested that it be returned it to its traditional Australia Day weekend. I have no memory as to whether more training team members ever attended the reunion in the two years when the dates were changed. Duncan MacAuslan presents an area badge to Jeanette Maclean, daughter of the Chief Scout of the Commonwealth, Sir Charles Maclean at Eumeralla The day included a luncheon to which area and district leaders were invited. Elisaid MacAuslan, Duncan, Ossie and Mrs. Lawson, and Peter MacAuslan at Australia Day function. A cheerful lot wash and dry up in their service role: Peter Houston, Adrian Lawson, Greg Parker, Keith Lowe, Peter Rogers and Peter Howard at Eumeralla scout camp 158 Camping Course The water truck Barwon senior scouts provided a “service patrol” to support the adult leaders on a camping course conducted by area training staff. The Axedale bush was quite dry and water was at a premium. On the first night many patrols came into our sub-camp to camp over night. Most were out of water. Hide headquarters seemed reluctant to send out the water truck at that hour. “Beaver” Smith was a retired lieutenant-colonel. I was a major in the army reserve. “Farley, go and get that truck and do not come back without it!” I went with Barry Marshall in his car to carry out the order. We set out for Hide headquarters and presented ourselves with “Beaver’s” demand. There was an attempt to mollify us with hospitality, but we said that we would remain outside until we saw the water truck on its way to our sub-camp. Either “boasting” or responding to the phrase at the time, “Do you want a medal?” with “I have a chest to pin it on!” There were all sorts of rash promises in this regard but eventually it was realised that we were serious and the truck finally started up and moved off. I am not sure what would have happened amongst the thirsty gold miners if commonsense had not prevailed. Hoadley Hide at Axedale Cliff Dent and I found ourselves on the subcamp staff of “Beaver” Smith. The theme for the Hide was deep-lead gold mining. Movement to the site for Senior Scouts was by train, using the residual section of the former branch line to Kilmore East via Heathcote from Bendigo. This segmented branch line served a defence establishment; since abandoned and now part of a “rail trail.” I have a clear memory of another night when Robert Fallshaw, in his part as a hide leader, told (or rather “stirred up”) the scout “gold diggers” with news of a wonderful new strike some distance away. Entering into the spirit of it all the gold miners enthusiastically set off in pursuit of their Eldorado. There was no longer a platform at the line’s then terminus, but that did not inconvenience the scouts either detraining or getting back on the train at the end of the competition. Rucksacks were hurled on and off with the bodies following them, notwithstanding the gap between ground and carriage floor. On that Hide, Leon Costermans, then a high school science teacher, trained the Senior Scouts of 1st Alexandra so well that they won an Agrade pennant. They would certainly have known their trees; one of Leon’s specialities. The Axedale forest, unlike most, was relatively free of scrub. A hiker could move freely through it on a compass bearing. In view of that year’s drought, scouts could have also been evacuated very quickly. Commissioner Wood Badge Course Norm Johnson, then branch training commissioner, teamed up with Bill Dawson to run a combined Group Leader/Commissioner wood badge course at Eumeralla. 159 Anyone who worked with Norm, will know that the program and timings could vary with Norm’s whims. One learnt to cope and be flexible. But there was a good spirit on the course. “Boss” Hurst had recently upgraded the Bill Dawson, who worked closely with Norm Johnson on many scout ventures, demonstrates his chef skills A month or two later I led a group of hikers in the Kinglake area. By now it was taken for granted that maps would be colour layered to show elevation. In 1968 photocopying was sufficiently advanced for clear black and white copies of ordnance maps to be made. In turn, after colouring for heights, these maps were covered with plastic to cope with wet and muddy conditions. Norm Johnson, HQ Commissioner for Training discusses the virtues of the “square tent” at the WB course training facilities. In addition, their location at the top of the cliff above the Anglesea beach, was enervating. Despite this, I again demonstrated my ability not to read a map, although I rarely got lost! The staff hut, built by “Boss,” later to be named “The Lodge,” had enough space for a session room, a kitchen and sleeping for a dozen or so. Just outside was an open air training session circle. It was also the occasion that on the day of departure, and finding several members had not had their breakfast when they came to my home, I fed them with “peas and toast,” which was about all the food I still had on hand! I was never allowed to forget that menu. Hikes Later in the year there was a hike to the former Wensleydale coal mine. The Barwon Senior Scouts continued to enjoy their hikes. One took place in the Strathbogie Ranges area, building on the lessons of the one the year before. Area Training Panel In the course of the year the framework for the area training panel started to fall into place. The first stage was to identify and appoint ADCs for 160 together with a neat cardboard pocket sized area directory, which listed the key names of area personnel, the key dates for 1969 and the area training program. Training and to bring together training records for the Geelong Area Scouters. I convened the first meeting in August. It was held at my flat. I was and still am a great believer that a meeting should start on time at the appointed time, ie., eight o’clock. Equally, sixty minutes is quite long enough for business. At nine we would rise for supper. The meetings were held on the fourth Monday of each month with Part 1 Woodbadge studies on the 1st Monday. I later got permission from the owner of my flat to paint a wall in my spare bedroom with blackboard paint. On this wall I entered all the groups and names of their leaders, using a different coloured chalk to indicate progress to their wood badge. I obtained details from branch headquarters, which was then still at 384 Elizabeth Street. To add a bit of status, I obtained quantities of Maclaren tartan ties (men) and scarves (ladies) from overseas to present to the members of the training panel to be worn in civilian dress if they so wished. Area/district/group events Since they tended to be held each year, a summary might be useful. The Area held an annual ball. A scout-warranted policeman, John Grover, was very active in both Area and Senior Scouts until he was posted to Swan Hill at the end of 1968. The area was exploring the establishment of a branch of the Scout Shop114. October was a busy month with the area’s annual Eumeralla Day. Lyn Smith, secretary at the Bell Park High School and a warranted cub leader, undertook to be secretary and maintain the records. Explanatory courses were held at the 1st Highton scout hall before they were transferred to Eumeralla. The district ran a patrol leaders’ training course for the Scout section, together with a field day in October. The district Senior Scouts attended an Ambulance course, as well as the annual Father and Sons’ day. A party took part in the Melbourne Gathering, an annual challenge weekend like a mini Hoadley Hide. Lyn Smith, training panel secretary At the end of the year an overnight conference of the training panel was held at the renamed “The Lodge” at Eumeralla to plan the 1969 calendar. Edna and Ted Parker played a leading role, with Heather Grinter assisting with catering. “Flag Break” This was the name given to the training panel’s newsletter. Lyn prepared this as well. It was mailed to all warranted scouters in Geelong using the cheap postage rates prevailing at the time. The first copy came out at the end of 198 114 161 Now handled through the Snowgum chain of stores I even fitted in a Gilwell Reunion committee meeting on the way in Melbourne. We slept overnight in 2nd Warragul’s scout hall. The particular model Valiant that I owned at the time could ‘eat up’ the miles or kilometres and we found ourselves in East Gippsland in no time. “Blind folded” fathers are led away guided only by a rope at the annual “fathers and sons’” day Queen Scouts Duncan MacAuslan, Paul Thetford and Adrian Lawson qualified for their Queen Scout badges which were presented at a suitable group function. Later in the year they attended the Government House function. Adrian Lawson, Paul Thetford, Gary Roberts and Cliff Dent on reconnaissance for the January expedition to the Gippsland Lakes – the theme being canoes Having completed the reconnaissance of the Gippsland lakes area, I turned the car for home. It was a late arrival back in Geelong. The next day I had to front up for Eumeralla Day. I was glad that I was then young and fit. Nowadays I would be concerned to hear of any one trying to fit all that into one weekend. Bairnsdale reconnaissance A small group of the patrol leaders set out with me on a Friday night from Geelong for Gippsland to check out the possibilities for the January expedition, which would have a canoeing theme. Eumeralla Day and a photographed tower to prove it! Ted Parker and his wife established 4th Belmont 162 Berets In November I was invited to represent the area at the monthly headquarters commissioners’ meeting in Melbourne. I am sure there were many other more important matters, but some time was spent in discussing the pros and cons of whether the Senior Scout section should be allowed to wear berets. (I must admit that the BDSST were already wearing them. Could I justify them as “camp dress”?) But it is interesting to read the minutes of that commissioners’ meeting. There were those present who thought the current hat was still quite suitable, even though seniors would be wearing a hat that already had experienced three years use in the scout section. Similarly some commissioners present felt that the movement should set the example of having headgear that had maximum sun protection, although this was countered with the thought that most troops met at night. Berets were already worn in Western Australia. There were those that considered that Senior Scouts wished to wear something different. Finally, two or three wished to wait for the decisions that would be based on the Design for Tomorrow report in 1969. I doubt whether the discussion affected even one youth member’s attitude to the matter. I find it interesting to read that “Mr. Farley115 stated that he was a strong advocate of Scouters setting an example.” This must have been said “tongue in cheek” with my fingers crossed behind my back! The year ended with the troop preparing canoes and getting them and themselves ready for the canoeing expedition on the Gippsland lakes. 115 The minutes were very formal. The ”Mister” title was used throughout 163 The destination chosen was the series of lakes in East Gippsland. The itinerary over ten days would include canoeing down the River Mitchell from Lindenow to Eagle Point. Then after an overnight hike on the ocean beach, they would spend a night or two in Lakes Entrance. The third phase would be exploring the North Arm before returning to Metung and then home. Chapter 32 Canoeing expedition to Gippsland Lakes BDSST In the course of the year some “Under 15” troop members came up to the senior troop. One of these was Gary Roberts who was to demonstrate great qualities of leadership. The overall numbers increased, but at the same time some members elected to find other things to do other than Scouting. It was agreed that the seniors would cater and cook in pairs. For ease of storage, the boys were encouraged to have a box for their food, clothes and other items. The main body would travel by train to Lindenow116 and return from Bairnsdale. Well, half of that plan worked! Once again it was clear that the ones that would remain active in the troop were those that came up knowing who was in the adult leader team and that they approved the nature of the program. Whereas Warragul had tended to have expeditions based on vehicles, the Barwon members knew that canoeing would be the main feature. Trailer “They” decided that I would tow the trailer carrying the canoes. I was “instructed” to pick up the four-wheeler trailer the day before we left. The senior scouts would construct a timber framework for the carriage of the canoes. Maroon T-shirts There are times when we should appear in “uniform,” but all too often the members will take diversity to extreme lengths when uniform is not required. I decided to have a “uniform” camp dress and got a Geelong sports supplier to appliqué the letters ‘BDSST” in yellow on the back of maroon T-shirts. Loading the four canoes on the hired trailer These were initially worn under sufferance. All too often the “D” looked at a distance like an “O,” and the shirts became known as the “BOSST” shirts. I had never towed a trailer and this was a 16foot117 one. The chap at the garage showed me how to hook it on to the car’s tow-bar and make it secure, while at the same time giving me a spare tyre for it. I swayed from the garage to the scout hall as I started to learn how a trailer affected the driving of the Valiant. The expedition plan I found that the Barwon boys wished to take a main role in organising their expedition. They decided to make canoeing their theme. The troop had access to four canoes – two Canadian ones and we borrowed two others. Cliff Dent was the other leader. He drove the Austin van from Warragul, which was on loan 116 The Bairnsdale train stopped in those days at Lindenow 117 Approximately five metres 164 It was interesting to watch the cooking arrangements. One pair dined in comfort each time, with table cloth and seats. Others took short cuts and, if the food did not have to be cooked, they would eat it cold. to us for the expedition. It became the main personnel carrier. The two vehicles set off after church on Sunday, 19th January, as an advance party to a scout camp at Lindenow. This site had been used by Warragul two years earlier. Washing up was monitored. The good dining pair resorted to offering to wash up the Scouters’ plates and so save themselves the trouble of boiling their own water for the purpose. It was a useful arrangement. On the Tuesday the lads tried out the canoes, demonstrating that they could “bottle” the craft but not get into further difficulties. They also placed buoyancy items in the canoes. All was ready for the official launching the following day. Paul Belin shows off his food “munga” box to his mates Launching Situated on the River Mitchell, the site had a large log cabin in which meals could be cooked if necessary on fire ban days. The main party then arrived by train and hiked to the camp site. Several would complain of having blisters, and bandaids were used in plenty. On the Wednesday the four canoes, with up to three crew each, were launched. They were to canoe down river. The balance hiked to the next camp site. The adults drove the vehicles to a point further down stream where they set up camp. Settling in The Senior Scouts erected their hike tents with most of them wearing their new maroon T-shirt, though I easily detected some resistance, principally on the grounds that it was my idea and not theirs. The evening meals were cooked in the log cabin. Launched, the two Canadian canoes and their crews, with still one of them protesting about the need to wear a vest One canoe got into difficulties. The local post master advised us of the fact and their location. This one and the other canoe were rescued. Meanwhile the hiking party came in. Settling in, both to wearing their “BDSST” T-shirts and to their hike tent sleeping arrangements The camp site was near to a road bridge. Along the river a water pump hammered away all 165 night. Local cattle were moved from one paddock to another over the bridge. Their hooves made a strange rumbling noise as they clop-clopped overhead. Life jackets It was a constant struggle to enforce the wearing of life-saving devices. The argument used against me was that life jackets as such were so bulky that they made canoeing difficult. The preference was for buoyancy vests, but even these would just be left in the bottoms of the canoes rather than being worn when they were out of my sight. Gary Roberts, TL, worked out an ingenious plan for the following day, whereby the canoes were in the water all day but with a change of crews. I was deputised to make the RVs and recover the canoes at the end of the day. Granted the rivers were tame in comparison to the River Goulburn, that would be the scene for the 1970 expedition, but it was still of considerable concern to me. It was found that the lakes themselves were too rough to cross, irrespective of the life jacket issue. Instead, the boys preferred to hug the banks, believing that they could walk to them if the canoes were swamped. The party would proceed downstream through Bairnsdale to Eagle Point. Mosquitoes These insects gave us all a hard time throughout the trip. I had brought an atomiser with me but had lost part of it. Repellent cream was used in great quantities. The “mossies” thrived in the wetlands of the lakes. Ocean Beach hike Eagle Point and Guides I am not sure how the boys were transported over to the ocean beach, but I was aware from Ken Abrecht’s previous spell in this area that it was not hard to hire a launch for the purpose. The lads were to spend one night out before joining us at Lakes Entrance. The day’s canoeing was uneventful. Cliff and I were able to make the drops and pick ups according to the plan. At the end of the day we arrived at the Eagle Point campsite. The camp warden warned us about the insects, but we needed no telling. We got some temporary relief by camping where the off-the-ocean breeze was the strongest. At this camp site a company of Girl Guides was camping further up the hill. It is surprising how chivalrous Senior Scouts can be in these circumstances. I made an official visit to their camp. When I returned I found members of the troop surrounding a young guider who had a pressure lantern that she claimed she and the other leaders could not light. What an excuse! I spoilt it all by showing how easy it was to light it and she left with an escort and her lantern to her camp. Peter Agg and Peter Roberts share cooking and catering However, I did notice that not much in the way of tentage or supplies was taken. Cliff and I were surprised that evening to find the HQ tent full of beaming hikers who had put on the pace along the coast and then found a cooperative 166 service station café118 nearby to provide a last night meal. My diary indicates that this twocourse meal cost only a dollar a head. That should give some idea of inflation since 1970! boat owner to bring them back to our site across the water. Rest day and storm On the Saturday it was planned to have a day of rest. This included shopping for supplies. In the evening there was every sign of a storm coming. It was unlikely that the hike tents could withstand the onslaught and I directed them to bring their sleeping bags and gear into the main square tent where they were stacked safely. Rail strike Once again I was able to point out the value of spade deep trenches around the tent. With the storm over, the senior scouts re-established their separate camps. The word got around Bairnsdale pretty quickly that some fifteen fine strapping neatly dressed and well-spoken lads wished to get to Melbourne. In the end I had to turn a blind eye and set out with Cliff and the van for Melbourne via Warragul with only a couple of the more timid seniors. The best laid plans… We received news that trains would not be running on the day of our return! The lads immediately started making plans to hitch-hike, which did not fit with my ideas at all. Church and North Arm Scouts under my supervision knew it to be inevitable that I would arrange the itinerary so that there were churches nearby of all their denominations. They generally accepted the inevitable with good grace and their stomachs often benefited through unexpected hospitality after the services. The scouts ended up in Linlithgow Avenue but the cavalcade of parent cars was at the then Spencer Street railway station. They were soon ‘married up’ and the 1970 expedition came to a somewhat inglorious but successful end. The party then canoed or went by vehicle to a sand pit site on the North Arm. Pioneering I had suggested a hike along an old quarry railway line. Granted it was a hot day. I then found myself faced with mutiny! They preferred to do some pioneering. I “sulked off” and let them get on with it having some confidence that their skills were not up to their plans. Eventually a truce was declared and I was permitted to make some suggestions with the available ropes and spars. The day ended peacefully. I forgave them for their treason! The expedition group and the canoe-laden trailer Colourful Some of my memories will always be of the colours of the green-hulled canoes in blue reflecting off the water, with the yellow cliffs in the distance. Another memory was of the Metung The final two days were spent at a public campsite at Metung. I had arranged with a 118 I may have already mentioned that the Golden Fleece chain of service stations conducted café/restaurants 167 maroon T-shirts, now worn quite happily, offset by the gold of the buoyancy vests and life jackets as the lads drove their canoes through the waters. Wash up The troop was sold on canoeing. Four more annual expeditions would take place during the period of my leadership. Initially I had some trouble convincing the boys that the budget should never be so penny-pinching119 that a surplus could not be made. There would always be considerable wear and tear on the canoes and new ones would be needed. We could not borrow them for ever. That Song in My Heart There’s a song in my heart, Listen to the beat of it, Right from the start You can’t believe the treat of it. I’ve got a rainbow shining on my way There’s a song in my heart, a chorus and ‘tuney’ verse I’ll learn my part And sing it to the universe. I’ll make each day a wonderful day. Once again I had been impressed with the leadership that this age group could demonstrate. Most of the thinking and “playing out” was done by the senior scouts, but my restraining hand was never far away – which is, of course, why the movement has adult leaders, even if we do appear to the members to being too interfering and too dictatorial. For the love and the joy of living, For everything that’s underneath the sun, For the stars and the April showers, And for a life that’s just begun. I was right in the cart, It happened like a miracle, Woke with a start, And found that I was lyrical. Oh, Let me sing that song in my heart. Ralph Reader 119 I guess it should now be “cent-pinching”! 168 township, part of which had been devastated by a bushfire that had commenced some days earlier in the You Yangs area. The fire trapped a number of cars on the ‘Melbourne – Geelong’ freeway with some loss of life. The senior scouts involved were able to appreciate the destruction that a bush or grass fire can cause even when the buildings are in a “suburban” location. Chapter 33 A year of this and that – section, area and branch BHQ meet in Geelong Very early in the year the monthly commissioners’ meeting was held in Geelong as part of a policy to visit the areas and regions. These meetings were held on a Sunday. Lunch on this occasion was arranged at the Geelong Golf Club. Mr. J. D. Butchart was still Chief Commissioner. The guest list reads as a Who’s Who of Scouting at the time. The gesture of having the meeting in Geelong was much appreciated by the locals. As a “thank you,” I offered the scouts a day down the coast at the beach. I had roof racks on the station wagon. I watched with amusement as the scouts jockeyed for the order in which they would be picked up so that their surf boards would be the last ones to be secured and thus be on top! Tom and “Murf” Murphett At the Gilwell Reunion, the opportunity was taken by Gilwellians to thank these two wonderful people for their service to scouting. Tom was the camp warden. The monthly commissioners’ meeting in Geelong. Jim Butchart, Chief Commissioner, is in the chair, with Eric Black on his right. On his left is a visitor, Abdul Kadfr. Those attending included: A. O. Lawrence, A. S. Humphries, Ian Hodges, Bob Swinton, Jack Maver, John Campbell, J. Rossiter, Don Lithgow, Norm Johnson, Jim Money, J. H. Whitten, G. J. Clarke, Bill Dawson, Ken Brewster, Eric Black, W. G. Phillips, Marc Blount120, Allen Thomson, A. Gedye, Vic McGowan, Abdul Kadfr, Rolf Mackellar and me. “Murf” and Tom Murfett farewelled at Gilwell Clean up in Lara 4th Belmont Prior to the expedition to Bairnsdale, a small party of the unit put in a day at the Lara This group commenced in 1969 with the formation of a cub pack. Mr. and Mrs. Parker were GL and CL respectively. The DC, Ossie 120 Marc, Allen and Rex were the three full-time field commissioners 169 afternoon, continuing until about nine at night. A warm meal was served rather than asking potential leaders to bring a cut tea. Lawson, invested a number of the foundation cubs. Hoadley Hide The training room at Eumeralla included a fire place which kept us all warm. As I have mentioned the windows looked out over the cliff top to the ocean below. In 1969 this took place in the Mount Juliet area. I could not get the BDSST lads to have the same winning instinct of the Warragul ETSST boys, and the three patrols seemed content to come home with “C-grade” pennants, or, as I would put it, to “have taken part.” Leader training had conventionally centred on “yarns” given by experienced leaders. Games interspersed these sessions to provide variety. But slowly Scouting began to adopt “audiovisuals,” such as the overhead projector, flip charts and film strips. Occasionally 16-mm films were appropriate. Graeme Taylor Graeme and his family had come to live in Geelong. He was a senior sales manager at the famous Solomons’ store. Following a picture of him in the Geelong Advertiser displaying china and porcelain ware for sale, contact was made with him as the story was out that he had been active in Scouting in Melbourne. There was a film on the life of Baden-Powell but parts of it were very hackneyed, particularly when B-P, like all of us, when we reached our ‘twilight years.’ As an alternative I discovered amongst my store of film strips one on The Chief. I met Graeme for afternoon tea at a suitable Geelong hotel. This location became the preferred one when Graeme would meet likely leaders and many Geelong citizens came into the movement by this means. Forty years later there are few of us who remember these film strips. On 35-mm film the manufacturers would record a “positive” image for each exposure and offered typed sheets with information about each “slide.” Graeme became a great asset to the Geelong Area and later served as Area Commissioner when Jim Money retired to become the Scout Shop manager in Geelong. Graeme and I worked closely together on various scouting projects. He had a good administrative and management mind. He brought these skills into scouting and many areas of contention were sorted out. I had brought a tape recorder back from Fiji a year or two earlier. This was a reel-to-reel model and about the size of a brief case. It worked off mains power. So, one night I recorded my voice reading the provided sound track for the B-P film strip. I added suitable music. Before I ceased as training commissioner I was to hear the tape so many times I could have probably repeated it off by heart. But the film strip did give a good illustrated life story of the life of our founder. Graeme and his wife were kind enough to take pity on “bachelor” Farley and I was a weekly visitor to their home for a meal and hospitality. The other basic “visual aid” at the time was the “overhead projector.” No self-respecting member of the training team could give a session without accompanying it with this device. Nowadays it has to be “power point” – something which, until recently, I thought I would never have any expertise! Leader training – the Explanatory Now that “Boss” Hurst had provided such excellent facilities at Eumeralla, it was natural that the Explanatory courses should be held in The Lodge at Eumeralla. Courses were held on Saturdays and started at about three in the 170 and savoured the delights of the Australian bush. Senior Scout Preliminary It was not unreasonable, that, given the recommendations in the Design for Tomorrow report and the apparent success of the operations of the East Tarago seniors in Warragul, now led by Ken Abrecht, that I should draw up the program and invite Tarago leaders to take the sessions. It was then a matter of finding our way into Lorne and recovering the car. Fortunately it was not far to hike. As the space in front of the house was very limited, I had to drive forward and back with great care several times before I was facing down the driveway. It was soon home to Geelong and to get some care for my blistered toes. It would be back to boots in future! Consequently, Ken, accompanied by two former patrol leaders, Ken Carland and Paul Pianta, drove to Eumeralla from Warragul for the weekend. The course was visited by Cliff Dent, together with his wife, Pat, and their first son, Nigel. The Trentham hike was in the September vacation. Having left the car at a Forestry Commission camp in Trentham, the party had plenty of scope of tracks in the direction of Barry’s Reef and Blackwood. On the last day we had to walk through drenching rain until a flat-tray vehicle stopped and the driver ‘insisted’ on giving us a lift. Back at the FCV camp before a very hot stove, we dried out and prepared to return to Geelong. Rain seems to be a necessary element to a two or three day scouting hike. Hikes, Lorne and Trentham It was perhaps my selfish habit to plan a three or four day hike during the school vacations for my own benefit and to invite any of the senior scouts who so wished to join me. For the May vacation I planned a hike in the Lorne area. I drove the party to Lorne and parked in the front garden of one of the party. An ETSST member, Ken Carland, drove us to Cumberland River, where the hike on foot began. Taking the track up the river, we found a suitable site to camp for the night. As with most of these ventures I found myself not to be as fit as I would have liked to have been. Uniform changes Scouters had always had the option to wear the equivalent of a military officer pattern coat, tie and shirt but with shorts! Now the option was extended to long trousers but in the khaki polyester material. A long-sleeved shirt with a green tie completed the new ensemble. It was deemed to be more suitable for night time wear both on grounds of warmth and compatibility with the civilian wear that citizens wore, eg., at group committee meetings. The next day saw us reach Forrest, where we obtained permission to camp on private property; in the process entertaining the owner’s three sons. Whereas I normally wore heavy boots, I had read that there was benefit in finding something lighter, such as a basket ball boot. Yes it was more comfortable, but that did not stop me from starting to get blisters. A Belmont-Highton B-P Revue I guess it was inevitable that I would attempt another concert based on material from the London Gang Show while I still had the energy and the resources to do so. The youth talent would come from the scout Barwon District and the equivalent Guide level of organisation. The next day was a very unpleasant one in the rain to say nothing of having taken a wrong track. Despite me hobbling along, I led the party eventually to a perfect camp site on the Sheoak River where, before a fire, we dried out 171 Accordingly I arranged to meet with the Guide Region Commissioner, Miss Doreen Bunny121, and put my case for the concert before her. I had forgotten that a few doors up the street lived a massive sized but quite friendly dog, although one did not think that when it nuzzled one’s back as one walked home. Doreen was glad to get inside my flat. I assured her of the harmless nature of the canine. Doreen gave her support to the venture. It would be a two-night affair later in 1969, with rehearsals in the 1st Highton Scout Hall and its staging in the St. Bernard’s Roman Catholic Church hall122. In a scene from “Peter Pan,” Captain Hook (Paul Thetford) tells Smee (Paul Belin) that he would like “to shake the hand of Peter Pan with this,” his hook their meetings during the week. Meilma recorded the tunes on to my tape recorder. Tape recorders in those days were quite bulky in comparison to today’s units. But at that stage I did not have a pianist. I mentioned this to my seniors and one of them, Ross Hutton, immediately “volunteered” the piano skills of his mother. That was the start of a very strong friendship with Meilma and Peter, Ross’s parents and their extended family of today. Graeme Taylor offered his services as the business manager and he soon had dates and the advertising side of the show planned out and put into operation. Slowly the program took shape and items and sketches were agreed upon. Mrs. Meilma Hutton, pianist for the revue Rehearsals Peter Hutton, GSM of 1st Barwon Heads, was an accomplished sign writer in his career in grocery. His sons, Ross and Bryce and daughter, Jill, would carry on with Scouting as did Ross’s children, Joshua and Kate This would be the fourth production of this nature by me. Rehearsals were held on Sunday afternoons for both the boys and the girls. I would visit the sections as much as I could at Peter Hutton, being a sign writer as a grocery manager, prepared the necessary signs for the dressing rooms. There was a good team of 121 Now Doreen Bell Since demolished to make way for a supermarket, the Roman Catholic church being rebuilt elsewhere 122 172 experienced leaders to channel the actors on and off the stage. Peter Agg as “Peter Pan” goes flying on a pulley with no further control on his movements to excellent applause. Behind him is the badge designed for the revue One cannot say that the second night is “always better,” but it was in this case. I suppose there is always a high degree of amateurism with these shows. The audience always enjoys it when something goes horribly wrong or lacks finesse. The cast of the revue from Barwon Guide and Scout units But a lot of guide and scout youth members had the opportunity to sing and act before their families and I am sure they enjoyed it very much. Some might say that it was fortunate that it was my last foray into arranging such productions, but some years later I would encourage school students to also enjoy Ralph Reader’s and Ken Bayly’s songs. 173 than the “unitary” nature of the UK organisation. Chapter 34 The UK Advance Party Report and “Change” in Scouting But the introduction to the subsequently published volume of Australian Scouting’s The Design for Tomorrow123 report clearly indicates that its reason for being was that the UK had carried one out. Was there anything about Australian Scouting that needed to be reviewed? If it ‘ain’t broke In one sense, Scouting has never been static. Typically English, it was pragmatic from its inception as Lord Baden-Powell reacted to the expanding needs of the organisation he had unwittingly started, by writing his fortnightly parts, which we know as Scouting for Boys. Nor should one forget his experimental camp on Brownsea Island with lads from all levels of society. Change I could have added here, “Change for changes sake,” but I don’t. Ideally change should be in the “win-win” situation, ie., everyone benefits and is in agreement with it. It is often the case that the organising body becomes conscious that its members have already made the change and all that it can do is to catch up and “legalise” the practice. However from the time I joined in 1952 until the late ‘sixties, the movement maintained itself without changing or have an apparent need for change, whether with its uniform, badges, program or fundamentals. Much research has been carried out on how to implement change to the satisfaction of all those involved, but it is not my task to comment on the process that the movement has followed. This coincided with a period of expansion in Scouting in the aftermath of the World War II with an increase in population through migration and greater wealth throughout the community. It was aided by the encouragement of the Roman Catholic Church as it endeavoured to provide bulwarks against Communism. Suffice it to say that from the time that the APR came out, change was inevitable across the face of World Scouting and, in particular, in Australia. As they say, once you “release the hounds” or alternatively “let the genie out of the bottle” change can also be an aim in itself. The APR In 1966 Scouting in the United Kingdom released its Advanced Party Report. This was a general review by a group of experienced commissioners appointed by the Chief Scout. When I had the opportunity to spend a year in the UK in 1966 and attend a range of UK and international functions, it was clear that each country had its Scouting differences. Sweden already had girls in its ranks. A major factor, should Australia follow suit, was that Scouting in Australia, like much of its society, was organised on a federal basis where branches had considerable autonomy although mostly connected to Imperial Headquarters in Buckingham Palace Road in London. Senior Scouts To develop my approach for change, we might consider the development of Senior Scouts. For many years the movement consisted of Cubs, Scouts and Rovers. B-P’s patrols varied in size Any report that the “Australian Boy Scouts Association” would commission would be subject to far more committees and variations 123 Australian Boy Scouts Association, Report of the Design for Tomorrow Committee, 1970, 621 pp 174 and the age range could have included boys aged between 11 and 17, or even more. The District Troop I had previously generously interpreted the 1963 Policy, Organisation and Rules book to bring the Warragul and district senior scouts into a training group. Four years later I approached the leadership of seniors in the Barwon District the same way. All I can say is that from 1963 to 1973 when I was a senior scout leader, this system worked. There is some evidence that B-P did not necessarily mean that a patrol should have a range of age groups but patrols could have half a dozen scouts of approximately the same age. But there were great physical differences between young and older boys, as well as mental and social ones. In the post World War II period, the UK Scouts introduced ‘Senior Scouts’ to meet this situation. This new section would commence membership from the age of fifteen. Venturer Scouts The next step was to change the title of the senior section and the ‘Brits’ adopted the word, Venturers. Those who decry the Australian tendency to adopt overseas practices might ask themselves as to the alternatives, but the Venturer title passed naturally to Australian Scouting124. In this case the statutory change came somewhat after the events themselves. This “lopping off the top” had an immediate effect on those boys who remained in the “Scout” section. In particular fourteen year-olds had to get accustomed to being patrol leaders, but they could not necessarily meet the expectations that had previously been met by those two to three years their elder. I have used the “Over 15” section as a reasonable example of the development of change in an institution as I was directly involved in the troops referred to above in the DFT. Numbers With the older boy now freer to develop a program more appropriate to his social development, it did not necessarily follow that the average scout group would have sufficient numbers to provide for such programs. Does it work? I regard this as the real test of any change that is proposed or adopted. Rotary has its four-point test in which the community should be better off at the end of the day as a result of the innovation. Clearly some well organised groups did have the numbers. This sort of group would probably have had two Cub Packs, two Scout Troops and a strong Rover Crew as well, the members of which would be expected to contribute as section scouters over time. These groups were “families” in their own right. One would like to think that the test of whether something works is whether it is to the benefit of the members of the movement, but all too often “numbers” become the yard stick for likely change. But particularly in rural areas, the number of “Over 15’s” in a group might number at the best four or five. This number was rarely viable in terms of activities and numbers. While this age group is self determining, there was still the need to find a leader who could more than cope with the needs of this age group. DFT in the background Chronologically, my Scouting story continues with no evidence of change in the movement, 124 While Australia has many distinctive “icons” in its society, it has often adopted overseas terms in the absence of their own, such as “the dollar” for its currency 175 to five sections: Joeys, Cubs, Scouts, Venturers and Rovers.125 but the various committees established by the DFT group were meeting on and off across Australia from 1967 until its report in 1970. Will it be adopted? As it is said, ‘change was in the air!’ ‘Chair persons’ of reviews throughout the world’s history have generally lived to tell the tale that the organisation that commissioned them thanked them very much for all the time and research that they had put into the report but often left the report to mildew in the draw. I was asked to attend a number of research groups which “looked at the older boy.” The movement was able to draw upon university and other professional figures to outline the needs and abilities of this and the other age groups. With the UK Advance Party Report, the British Chief Scout assured the committee that their recommendations would be adopted all and in full. Uniform and gender were still sacrosanct While possible change to the uniform has always provoked the most emotion of any change, there was not a hint in the Scouting community that the combination of shorts, shirt and the four-dented felt hat would ever be changed, despite my own desire to wear long trousers and jacket for warmth! Let us wait then until my story reaches 1970 when the Design for Tomorrow report comes out to ascertain the degree of its adoption. All too often, the report committee gets carried away with the number of changes that it likes to incorporate in the report, many of which will never be adopted but which might form the basis for further discussion. Although the British had introduced long trousers and a long-sleeved shirt for Scout members and in the process had done away with shorts, Australia offered the option of long trousers, long-sleeved shirt and tie. The beret was only worn as camp dress or by “rebels.” One change I can report from the review was the adoption of the International Scout purple badge in lieu of the former UK tenderfoot arrowhead one. Similarly, neither was the word, “girls,” mooted by anyone. That would have to wait a few more years. Does one dare to suggest that it would be all but painless and carries with it greater likelihood of adoption! An accepted framework Most of us feel comfortable when we understand the process and framework in which we operate. Our nation has a recognised system based on its constitution, of monarchy, government, the exective and its courts. Similarly Scouting has its Chief Commissioner, his or her Branch Commissioners, the Branch Executive and a full-time staff to administer the movement. Change elsewhere Another area in society which was in ferment was that of the Christian faith. I cite Vatican II in the Roman Catholic Church in this regard. The Anglican Church moved from the 1662 Prayer Book and Hymns Ancient and Modern. I also quote the conversations between the “protestant” churches which resulted in The Uniting Church. Granted some of these changes In turn Victoria is divided into Regions, each with its Region Commissioner and staff, and so on down through the districts to the Group of up 125 There are of course those who would wish to view the tree from the youth member’s point of view “down” to the CC! 176 did not reveal themselves until the midseventies but you probably cannot get a more conservative institution than a church! We hold these truths … One of the greatest stumbling blocks to introducing change is that those who will have to implement it have already become very “comfortable” with the preservation of the status quo. Then there comes into the equation the shouted words of “Over my dead body”! This is the equivalent of “Not in my back yard” or NIMBY! There has hardly been a single area of Australian life that has not witnessed change and innovation between 1950 and the present day. A perfect example is that of Australian Rules football. New teams, mainly interstate, have been added. Rules of play have changed. Three field umpires now control the game, and so on. It is the art of divining which aspects should be preserved as eternal and those that clearly need to find the waste paper basket. The DFT committee would have to make this distinction if Scouting was to become an even more relevant organisation than it already was. 177 boys and in cooperation with the venture leadership team. Chapter 35 Second Australian Senior Scout Venture, Nunawading RAAF Activity Camp I was also asked to lead the RAAF activity camp that would be held at RAAF Point Cook. This was reasonable on two grounds. I had been a member of the Air Training Corps for four years in my teens; the first weekend camp being at Point Cook. The other was that I was then a major in the CMF (Army Reserve) and understood service institutions. Background Following the Jindalee Jamboree the “chiefs” decided that the Senior Scout section (read Venturers) required their own national event. I was not to attend another jamboree other than one-day visits, so I am not sure what effect this decision has had on the four-yearly experiences. Obviously if the second Venture was to be held in Melbourne, there had been a first one somewhere else, but where? Late in September I visited Point Cook, meeting the Officer Commanding, Group Captain Jim Sutherland. The dates would be from 2nd to the 4th January, 1970. The activity program would include at least one flight in a training aircraft, together with a range of “ground” experiences. A week or two later Graeme and I went back and met Squadron Leader Dart and the detailed program was discussed with us. Planning had commenced some time earlier but there appeared to be three threads to the Venture. Besides the activities within the camp, there would be “actiomatics.” These were daily challenge events to which buses would take the venturers. The third thread was for a two to three day activity off-site half-way through the Venture. One difficulty presented itself as a result of the selection of dates. Not all the flying could be completed by the end of a week. Flying would have to continue to the Saturday morning. Many of the station personnel would have to forgo a day of their weekend, namely the pilots, the air traffic controllers and the team that operated the rescue boat, since a lot of the flying was over the bay off Point Cook. Sub-camp Moving in The GSMs moved in a day early and had a “morning tea” where we formed a cohesive team with agreed approaches to administering the “groups” of senior scout patrols. Our main task was to supervise tentage, neatness and punctuality. A morning parade would be held in order to achieve this. We were like “house masters” in boarding schools. Someone else provided meals, activities and transport. Sub-camp Three meeting: Robert Hamilton, Gary Dover, Graeme Taylor, with two visitors. I took the photo! I was asked to be the sub-camp leader for No. 3 group. I enlisted the help of Graeme Taylor and also knew that there would be a number of scouters with their troops and patrols to form my headquarters team. I would like to feel that I was reasonably prepared for this role and looked forward to carrying it out to the benefit of the 178 continually being caught between “rocks and hard places.” Most senior scouts understood our position. Others took advantage of it and lived in a pig-sty for the rest of the venture. Problems from the start Many of the headquarters team concerned are now dead and little would be achieved in identifying them. I do not think there were any direct planning faults but between us “Group Scout Masters” and the team was one commissioner126 who never really grasped his job. Rarely did the If there was any improvement in punctuality, one meal had to be abandoned when it was obvious that the meat was “off.” I cannot recall what was brought out as a substitute! There was a separate mess for the camp administration team. This can have its advantages127 but it meant that “they” ate on time and could not fully appreciate the situation with the senior scouts – the persons for whom the Venture was being conducted. It would have been morale boosting to witness the “poobahs” suffering with us. I am sure we would have had action taken much earlier to sort it all out. The brothers Clarke! Left and centre are twins. Now choose them apart! The military would have had an “Orderly Officer” for each day, whose task was to monitor these matters and take action to resolve them. This did not happen early enough. GSMs get the information in time to communicate with their senior scouts, nor were railway tickets ever sufficient in number for the parties on the actiomatics which required them. It had also been decided that the senior scout patrols would be housed in “square” or “auto” tents. These would be purchased for all attending the Venture and sold off at the end of event. This approach worked, but there was no surplus of tents and some problems arose which could have been otherwise averted. Cooking was centralised and a civilian firm was contracted to do it. The idea was to save the boys from having to cater, cook and clean up. It should have worked both punctually, hygienically and adequately. It didn’t. For reasons best known to them the caterers could not get themselves ready in time to serve meals so that the lads could get away to the actiomatics having had their breakfast. I can still see the hungry and frustrated scouts in their long queues hoping against hope that they could get a meal and still catch their buses – to say nothing of washing hands and teeth! Nippon scouts My sub-camp was host to the party of Nippon scouts. Unfortunately, the programs described them as being from “Japan.” This was not how they wished to be known! In the absence of an interpreter this misunderstanding had to be sorted out to everyone’s satisfaction. The Nippon scouts performed very well and were very cooperative. As the actiomatics could not wait because of their transport and booking schedules it often meant that the scouts set out on empty stomachs. And from the point of view of the GSMs, there was no time for a morning parade or tent inspection. Scouts and Scouters were 126 127 This chap was in effect the supervisor of the GSMs. It was not ethical to regularly by-pass him They can be on time and can have decision-making discussions 179 especially where time had never permitted checking or inspections. Human odours started to build up in the absence of tent brailing and the airing of bedding. RAAF camp I confess that I was glad to be in my own car and I thawed out as I drove down to Point Cook. The boys that had selected the RAAF camp came by bus. On arrival they were not a happy bunch. They were cold, hungry and there was a smell of vomit. The boys were sent off for showers and food and the bus was cleaned up. The party of Nippon scouts in traditional garb I also had parties from Queensland and New South Wales in my group. Weather and New Year’s Eve The first few days were very hot. New Year’s Eve was imminent. The HQ team thought that the senior scouts would not want a traditional scout campfire but rock and roll music instead128. New Year’s Eve would be seen in at the nearby public swimming pool. There was no opportunity to present an alternative venue or program. Our host at RAAF Point Cook, Squadron Leader Dart, meets David Landry Buses took the boys accompanied by their group leaders to the pool. The temperature chose that day to drop. It was cold. There was nothing to do. Many of us were concerned that the lads would suddenly decide to liven things up by chucking some of their number, (and perhaps some of us) into the pool. From then on, everything went well. The skies cleared, the sun shone. Flying would take place after all and the boys were briefed on safety and other matters. The thirty-eight scouts were We had enough authority amongst us to order the buses back and take the lads back to camp. New Year’s Eve midnight was brought back to ten o’clock. I can still feel the cold and the hopelessness of the situation as I type up this account. Heavy rain fell the next day to underline the variability in Melbourne weather and to make conditions inside the tents more difficult, 128 This was not the last “jamboree-type” function that this assumption would be made and with some very sad results. My own view was that the lad who joined Scouting expected the “camp-fire” as part of the Scouting deal. He could get his “rock and roll” elsewhere Phillip Wake after his flight in the trainer aircraft 180 In some ways, a lot of the experienced senior scout leaders were allocated to conduct the actiomatics, leaving few for the headquarters Venture team. These were all experienced leaders, but most with their main experience in sections other than the older boy. divided into patrols and some four activities took place simultaneously. Clay shooting was very popular. When the RAAF pilots got airborne they generally asked their guests as to whether they wanted aerobatics or a smooth flight. I certainly opted for the latter. The flying helmets, known to the RAAF as “bone buckets,” were for heads smaller in size than mine, but a sufficiently large one was eventually found! Camp closure On the last night the delays continued with the boys being asked to wait an hour before the roasted ox was cooked and served. There were other muddles but finally the closing ceremony took place and the camp settled down. At midday on the Saturday, flying was complete and the base just closed down as the full-time personnel headed for their homes or their holiday spots. The headquarters team visited us in the afternoon and I became aware that the situation that we had endured at Nunawading up to that point had finally hit home. Some of these commissioners were now on the lookout for scapegoats particularly if they were wearing maroon epaulettes! Unfortunately the HQ team did not contain enough senior scout leaders who had a better idea of what the senior scout age group wanted. The morning went mostly to plan, but the tent poles had with the rain swelled in their sockets and the lowered tents were not in a good condition for resale. We GSMs were invited to a special dinner both to thank and mollify us. As I have not attended a venture since, I cannot say whether the lessons from the Nunawading one were learnt. But it was clear that the lads might have enjoyed a traditional campfire rather more than what “they” thought they would like. The senior scout section has a considerable degree of self-determination. Little to no allowance was made for this democratic approach in the overall organisation of that venture. The leadership assets were there, but they were not used to their full benefit. If Hoadley Hides can operate successfully with leaders wearing (as we did in those days) maroon epaulettes, why couldn’t the same principle be applied to ventures? The party of Venturer scouts outside the RAAF Museum However I look back on the event with warm and satisfied feelings. Teenagers are very resilient and they too probably went home having had “the time of their lives.” There was nothing wrong with the overall concept – the fault was that it was not efficiently carried out. Back to Nunawading The RAAF party had had good weather; not so, many of the other activity groups. A very good hot meal was awaiting those returning. The lessons had finally been learnt, but far too late. Leaders in the senior scout section have to have qualities and a degree of understanding of their charges that the cub or scout leader rarely has. Queen’s Scouts At the previous October presentation ceremony at Government House, Gary Roberts, Keith 181 Lowe, Peter Agg, Peter Roberts, Peter Rogers and Peter Ingwersen received their certificates.. Afterwards they lunched at the Victoria Palace as was my habit with these achievements. ETSST on their way through Geelong-Nauru Area Several of the six BDSST lads to receive their Queen Scout certificates from the Governor in Melbourne. Glenelg expedition reconnaissance About the same time I had taken part in a weekend trip under the leadership of the troop leader, Gary Roberts, to the River Glenelg and the general area of Port Fairy and Nelson. Once again, my car covered considerable ground in a short time. Sufficient campsites were found and the launching and recovery spots on the river were nominated. ETSST group In between the Venture and the Glenelg expedition, the senior scouts from Warragul spent a night in the Geelong area at the Eumeralla Scout Camp. In addition to the 11seater Austin van that I had bequeathed them at the end of 1965, they now had a second but similar vehicle, except that the new one had its gears “four on the floor.” The original Austin had the gears on the steering wheel – a less efficient form as they frequently jammed and had to be felt through their slots 182 essential to nominate the stopping spots. The route was via Colac and then to the coast and the area of the Twelve Apostles. Camping spot that night was the guide camp near Port Campbell where a guide company was in camp. It was inevitable that the girls would want to see the canoes and arrangements were made for the next day. Chapter 36 The River Glenelg Expedition Overall concept Whereas the Warragul seniors tended to base their expeditions on the Austin/Morris vans and then perhaps “sight-see,” the Barwon boys built theirs around canoes. Hence I would tow the trailer with its metal framework carrying the Canadian canoes. There would be sufficient car transport for the boys. Day Two – Mt. Eccles The morning was spent with the scouts being chivalrous to the guides. Initially the boys rowed but before long the girls had taken over the paddles. Meanwhile a flying fox had been rigged up and slowly the girls built up their confidence to climb the rope ladder and wheel away over the creek. Further they would sleep in hike tents and form pairs for catering purposes. They would also canoe in these pairs. As there were insufficient canoes for all to be afloat at once, hiking formed the alternative activity. On this trip, fishing could be added to the list. Stephen McLachlan, David Kelly and Neil MacAuslan BDSST lads now proudly wearing their T-shirts at Nelson, having arrived safe and sound in their canoes The River Glenelg provides a navigable stream for canoes for some distance. However the banks are relatively steep and berthing places are limited. As with most trips as much as possible was loaded the day before we set out. The canoe trailer was corralled overnight in a warehouse. Cliff Dent had arrived to be the second scouter and brought the Austin van. Two parents, Herb Roberts and Tom King came with their cars. This made a motorcade of four. This trip took place in January, 1971. The driving continued with a visit to London Bridge – still in existence in those days. Then we drove through Warrnambool and on to the Mt Eccles camping area. Cliff pointed out that Hamilton was not all that far away and, being Sunday, the opportunity was taken, having established camp, to attend church in that centre. I was always surprised how there always seemed to be one member of the troop who had friends or relations nearby. As a result we often scored morning or afternoon tea. In this case it was supper! Day One – Port Campbell Day Three The motorcade was on the road by ten o’clock. In the days before mobile phones it was I have to confess that reveille was never early. The opportunity was taken to sort things out and 183 do some washing. One intrepid group lugged a canoe right down to the lake. Others investigated the upper and lower tracks in this state park. I was given a trip in the canoe. Others made a shopping run to Macarthur. In the evening, there were challenge runs along the tracks. Mosquitoes were irritating in some areas but not where we had camped. Day Four – River Glenelg The first stop was at Macarthur where a bank manager was generous to us. Heywood was the next centre. Here we met up with the District Association chairman who had spotted us at Mt. Eccles and knew we would be coming through. He had some information on the River Glenelg to give us. I suppose one can hardly travel unnoticed with a long trailer of canoes and a dozen or so uniformed scouts. This is the other way to safely launch a canoe into the otherwise docile River Glenelg. It also demonstrates that all that pioneering learnt in scouts is not ever wasted! knocked me out of the game and proceeded to ruthlessly bankrupt all the other players. Monopoly is a game that brings out the best in people – sometimes! Third (3rd) Portland’s campsite was on the river bank and here we set up camp for the night. The TL soon had the tentage erected and then he went off with Cliff on a reconnaissance of the area. Most of the boys went off to try out the canoes. Trevor Salt helped to construct a “jib” to overcome the problem of the steep banks. He was able to demonstrate how the canoes could be swung out and gently lowered to the water’s edge. Another member of the party demonstrated that you could easily hole a canoe trying to launch it the hard way! Meanwhile Mr. Cyril Spence arrived with a pump to provide us with electricity and a Forest’s Commission man arrived with maps of the river. These were all examples of the way the community will help the scout movement, even though they may not have been asked to do so. Playing Monopoly with a set that dates back to circa 1939 are David Kelly, Robert Shepherd and Russell King. It is a game (more like a war) that brings the best out in all the players, particular the winner! Day Five The “holers” of the canoe had to stay in camp repairing it. The others took it in turns to canoe downstream with a plan to change crews at certain spots. I suggested a walk to the “Ink spot,” and to their surprise found it. I produced my 1939 set of the game of Monopoly – standard evening entertainment – a game in which I think I have some ability. (Go for the brown properties every time, Vine Street &c). However the quiet Peter Ingwersen The TL had brought a school book, The Caine Mutiny, which I read. I felt prepared for any 184 problem that might arise during the remainder of the trip. But the scouts entered into the yarn by often asking whether we would be having strawberries? But I could not find two ballbearings anywhere! I demonstrated my prowess at Monopoly that night. crews filming everything and taking statements, worried parents – in fact everything that could spoil my life! But after a mile or two we came upon the Austin van, now parked neatly and with the petrol blockage cleared. The change-over crew had found it and partaken of the supplies on board. That one of the two senior scouts, Ross Hutton, was a car mechanic, already of some skill, made all this possible. The two members had found the abandoned van and then used their commonsense and expertise to sort it out. The energy to spare that this age group has. It is David Kelly’s fair head of hair and Robert Shepherd’s legs! Day Six – Calamity! But all turned out well “The plans of mice and men”! All the driver of the Austin van had to do was to take out the relief party, change crews and be back by breakfast. He did not return. Morning tea came. Still no driver or vehicle. Finally about lunchtime, the driver lopes in on foot and throws himself down with the statement, “The vehicle is broken down two miles129 away and I have not been able to pick up the overnight crew.” He said all this and then discovered that he had selected my air mattress. The sound of escaping air was obvious with a stick puncturing it from his weight! Trevor Salt demonstrates his double-open-ended sleeping bag. I never did grasp the advantages of this design. All met up at Nelson and we returned to camp where “all was forgiven.” Fed and relaxed, I was happy just to act as banker at Monopoly that night! My diary records how a hero with quick clear thinking would issue simple orders and the rescue party would be away. I nearly trod on a snake, but it was glad to get away from me. Finally, a plan emerged. The driver was fed, sandwiches were cut, the canoe trailer hooked in. Two Third Portland seniors canoeing nearby offered to help. We set out. As we did so, I had fearful pictures in my mind of helicopters searching along the river, TV 129 A pyramid of soft drink cans is in the foreground of a set of hike tents that all depend for rigidity on one pole or so it seems. Approximately three kilometres 185 Day Seven – Port Fairy It was one of our best camp “pack ups,” having the generator to return and then move towards Bridgewater. Here I thought the scouts would want to swim but as there were no waves and no surf boards they declined! I should have also spent enough time here to permit Robert Shepherd to see his parents. As it was we arrived too early in Port Fairy. The keys to the camp were not available for some time. But the troop leader, Gary Roberts demonstrated how not to complain, how to prevent anyone else from complaining and, above all, keeping me from getting agitated. What a person! The expedition party at Port Fairy During the day a regatta was held. Again the 1st Port Fairy yacht did good business. The MacAuslan family visited the camp. It had been agreed that the “duty canoe,” which was used to cross the river to the shops would never be left unattended. In due course we had settled in. The canoes moved up and down the river. The white bollards, the staithes and the green banks added glorious colour and ambience to this idyllic scene. But this time it was. Duncan MacAuslan organised a rescue of this canoe, leaving the “shoppers” stranded. But this group was not without initiative and purloined a small boy and his boat. Somehow the boy was conned into rowing the three back across the river and of course he had to return the same way. Day Eight Showers had to be at the public camping ground, but they were hot. The canoes continued to make their way up and across the river. A group went spear fishing. Neil MacAusland nearly stood on a stingray. The local scoutmaster took boys out on his yacht. The Williams family arrived. In the evening the street lights reflected off the surface of the river. Another rewarding day. Day Ten This was almost a repeat of the previous day but without church. The trip was all but over. The boys had experienced canoeing, yachting, fishing and hiking. They had also been able to see some of the loveliest parts of Victoria. We prepared to break camp. Day Nine Day Eleven – the move back This was a Sunday. The lads knew that church services would be on the agenda. These would be in the evening. There was the inevitable cry of, “Do we have to wear uniform?” followed by, “I have nothing clean to wear”! If this scout thought that with all my experience I could not overcome that problem he had to think again. Finally the troop “mooched” off to their particular denominations. The Anglicans did best again with a lot of attention and supper to follow the service. The troop was set a coastal walk as the vehicles moved towards Tower Hill. Here lunch was taken. Emus were in abundance. While a campsite at Woodford had been planned, everyone west of Colac proclaimed the site at Brucknell as to be the most desirable. It was further than I thought, but eventually we came to crossroads and the sign to the camp. The tents were soon put up, as was the camp shower, 186 menu and price range. I had ordered ahead a chicken meal for all and this was eagerly devoured. At the troop hall, the canoes were put away in their shed and the trailer returned to the garage. Cliff Dent set off for home in the Austin van and I prepared for my first year on promotion to North Geelong High School. and the boys were washed all over in readiness for their next night at home. The Royal Mail must get through. Drik Drik post office with troop leader Gary Roberts and Chris Williams not necessarily waiting to post a letter The expedition party: Front: - Cliff Dent, Gary Roberts, Neil MacAuslan, Trevor Salt, David Kelly, Neil MacLachlan, Russell King, Peter Ingwersen, Robert Shepherd; Rear - Ross Hutton, Chris Williams, Paul Lange. As immaculate as the day they set out! I suggested a sing-song, only to be met with derision but it soon became quite successful, the boys remembering the words of the songs that they had learnt for the Baden-Powell concert revue held a month or two earlier. Ross Hutton, who went on to be an A-grade mechanic and own his own car service business, was already proving to be an even more profitable asset as he checked brakes and kept the tree vehicles in tip-top order Day Twelve – home It was an easy run to Geelong. It has been my habit to find a suitable place for a wind-up lunch. In those days the Golden Fleece petrol company equipped many of their service stations with restaurants with a predictable 187 stout stick is used to tighten a strop of rope. It was far more efficient than the square or diagonal lashing and used far less rope. Chapter 37 A very active troop and success in the Hoadley Hide The lads constructed their raft and for the third year won the event. A fellow senior scout leader jokingly appealed against our use of tourniquet lashings. We found ourselves disqualified! My friend tried to withdraw his objection but it was ruled that the metal pegs were not from natural materials. We should have used “stout sticks.” I was still fitting in the several interests of my life in addition to my full-time career as a teacher. In the latter role, I had been promoted to be a “Senior Teacher” to North Geelong High School. This was a relatively new school and its staffing career positions were expanding with its increased student numbers. I found myself superseding a teacher who had been used to being the principal’s assistant. I would experience the same situation two years later when a Deputy Principal was appointed. But the extra duties and responsibility meant that I had less time for other pursuits. But we rationalised our withdrawal for later years on the grounds that other troops should have a chance to win the event! Easter I opted out of the chance to be an “old-timer” on the Hoadley Hide but saw two BDSST patrols entering for it. Good Friday was sunny, but by Saturday the weather was threatening. Then heavy and steady rain fell which continued all day Sunday. By late Sunday the Hide had been called off. The scouts home came a day early. But they came with the news that one patrol had won an “A-grade” pennant and the other a “B.” Yet I somehow managed to keep church, army reserve and scouts in balance, concentrating only on the “must do’s” rather than the “I would like to do’s”! As I may have said several times, my diary had to be a planned one with engagements written in months ahead. Within my scouting role, I was administering and running the area training courses, chairing the Gilwell Reunion, active in other area activities and still the DSSL for Barwon. Unfortunately through moving schools, our training monthly magazine, Flag-break, had to be suspended, pending some area funds to cover its production and mailing costs. However the area training panel meetings continued with Mrs. Meilma Hutton as its new secretary. Each district now had its training representative, generally the ADC for Training (now of course the ADLT). The Victorian Training Team weekend for a few years was restricted to a day conference held at Scotch College. A good old stand-by piece of pioneering – a bridge of ‘poles without ropes.’ Friction is the reason for success The “A” Grade meant that BDSST should have the ‘honour and glory’ of seeing the actual Hide and having a presentation night. Both the Branch Commissioner for Senior Scouts, Bob Swinton, and his assistant, Stewart Pike, came down to Geelong to re-present the pennants and to display the “Hide,” --triptych boards with Raft race Once again the BDSST entered a team in the area raft race. By now I had learned about tourniquet lashings, where either a metal peg or 188 Eumeralla, Ken Abrecht and John Kent coming from Warragul to help conduct it on the first weekend. named leather facing. It was quite a night. Once again, the “bridge without ropes” was demonstrated before the assembled parents and guests. Some of Bob Barrow’s 8-mm films of previous hides were shown. Tests of troop success Following the success of both ETSST and the BDSST it was reasonable that the experiences of Ken and I should at least be listened to, if not followed. It is difficult to really measure “success,” but if retention of numbers, participation in activities, the achievement of high standards (such as the Hoadley Hide and the number of Queen Scouts) was anything to go by, then these two troops demonstrated them. Ken and I emphasised a number of elements in our approach to this older age group (then 15 to 18 years). These were: the boys meet when they decide and when there is a need (eg., Ambulance badge, hike weekend, raft race &c); programs with challenge (eg., Hoadley Hide); standards of attainment (eg., the Queen Scout badge); considerable democracy in troop management (member elections, own bank account and treasury); and the recognition that one is dealing with young men, not boys. I might also add that some activates should always include an “element of danger.” HQ Commissioner for Senior Scouts, Bob Swinton, and his assistant, Stewart Pike, present the Hoadley Hide to the BDSST patrol that secured an “A” Grade pennant. Peter Ingwersen, Russell King, Ian Jones and Ross Hutton, with Lindsay Patterson and Ian Meyer in front Training courses The training facilities at Eumeralla were now in frequent use. In the course of the year there were several explanatory courses (Stage I) and respective preliminary courses (Stage II) were staged. At the end of the year, a Cub woodbadge course was held. Using a district basis, but retaining group affiliations and scarves, the troops were able to attract sufficient numbers to avoid the problem of having to have nearly every member attend an activity to make it viable. Fifteen was said to be the minimum number. When I left Barwon, there were 45 members on the circular distribution list across half a dozen home groups. A blind eye often has to be turned at times to some habits although I never experienced any alcohol problems and smoking did not take place until those first ETSST lads who had their parents permission left the troop on turning 18. Drugs and sexual activity was in the future. Gary Roberts, Troop Leader, hosts Mr. and Mrs. Albert Bell. Doreen Bell was Region Commissioner and had given her whole-hearted to support to the B-P Revue The Senior Scout “prelim” was shared with East Suburban area and held at Gilwell Park and 189 Snow weekend Grampians hike I think I did my best to discourage the seniors from having a snow weekend, but the troop leader had shown the initiative in getting sufficient takers, ordering the bus and working out the costs involved. He even got Dr. Charles Parker130 to offer to be the adult in charge. Charles accepted the responsibility for it all. It was a successful weekend and was repeated the following year. It was a good example of the adult leader “butting out,” when the wishes of the boys themselves should be paramount – particularly when they show such responsibility in its organisation. As I have mentioned, in each vacation I endeavoured to enjoy a three or four night hike. I would advertise the dates and location and see if any of the BDSST members wished to join me. On this hike, Len Adams an assistant leader, and two of the seniors came with me. The weather was its usual mixed variety. But we did not fall down any crevasses, and returned safely. We found it to be a good area for challenges and views. The Armstrong 500 Like the “Melbourne Gathering,” some leaders had organised challenging weekends for their own members but they then opened up participation to other senior troops. This particular weekend was organised by Tom Armstrong. Tom and like organisers presumed that leaders would accompany their lads and thus the responsibility was spread. I was attached to Graham Dorling’s sub-camp. Graeme was Ken Abrecht’s assistant with the ETSST. It was a fine weekend. I got in a lot of walking, although I got left for an hour or two at a check point before I was picked up. I had a new car and treated it with great reverence in protecting it from rough tracks and the like. Trevor Salt receives his Queen Scout’s badge from Area Commissioner, Graeme Taylor Senior Scout courses Queen’s Scouts Aspiring Queen’s Scouts have always known that they need to achieve high standards in what are now the various “pursuits.” The easiest way to meet some of these was to run weekend courses. So both a pioneering and a venturer course were scheduled. Both were well attended. The lads used the training hut facilities and Heather Grinter131 again headed up the catering team. Three members of the BDSST attended Government House to receive their certificates; Trevor Salt, Lindsay Patterson and Ross Hutton. I did not record whether we went to a celebratory lunch afterwards but most likely did. Ealisaid MacAuslan Ealisaid (El-i-sayed) and Peter MacAuslan had for some years been very kind to me. Peter was GSM of 1st Highton, the group that had been the principal supporter of the district senior troop. Their three children, Duncan, Neil and Catriona (Ka-trine- a) were all active in Scouting and Guiding. I could always bank on getting an 130 It was particularly useful that Charles was a medical doctor should there be any accident in the snow 131 Heather was husband of Max Grinter, scout master of 17th Geelong until his untimely death from lung cancer 190 evening meal on a Sunday if I rang at a judicious time! The family was from Scotland and their brogue proclaimed that. I received 100% support, even though Peter had, prior to my arrival in Geelong, attended a GSM woodbadge course and been told that each group should have its own four sections (as they were then). He allowed me to trial the “district” idea and was won over. Ealasaid succumbed to cancer. I think it was a melanoma on her leg. During 1970 her condition became progressively worse. She died in the middle of November. Peter and I became even more close in our friendship. Later on Peter remarried. He died in 2008. Dr. Charles Parker surveying the flow of the River Goulburn on the reconnaissance for the 1971 trip Saturday morning found us at the Eildon Weir. It was full in those days. In fact when we were later to camp in Fraser National Park on the weir’s banks, the water was at its maximum height and the canoes could come right into the inlets for berthing. It thus became very important that the 1st Highton 1970 AGM night was well organised and in the form of a tribute to Ealisaid’s support of Peter and her work for the group. River Goulburn reconnaissance In the course of that day we passed through Yea, where we made the acquaintance of the DC. His spies had already told him that we were in the area. Stops were made at Ghin Ghin and Terangaville, before we proceeded to Nagambie. I do not recall why this river was selected for the January 1971 expedition. It would be a far greater challenge owing to its flow and low temperature, since its water came from the Eildon Weir132. I had obtained 1:50,000 maps and photocopied, covered and joined them in order to have the entire section of the river on which they would canoe in one compact form. As we followed by road the course of the river I marked on the map the access points where the canoes could stop and the parties be changed over. The expedition looked workable. There would be a further “recce” early in January with a canoe and crew to check times between access points. But it was necessary to check that the various possible places for access to the river were useable. Hence there was the need for a reconnaissance. Charles Parker was available and we set off after school on a Friday. Alexandra was the stop that night. We must have taken hike tents but expected to eat all our meals at cafes. On the Sunday we breakfasted at Seymour and attended church there before returning via Bacchus Marsh to Geelong. 1971 Stradbroke Cup Before the year was out there was a meeting of some of us to prepare for Eumeralla at Easter, 1971, to be one of the sites across Victoria for the Stradbroke Cup, a competition for scout troops in camp. This competition had been 132 While the winter of 2010 has been more of a traditional winter, readers have been more accustomed to years of drought resulting in empty reservoirs and poor river flows. 1971 pre-dated this period 191 traditionally held only at Gilwell Park but it was now, with the Cohen Shield, diversified at a number of camping areas across the state. The year closes 1970 drew to a close with much anticipated excitement for the expedition down the River Goulburn. The canoe “fleet” was growing and the routine for the trailer and carrying of gear better understood. I was also to be promoted in the CMF (now the Army Reserve) which would have a bearing on how much spare time I would have for scouts in 1971. Brothers of the Sky Sing of the sailor who covers the sea, Sing of the ladies who love ‘em, Praise for the sailors, wherever they be, Hail to the soldiers, the pride of the Queen, Ready to answer her call; But don’t forget – not mentioned yet, The pick of all the set, And the finest of them all! Ch. We are the Sky-high Boys, We are a band of brothers, What do we care When we’re up in the air, And we’re piloting into the blue? Fly with the Sky-high Boys, Fly with a band of brothers, These are the rights, We can share the delights, In the dizziest heights of the blue. Building a new tomorrow, Leaving the world down below, Through the far a-way Of the star-a-way And we don’t give up for any foe. Proud are the Sky-high Boys, Envy of all the others, We are the kings With the magic wings, We’re brothers of the sky. Ralph Reader 192 no time in having booster brakes fitted on my return. Chapter 38 The River Goulburn expedition Sunday – Day Two A second “recce” The lads always knew that I would have the local church times and we drove into Alexandra for these observances. After church the scouts assisted with traffic control following a minor accident. One enterprising scout found a “Stop – Slow” road sign in the long grass and brought it into play with great effect. Peter MacAuslan and I thought it wise that there was a test of the times that it would take a canoe party in the swiftly flowing Goulburn from one check point to another. So volunteers were sought and a canoe strapped to the roof rack of my Valiant station wagon. I should have known that it would be a cumbersome load and probably the canoe was as long as the car fore and aft. But we secured it well with ropes and set off. The test team came in with time results that I could extrapolate for the various parties on the coming trip. Regrettably a stone broke the windscreen of my car, necessitating a replacement in Seymour. The radio reported that some uninvited visitors had worried a company of guides camping at Tullawalla near Airey’s Inlet. Their guide captain, Shirley Monkivitch133, assured listeners that she had had the situation well in hand and her guides were not affected. Very gingerly I paddled a few yards from the bank! Photo: Bob Barrow Back at the camp site, the lads found the kangaroos to be very tame. We set out Adult assistance came from Dr. Charles Parker, 3rd Highton, and Mr. Tom King, a parent. They were both obliged to produce and drive vehicles. This made three with me towing the long trailer with the canoes. The canoes were still being secured to a makeshift wooden cradle on the trailer. A metal one would soon be fabricated. Charles had a Kombi van and towed his own yacht. The party had lunch at Yea and made camp at Fraser National Park on the banks of a full Eildon Reservoir. The Valiant wagon was fairly new and it was the first time it had towed a loaded trailer. I discovered that the brakes were not as powerful as on the previous model. I lost This was what Bob caught on his camera as two canoes set out down the River Goulburn Bob Barrow visited us for a day or two. Bob had been in 15th Malvern with me back in the 133 Shirley and I married each other later that year, but that is another story! 193 fifties. He was superb with both a still and movie camera and some of his shots illustrate this chapter. The scouts were able to canoe in complete safety and also experience Dr. Parker’s yacht. coming round the corner. As I read a book, I was surprised and shocked to spot a canoe paddle come floating round the bend! What had happened upstream? I think a member of one of the other canoes arrived to say that in the course of “walking” the canoe over some rapids or through shallow water, the towing rope of one had snapped. In the process the canoe had been forced beneath a log in mid stream by the pressure of the water flow. I was glad to see the two crew members perched on the log and completely safe. I might add “for the time being”! Bob Barrow. Bob had exceptional ability with both still and 8 mm cameras. Scouts Australia has many valuable photographic records as a result of his visits With the aluminium-powered boat about to take Neil MacAuslan and Gerd Worpel to safety, I had time to take this photo of the rescue. Meanwhile Milton Cations and Chris Williams (at two o’clock to the boat, canoe and tree) are making their way along the opposite bank Day Three There were more members on the trip than the number of canoes, so the proposal was that while one group canoed, the others would go on an overnight hike. It was also felt easier to recover the canoes and rowers each night. They would be re-launched the next day where they stopped the night before. What to do? While I considered the possibility of linking ropes to provide a handrail, I was concerned with both the force of the flow of the water and also its low temperature – after all, it had come from the bowels of Lake Eildon not many hours earlier. The first canoeing group was launched. They passed through the various check points downstream from Terangaville. One canoe experienced some trouble but corrected the problem. The party was brought back to Eildon that night. My first task was to convince the two on the log not to attempt to get to the bank under any circumstances without my “say so,” but the noise of the water drowned out my voice. By signals and their acknowledging of them, I think I had got my message across. Day Four – near disaster! There was only one thing to do and that was to seek out the DC. He ran a general store in Yea. This was a situation where I needed a second adult, but I had left the other two up stream. I Leaving the other two adults at Eildon, I took the party back down stream to Molesworth where the canoes were launched. I drove on down to a spot north of Yea to await them 194 did not make that mistake again. I reported to the DC, who responded by getting in touch with a chap with an aluminium speed boat. It was not long before the DC and I stood on the bank watching the motor boat powering upstream to moor alongside the log upon which the two crew members stood. They did have branches of the log to grasp for stability and comfort. Day Six I returned from Geelong the next day to find a regatta in progress with scouts from other groups taking part. A flying fox had been erected. Canoe races were being held. The weather was perfect. I was amused to see the number who preferred to wrestle each other in the mud only to get thoroughly daubed from head to tow – and then wash it all off under the showers. The two boys transferred safely to the motor boat and were soon back on the bank. Meanwhile the floating oar had come to rest on a bank not far downstream. But the lost canoe remained sunk and subject to the river’s desires. The boys lost any gear that they had stowed on board134. The lesson of course was to have strong towing lines on the canoes. There had been poor maintenance. The expedition was now down to one less canoe. The “Acquacat” with Tom King in the stern This is how I had hoped to see them coming around the bend Day Five – Return to Geelong On the 1st January, I had been promoted lieutenant-colonel as Commanding Officer of the Geelong artillery regiment. I could hardly miss the first parade, so I took leave of the expedition party and drove back to Geelong, but not before the party had taken delivery of an “acquacat.” This was going to be the basis of untold fun in the water. An “acquacat” was a motorised platform – a bit like a mini houseboat. Paul Lange and Russell King repair a canoe 134 I have no recall as to what we did about this loss of gear 195 Day Nine Church services were attended in Seymour. Here some parents joined us – the Hutton and Williams families. A recce took place at Nagambie of the proposed site. It was not acceptable and another was successfully negotiated. Back to Terangaville. Being a train enthusiast I remember a goods train coming along the line from Cathkin in the direction of Yea and Tallarook. Unfortunately this line has been abandoned before its tourist value could be appreciated135. Day Ten This was very much a rest day. Tom King lay on an air mattress listening to the cricket test that had been scheduled to replace the Melbourne Boxing Day one that had been washed out. It is hard to believe that rain would have fallen for some four days in succession at that time of the year, but it did and the match was abandoned. Andrew Binks and Milton Cations having both an excess of energy and of basic elements of the earth – mud and water! Days Seven and Eight The hikers and canoeists changed over, with the three adults deployed along the river at the various check points. This time there were no incidents. We had packed up at Lake Eildon and established camp at Terangaville, where the bridge had now been repaired from its earlier awkward lean, following flood damage. Peter MacAusland, GSM of 1st Highton, joined us. With my army connections, I made a “recce” trip to the Puckapunyal army camp. When my rank and status was proven, I received every cooperation and was invited to bring the party through the camp the next day. The tank museum’s exhibits were mostly in the open in those days, but a tank was a tank, and one did not see them everyday of the week in town. Day Eleven The water and hiking activities had now been concluded and the party was heading more or less in the direction of home. Having set up the visit to the army camp, it was also reasonable to visit Chateau Tabilk nearby. Whether I was irresponsible or not in 1971 community terms, the boys enjoyed the visit to the wine cellars and the talks they received about the wine growing and fermentation process. It would have been Not that Monopoly game again! Clockwise: Milton Cations, Stephen McLachlan, Andrew Binks, Neil MacAuslan, Ian Jones, Trevor Salt, Paul Lange 135 The line from Tallarook branched at Cathkin going to Alexandra on one line and to Mansfield on the other. It is now a rail trail. 196 heartless to deny them the opportunity offered at the wine tasting desk! Sipping their “lemonade” at Chateau Tabilk The army camp visit was equally successful. I cannot remember the exact order, but in addition to the tank museum, we drove to the Royal Australian and Electrical Mechanical Engineers workshop where many vehicles both “softskinned” and armoured were being repaired. At Puckapunyal senior scouts inspect a German 88-mm Flak (Anti-aircraft) gun at the Armoured Museum I must have been talking to one of the soldiers, when around the corner came the noise of the engine and tracks of an Armoured Personnel Carrier (APC), festooned over which were the members of BDSST!136 Later we drove to the range camp, where I was fairly well known. If we had been a little earlier we could have gone on to the range and watched the Centurion tanks firing their armour piercing shot. Even I can’t eat more than half a chicken and I felt a heel for doing so while the trailer and vehicles provided a make shift hospital for some. But they got home to recover there and to learn that they should heed advice in future and not try to know better. Apart from the loss of the canoe and the last day’s sickness it had been a successful expedition and there was no reason on the horizon why something similar would not be repeated in twelve months time. At camp that night I emphasised that the lads should respect the sewerage outfall below the camp and not wash in any way in that area. But my advice fell on deaf ears and the inevitable followed. The canoe shed Day Twelve The only record I have of the construction of this metal double-garage with a concrete floor was of the photos showing the canoes on their new metal trailer support being slid in to an otherwise pristine building. No dents to the building. Nothing hanging on the wall. A clean floor. I had ordered a cooked meal at the Bacchus Marsh Golden Fleece restaurant of chicken. But near the turn off from Tooboorac I had a lot of very sick senior scouts in the party. I think some just wanted to die! Prior to this the 1st Highton group had been very generous with overhead cover and security for us to store our canoes between trips, but they 136 I can still shudder to think of the inquiry and compensation that would have followed an accident to one of the scouts, even in those pre-litigation days 197 did take up a lot of space and could be tempting to “lesser mortals.” I decided to propose to 1st Highton’s group committee whether they would allow me to temporarily finance a garage, which could be purchased “off the hook.” A concrete floor would be added. The committee knew that they would eventually reimburse me, and they gave approval. There was no difficulty in getting planning approval from the engineer of The Shire of South Barwon. Construction went ahead. It was spacious and very adaptable to our needs. If it had a weakness it was that the door height was not high enough to permit trailer, canoe cage and canoes to be backed in in one piece of kit. But a higher roof line would have greatly increased the expense. To my knowledge the garage is still in existence but what is inside is another matter. I think it has also been moved to align it with other constructions. Heather Grinter and Joan Diamond were two of the very faithful and hard-working catering team for adult and senior scout training courses. Thank you ladies. Design for Tomorrow You’re the Fellow for Me This report, an Australian answer to the UK Advance Party Report, had now been published and was being discussed at various committee levels throughout the movement. I propose to look at its recommendations in more detail in the next chapter, but it was good to read in the chapters on the “older boy,” that the lessons of the East Tarago Senior Scout Troop and now the Barwon District Senior Scout Troop had been incorporated. They were to be generally adopted as the basis on which to cater for senior scouts, soon to be re-titled as Venturer Scouts – a name to avoid “scouts” feeling in any way inferior. If you believe in a life worth living Where the people are good and free. If you can share in the joys of giving, well You’re the fellow for me. If you can look for a silver lining So that others around may see, And if you show them the sun is shining, well You’re the fellow for me. Oh! I know that it’s true, And along there with you, We’ll climb the highest mountain, then Down the other side into a land of better men. We shall arise from the times of sorrow To a world as it ought to be, Lend me a hand for the New Tomorrow, and You’re the fellow for me. Ralph Reader 198 and also the Southern Cross for determining the approximate South Pole as distinct from the North Star. Chapter 39 The Design for Tomorrow Report The various books that were available to help a Scouter run his section were nearly all from England and could be applied without too much thought. The Gilcraft series were excellent but had all been written by Englishmen against the English cultural and environmental background Background There had always been incremental changes in Scouting from its early days. The movement could not afford not to be affected by social trends. World War I coming so soon after Scouting’s inception probably resulted in a wide community acceptance of Scouting, in that even the short period since 1907 showed that boys could be useful in many ways, whether signalling, running messages or collecting scrap as part of the war effort. Leader Training The handbooks used by leader trainers (then known as “deputy camp chiefs”) were straight from Gilwell Park, England. The names for the patrols (pigeons, cuckoos, owls and peckers) were English and were the names used at the Brownsea experimental camp. Even the nomenclature at our own Gilwell at Gembrook, Victoria, was the same, with the use of the words, “the boys’ field.” In the UK it was a “field.” Here it was “bush”! This response to change has been well described by Mrs. E. K. Wade’s book, Twenty-One Years of Scouting – The official history of the Boy Scout movement from its inception137. I would hazard that the war increased the tendency for retired army officers to be Scouters. Rovering, the section for those over say seventeen, was probably developed to meet the needs of the returned men who felt that they had been cheated of being scouts through having been called up for service in France and elsewhere. Senior Scouts Post World War II saw the division of the scout section with the older boys (over 15) being given their own section, “Senior Scouts.” But the change had been made first in the UK and Australian branches adopted it probably without too much comment. But on the whole the Australian state scout organisations had adopted the UK scout system without much change. The uniform, the handbooks, and the ethos – all were imported. Scouting for Boys was the basic text. That the pages dealt exclusively with Northern Hemisphere trees and birds did not seem to be seen as out of place. Even the North Polar star got a mention, despite it not being visible in Australia. Change in the air About 1964, Sir Charles Maclean, Chief Scout of the Commonwealth, convened in Britain a committee of very experienced scout leaders requiring them to investigate scouting and report on changes that they might recommend. Further, he gave his word that the recommendations would be adopted by the Association without further investigation. When I became an assistant scoutmaster in 1952 and encountered Scouting close up for the first time in my life, I tested scouts for their second and first class badges from handbooks that had started to include Australiana, such as eucalypts 137 The resulting report was known as The Advance Party Report. It is not the purpose of this chapter to discuss further the almost revolutionary changes that took part in the UK as a result, but to recognise that the APR C.. Arthur Pearson, Ltd., London, 1929 199 provided the impetus for the Australian branch commissioners convening a group to examine Australian Scouting. Their findings resulted in The Design for Tomorrow report. But, unlike in the UK, there was no undertaken given that its recommendations would necessarily be adopted without close examination. The DFT report In 1970 the committee provided its report in book form138. It ran to over six hundred pages. It could eventually be purchased at a nominal cost. Beginning with a comprehensive review of society and youth, it proceeded to make recommendations about every aspect of the movement in considerable detail. For those wishing to understand the movement as it is today, a study of the report is essential. Parallel with the Scouts, the Guide Association also undertook a review, Tomorrow’s Guide, Report of the Working Party, Girl Guide Association, 1966. (See page 135 above) The committee The report in its timeline context Mr. R. A. Brown was the first chairman. He was succeeded by C. C. Symon. Each state appointed one or two representatives, many of whom were also educators in their civilian careers, such as H. K. Carey for New South Wales. E. M. “Bus” Derrick, the movement’s national secretary, was appointed secretary to the committee. While many of the DFT’s recommendations were not adopted at the time, the constitutional framework for change was created in the body now known as Scouts Australia. From that time on Scouts Australia created standing committees to undertake regular reviews for each aspect and section of the movement from whose reports changes have been adopted. Scouting in 2010 is vastly different from the Scouting I first knew in 1952. Girls may now be members. The promise and law have been reworded. The achievement badges for all sections bear little resemblance to their forebears. The most well-known badge, “Queen’s Scout,” has been retained but the requirements to achieve the badge are much more challenging and cover a wider area of pursuits. Probably in no other area have the changes been more visible than in the uniform that is now worn. The South African police style as designed and favoured by our founder has gone. Only the scarf and woggle remain. What is worn from the belt down is optional in pattern and colour. The “shirt” has coloured sleeves to indicate the youth member’s section. Badges are still worked for and worn on the upper garment – it is hardly a shirt in the old sense of the word. Leader “rank” symbols have been discarded. 138 Report of the Design for Tomorrow Committee with appendices, Australian Boy Scouts Association, 30 June 1970 200 musical group, The Beatles and all that followed. Change The process of implementing change is a study in its own right. We hear of the phrase, “A win, win situation,” but this is nearly impossible to achieve. There will always be someone unhappy with the proposal, no matter how obvious it might appear to his or her peers. Implementation Unfortunately when it comes or came to implementation one could have predicted that the changes made would have been to the less important areas or where the need for a complete variation was “crying out aloud.” Organisations and their members are conservative by nature. It is said that such corporate bodies develop equilibrium or momentum which it will endeavour to maintain as it comes up against un-experienced challenges. David Hunt in reviewing the DFT lists these areas as Fundamentals, Uniform, Terminology, Leader Training, World Emblem, Name changes and Program, and title changes in each of the four (as they were then) sections. Dictators can often carry all before them – nothing like an execution or two to encourage the others – but in a free society the members themselves must be convinced of both the need for change and the wisdom of the changes that are adopted. Fundamentals The Cub section was to closely resemble that of the Scouts. In fact the cubs would move away from the Jungle Story approach and wear uniform similar to the scout section to some extent. The Scout Laws were re-worded with an emphasis on the importance of the environment. The religious policy of the movement was perhaps brought in line with prevailing views as to the belief of each member. Why change? David Hunt in a paper for the Committee for the Far Futures has reviewed the DFT and its cultural milieu of the sixties and seventies139 particularly as they might apply in the new century. Uniform He gives the reason for the convening of the DFT team as the fall in numbers in the movement, the first such fall in its history, particularly post World War II. I have already suggested that another strong reason was that UK Scouting had already set such a committee of review in being and had adopted its report. Because it so visible, uniform is often one of the most contentious aspects of any uniformed organisation. Between the many coloured variations of the South African Constabulary hat, shirt and shorts, (of 1952) and the current one of multi-coloured shirt and group scarf, the change has been gradual. But across the broad spectrum of society nearly every “voluntary” group, and many which were professional, was reviewing its aims and modus operandi against the changes that were taking place all around them in society, often characterised by the fact and acceptance of the The four dented hat was replaced by an Akubra but it never really took on, despite it being dubbed the “Johnson Hat.” A collar was added to the shirt but any other changes were minor. If there was any comment as to these changes it was about the quality of the new garments. 139 Hunt, David; Scouts Victoria, Committee for the Far Future, Data Analysis Workstream Discussion Document, 14 Dec 09, Scouts Australia – Victorian Branch, P.O. Box 774, Mount Waverley, 3149 201 Terminology Senior Scouts The word, “leader,” came to replace “master.” as in Group Leader. The Association changed its name to Scouts Australia. The recommendation was that this section now has its distinctive name, that of “Venturers,” but again it was a matter of following a similar change already adopted in the United Kingdom. Leader Training I was rather pleased to read from the DFT at page 214: “The concept of the District Troop has already been put into practice in a number of country towns, where community spirit possible transcends Group loyalty, and where shortage of competent leaders has made it necessary to provide good quality Senior Scouting with the minimum of man-power. Rather than slavishly following the training course handbooks from the English Gilwell, committees from each section across Australia began to draft training handbooks which would reflect the thinking of those leaders and the educational methods of the time together with their presentation in A4 size. A Commissioners’ woodbadge course was written and trialled. Those conducting training courses would no longer be ‘Deputy Camp Chiefs” but Leader Trainers and Assistant Leader Trainers. If there was an image of Scouting being “quaint,” it was being discarded. “The Senior Troop[s] of East Tarago (Victoria) and Mt. Gambier (South Australia) and the Barwon District Troop (Victoria) are examples. In these cases, the Senior Troop creates its own separate identity, wears its own distinctive scarf, and generates an esprit-de-corps based on District rather than Group.” World Emblem One’s past can come back to haunt one! The traditional tenderfoot badge gave way to the white fleur de lis on a purple background. This would be worn by all members. The fleur de lis was also to go through many changes in style. Australian Scouting adopted its own pattern. Females Girls would now be invited to join the Venturer and Rover sections. However Cubs Despite these so-called “revolutionary” changes, the numbers continued to decrease. As mentioned, the use of the Jungle Stories as the basis of the section was watered down, but it has come back to some extent since. The award scheme of three boomerangs replaced the previous two stars and Leaping Wolf badge. Scouts Again the award scheme was changed to have three basic badges – Pioneer, Explorer and Adventurer. 202 Graeme Taylor Chapter 40 Jim Money relinquished his role as Area Commissioner and this passed to Graeme Taylor. Graeme was a manager of a store in Geelong and had wide experience of Scouting in Melbourne. His business-like methods would be invaluable to the further development of Geelong Scouting. Plans were in place for Geelong to have its own scout shop in the Guild Hall in Myers Street premises, which was shared by the Guides and the Otway Foresters group. Jim Money would manage it. Another full year of Scouting activity For a further year I would be combining leader training with the leadership of an expanding district senior scout troop. I would have added the responsibilities being CO of the Geelong CMF regiment, but somehow it was all fitted in. At the end of the year, life for me would change dramatically but there was little hint of that as the troop “recovered” from the River Goulburn trip and I resumed my teaching role at North Geelong High School. The “Croadley” at Easter Kennedy Chapel Whereas Easter camping had been principally thought of in terms of the Stradbroke and Cohen Shields which had been traditionally conducted at Gilwell Park, Gembrook, headquarters now endeavoured to take the pressure off Gilwell and decentralise the competitions by staging them at other leading scout camping grounds in the state. One of these would be Eumeralla. On the holiday weekend nearest to Australia Day, Graeme Taylor and I attended the Gilwell Reunion. I was not re-elected chairman, perhaps at my own request or was there a coup? Graeme and I were to work on the development of the Kennedy Chapel. The chapel in the training ground had been built in the thirties. It reflected the ideas of what a church layout should be – altar or table at one end; seating in parallel rows at the other. The chapel was built during the depression of the thirties and it gave work to unemployed Rovers. It could seat over a hundred persons. But often a troop only needed a smaller area. With the cooperation of the park management committee a site near the main campfire circle was chosen. Seating for some thirty was to be provided with a simple reading desk. The “walls” and “windows” of the chapel would be the bush. Mike Downes was appointed to supervise the shield activities. He and I worked closely together in the planning phase prior to Easter. A team of assessors was formed and there was considerable interest in the proposals. In addition to the two shields, the Geelong Crichton Hide would also be competed for. Eumeralla was not hosting the Hoadley Hide, but something caused me to coin the word, “Croadley” as a combination of the two. Perhaps this had applied to an earlier year and I just imported it into Easter 1971. In addition to the Kennedy Memorial Gates, it was another way in which to recognise the time and energy that Mr. W. D. Kennedy had put into Gilwell Park. “Kenno” had been a master at Wesley College. He had met B-P and could yarn away about him at a campfire and hold his listeners spellbound. During his period as warden, many buildings and facilities were constructed to the benefit of all, whether camping scouts or leaders undergoing training. The staff used the training hut facilities. I have always been a keen walker140 and I think I wore out Mike’s shoes for him as I set an example in walking around the camping sites at Eumeralla. 140 By 2009 the cartilage in my right hip had worn away, necessitating a new hip. I found that my pleasure in walking was greatly restricted. Had I walked too much in my younger days? The operation was due to take place in March 2010. (It was very successful.) 203 On a sad note, Max Grinter, a leader of 17th Geelong and a leading citizen in his role as the key man in the Griffiths Book Store, experienced the first symptoms of an illness that would eventually take his life. It was tragic to witness his desire to see his boys while restricted that Easter to a camp bed. Max was also an ADC for training in City District. With the help of Ross Hutton and a diagram on graph paper, we had planned a large particle board across the spare bed and placed chairs around it. Desks, lights and filing cabinets followed. It was carried out on the basis that I was semi-permanent in Geelong and was likely to remain single! Oh, the plans of mice and men! Training activities I used coloured chalk to write up the names of the groups and their leaders, using a different colour for the stage of training reached by each leader. Following a training course, I would upgrade the “board” with the new colour. The “board” provided a first class graphic picture of training progress and scouter personnel across the Geelong area. Norman Johnson, who had become “Mr. Scouting” by now, held the 1971 Training Team day in February at Scotch College. Scotch College had three scout groups. Scouting was an alternative to cadets and community service, although all three “meshed” in providing worthwhile development activities for the students. The senior scouts met regularly around the new table, often in Court of Honour style. Meanwhile I was completing a diploma in educational administration and the large table space was ideal upon which to spread out books and research papers. Memory suggests that the Monash Freeway was being constructed at the time with “encroachment” on the school’s playing fields from the overhead roadway. The grounds, together with the River Yarra and the rowing facilities provided a pleasant venue for the training sessions. I was always very grateful for the indulgence of my landlord, Mr. Stan Colledge, who tolerated the frequent comings and goings of scout personnel who, to get to my flat, had to come up the driveway past his house. Mrs. Colledge acted as a ‘mother’ to me from time to time if I was off colour. Later in the year, Scotch hosted a Group Leaders’ course at which Ken Abrecht, Paul Pianta (Troop Leader) and I were guest trainers for the older boys section. At it we were very happy to quote the relevant page of the Design for Tomorrow report (page 214 of the report) where the “district” training (or “pooling”) for senior scouts and its success was vindicated. Dr. Charles Parker Dr. Parker was a medical general practitioner. I think his home group was 3rd Highton. He had already helped me on the River Goulburn expedition. He now became a great supporter. Clearly he enjoyed the diversion of Scouting from his daily practice. It was also very beneficial to have a GP on site during activities. He brought considerable maturity to the troop, together with his two sons. I never lacked for assistance. Peter MacAuslan, GSM of 1st Highton, continued to help wherever possible. Wall “blackboard” Meanwhile the Geelong training panel continued to meet monthly and conduct its range of courses. At some stage in 1970 or 1971, I got permission from my landlord to apply “blackboard” paint to a wall in the flat where I lived. This was to be in the room which I had set up as a meeting place for a range of my activities. 204 When I was appointed commanding officer of the Geelong CMF regiment I decided to hold dinners to which the managers of the firms that employed the part-time soldiers would be invited. Further, the mayors or councillors of the many cities that comprised greater Geelong would be included. Officers of the unit would be invited to act as hosts. Colac Colac reconnaissance Colac Colac (pronounced, ‘klak, klak,”) was the overnight camping spot for the reconnaissance of the proposed canoeing trip in which sections of the Upper Murray River would be used. The weekend of 15th/16th October, 1971, proved to be convenient to those involved. The party of six141 included both adults and patrol leaders. I invited Miss Monkivitch to be hostess at the first of these functions. The third of these dinners was held at Colac, where the regiment had a battery. The Colac Herald was prophetic but had jumped the gun when it referred to Lieutenant Colonel and Mrs. Farley! My proposal was made following the regimental ball in October. The wedding was set for early December. The upper reaches of the River Murray were proposed. The “recce” party was able to drive around these areas, although at that stage of the year, there was still a lot of snow on the ground. It was on this weekend that the reconnaissance party met up with famous state parliamentarian, The Hon. Tom Mitchell, MLC, who was “fanatical” about Scouting. One felt that this on entering what might be thought of as his “fiefdom.” His estate was called Towong Hall. The walls of his office were covered in maps of the highlands and he had his own radio communication system. He was most helpful with our planning. The party returned to Geelong on the Sunday believing that a worthwhile expedition could be planned. It was a military wedding with a guard of honour of officers with swords. The senior scouts were not directly involved. However, Shirley’s Guide Company sang the 23rd psalm. Shirley and I enjoyed a week in Marysville142, with a day walking on Lake Mountain.. But how would my change of life fit in with Scouting? In addition to canoeing, the highlands of Mount Kosciusko would provide great areas for walking. The return trip could be via the east coast with its lakes and other attractions. George Street Unbeknown to me Shirley had inherited a house relatively nearby in George Street. Between returning from Marysville and Christmas, we moved in to it. I had to pack up my flat, greatly reducing my possessions and having to say goodbye to the wall blackboard of scouter training progress. The large table board went to the home of Graeme Taylor. A new life for me had begun. I felt that I had shed years and was young again. Marriage At the start of 1971 I was half-way through my 39th year. I had looked after myself for four years in my flat in Belmont. I already knew that Miss Shirley Monkivitch was a Guide trainer. She used to attend our area training meetings in that role. She and I also worshipped at the same church, St. Stephen’s Anglican Church, Belmont. 141 Station wagons in 1971 still had space for three adults across the wide front seat. As mentioned before I had six seat belts installed, even though only the front set were then compulsory. 142 The guest house was destroyed in the fires on Black Saturday, 2009 205 delayed by an hour! Such is the influence of those that meet our daily needs. Chapter 41 Now for the Upper Murray and its head waters Shirley would accompany me on the trip, and drive her Capri car, carrying three of the seniors. Russell King (now troop leader) and his father, Tom, decided that the canoes would travel better on a metal frame and they fabricated one on the basis of the size of the trailer that we would be getting. In the event the first trailer to be offered would not take the frame, but there was a quick swap. The loaded trailer sat outside in the street the night before we set off and I trusted that no one would interfere with it. They didn’t. Launching the canoes at Coleman’s Bend. At this stage the sun is out and everything right with the world. The first group to launch in their canoes found the going hard and soon foundered. In the process Chris Williams lost his glasses, which caused his mother on the spot to be very concerned. There was a re-grouping at Colac Colac that night. Day One --- 1st January On the first day there were three vehicles – the Valiant towing the canoe trailer; a Viva (Charles Parker) with his yacht/dingy; and the Capri (Shirley). Shirley does not like being in a convoy, but our two vehicles eventually caught up with her at an RV! Day Three – 3rd January Shirley and I headed down stream to Talmalmo to await the canoe party but no canoes came around the bend and it was four o’clock before Charles Parker came to say that the party had got no further than Jinjelic, where they had exited the river. Once again we moved to Colac Colac Caravan Park. Here Jean Williams had prepared and cooked the meals for the headquarters team. At Colac Colac we were joined by Brian and Mrs. Jean Williams, with their Jaguar car and caravan. This meant that at most stops Mrs. Williams would soon have the kettle boiling and we were sustained with tea or coffee. Day Two – 2nd January In retrospect the itinerary did not respond to clear aims or were the aims muddled? The party was to proceed to the Upper Murray River and canoe there. Then, after a visit to Mount Kosciusko, the party would move to the east coast and come back via Mallacoota. The trip was planned to last a fortnight. Day Four -- 4th January The plan was for canoeing to continue until lunch time, but this idea was cancelled and the parties proceeded to Tumut. Here we set up camp in a lush setting. Shirley tried her skills at canoeing. In the evening some of us played monopoly. Milton Cations wanted to play it hard but I demonstrated my skills and wore him down. A bit of a holiday atmosphere started to develop. Not a bad thing, but it was not that which had been contemplated. The second day was a Sunday. The senior scouts went along to Presbyterian and Anglican services. Shortly after the latter service commenced, the other seniors trooped in, saying that the “milkman” caused that service to be 206 Day Five – 5th January Day Nine – 9th January It was quite a steep climb for the Valiant as we made our way to Kiandra for lunch. There was a stop at the Yarrongobilly Caves before we proceeded to the Mt. Kosciusko National Park. In the rain everything seemed to go wrong: I caught the bumper on a tree stump, our campsite was already occupied. It was raining. Then the ranger appeared, the site was sorted out, the stump chopped away and we set up camp. The only available church service at Cooma was the Presbyterian one where again we were made very welcome. Again Jean Williams had matters ready for lunch and then we drove down Brown Mountain into Eden to camp. Would you believe the same group of people – now in their Sunday best! The four canoes, named after Snow White’s friends, are neatly secured on their metal rig Day Ten – 19th January The expedition party in working gear – where are the maroon T-shirts? On the right are the three leaders, Graham and Shirley Farley, and Charles Parker Mallacoota. Day Six – 6th January Day Eleven – 20th January This was an unforgettable day as we drove to a convenient spot from which we hiked up to the summit of Mt. Kosciusko. The weather was perfect and the views magnificent. The road back was not and then rain started but by then I was back on a sealed road. We camped that night at the same spot. Minor expeditions were made in the area as we waited for the weather to improve. It was very humid and still. Day Seven – 7th January A day of rest. Day Eight – 8th January The day’s drive took us through Jindabyne and the Barry Way. We stopped for a wonderful walk through to the Snowy River. Wherever adolescents find a river they will attempt to dam it – or were they water babies? 207 Day Twelve – 21st January Finally the canoes could be put once again into the water, but it was paddling all the way in the lake or up the arm of the river. Charles had his dingy with its small motor operating as a “mother” craft. Most had quite a day on the lake. Day Thirteen – 22nd January Returning the canoes and the metal rig to the doublewidth garage. Unfortunately the canoes had to be first taken off their rig before they could be restacked inside Lakes Entrance was our next destination. We then went on to Bairnsdale where Cliff and Pat Dent, with their children, visited the campsite. Kennedy Chapel At the Gilwell Reunion in 1972, the Kennedy Chapel was officially opened. This was located near the large campfire circle in a secluded spot as an alternative place to worship than the traditional chapel in the training ground. A pensive Russell King Day Fourteen – 23rd January A visit was made to RAAF East Sale in the morning. This had been arranged but in the event there was no aircraft activity, which was a bit of a disappointment. That night the party stopped in Warragul although there were those in the party who would have liked to drive through to Geelong. The W. D. Kennedy Memorial Chapel, Gilwell Park Whereas the latter had a rectangular layout, the new chapel was more “in the round,” in keeping with contemporary trends. The reunion committee followed up the idea of providing a number of activity sites, known as “statics,” at which those attending the reunion could test their skills and refresh their knowledge of Scouting. Shirley was also invited to the weekend and assisted with the displays. Day Fifteen – 15th January In the morning we witnessed the departure of the Warragul Senior Scouts on their expedition and then our party drove home to Geelong after a very different type of trip to some previously. 208 no rain fell. The pressure of other activities in my life was such that I never had the occasion to take part in such hikes again. Marriage changes all perspectives, and even more so with parenthood, which would be with us from May, 1973. Training techniques Norm Johnson, the training commissioner, encouraged Leon Costermans and me to demonstrate to the members of the training team the various techniques that were available for making their courses more interesting. The overhead projector was now becoming a standard visual aid at training courses. Woodbadge course I was asked to lead my first Group Leader/Commissioner course which would be held at Eumeralla Scout Camp. In preparing these notes I had completely overlooked that I had ever supervised such a course were it not for my diary entries. So I will stick fairly closely to what I wrote at the time. Easter Normally Shirley would have conducted a guide camp at Tullawalla, a camp site further along the coast from Anglesea, but she was not well. I “offered” to erect one of the tents for the girls, who I think were being trusted to camp on their own. I have to admit that I left the tent poles back at Eumeralla but still persevered by using nearby trees to guy the tent. The tent was still a sorry sight when I had finished. The girls made it even more difficult for me by taking photographs of it to later show “Cap.” Ashley Batten, who had been a leader on the scout woodbadge course that I did back in January 1955, assisted on the first weekend. I recalled that he had had a bad time as a prisoner of war with the Japanese and living and health were challenges. He accepted and conquered these with great exemplary stoicism. Norm Johnson arranged for training team members to come and assist me. Meanwhile at Eumeralla, Mike Downes was there again to supervise the Stradbroke Cup and Cohen Shield activities. Once again I walked Mike off his feet. I enjoy walking and we did not want cars on the dusty tracks. The second “weekend” or rather “three days” was held over the Queen’s Birthday holiday weekend. Leon Costermans came on the Saturday. Bob Swinton came for the Sunday and the Monday. Norm Johnson and Eric Newbigin visited on the Monday. Bill Dawson also came down for some time. Stage 1 The revamped system of training courses was being tried out. This was part of an overall “maturing” of Australian society as in many walks of life, the young colony, only eight years short of its two hundredth one, was breaking away from its United Kingdom inheritance. The Explanatory Course would now be known as Stage 1. I am not sure that the content was changed in any significant way. A highlight, especially in view of his early death, was a talk by “Boss’ Hurst on his links with Nauru and its scouts. Using the various techniques used on ‘new-type’ conferences and the ideas from my educational administration studies, I used “in baskets,” films, film strips, and role plays. I led sessions on the study of society and the nature “of the boy.” It was difficult to stick to the laid down course with the number of visiting leaders. “Twilight” hike I was not to know it at the time that it would be my last “hike,” but I led a small party of senior scouts on a three or four day hike in the country at the back of Gilwell Park. Considering the time of the year, May, it was relatively mild and The third weekend was at the start of July. Bert Blair was my main support. His speciality was Rovering; so in the course of the three weekends 209 we had covered each of the sections, although who spoke on Cubbing I cannot recall. lease on land above the cliffs, which became the Eumeralla site. Scout Shop branch Here Boss built a weekend home for himself with magnificent views. He was able to act as an unofficial camp warden and visits to his clifftop home were highlights for camping scouts. He always took a great interest in what they were doing and helping them out of trouble if they were short of food or the weather turned against them. During the year, the scout shop branch opened in the Guild Hall with the former Area Commissioner, Jim Money, as its manager. This was a great step forward as parents of scouts had previously been obliged to travel to Melbourne for uniforms, books and badges. In addition, the shop provided a communication opportunity where people met each other and passed on information. Brisbane Gang Show While in Brisbane visiting my sister, Shirley and I visited a performance of the Brisbane Gang Show. Most states in Australia produced their own gang shows, which were based on the songs and skits of the English show written by Ralph Reader. “Boss” Hurst dies There was a big funeral when “Boss” died in August. He had been “Mr. Scouting” in Geelong and it was very hard to think of Scouting in that city without his personality being present. Queen’s Scouts Several members of the BDSST qualified for their Queen Scout badge. In addition to the group ceremonies where the boys received the badge, there was the presentation of the certificate at Government House. The dust cover of Don Chambers’ book on the life of “Boss” Hurst who, amongst other achievements, developed the Eumeralla camp site at Anglesea He had helped to establish the first camp on the banks of the Anglesea River and then, when that area was no longer available, liaised with the Forestry Commission of Victoria to obtain a If you marry a Guide Captain, then you can expect to be constructing commando bridges and enabling the fairer sex to “enjoy the joys of the Scouting boys” … 210 Resign warrant Bairnsdale reconnaissance The new Area Commissioner, Graeme Taylor, a close friend of mine, preferred that leaders did not have dual warrants. He invited Scouters such as me to surrender one. I think he was a little surprised when I chose to remain as the DSSL and surrendered the training warrant. Bob George was the first to act as training commissioner. Later, Doug Edmonds took over the training role. In a similar way to my “last” hike, this would be my last expedition, but not that of BDSST. The troop still had its focus on canoeing, but that required a river as a base. It was decided to return to the Mitchell River in Gippsland and so a reconnaissance took place. In the event, rainfall was very slight that year and the expedition was dogged by poor river flows. Peter Dawson, TL Peter was elected Troop Leader in place of Russell King. Increasingly the district troop was self regulating and self determining. Dr. Charles Parker was very active with the section. It continued to be successful and its numbers grew. I have always felt that a key reason for the success was the formal communications that we enjoyed. I would prepare a circular at the high school where I taught. I worked out a route around Belmont and Highton and over several afternoons after school I would walk the distance and put the circulars into the various letter boxes of the members. There could never be any excuse that families did not know what was going on, where, when, how &c. Memory is that there were then some forty-five circulars to distribute. Canoeing on the Barwon River with a view to gaining water certificates Camp Eumeralla Day, Anglesea 211 to get back on board. It was no use. I was not athletic enough. But I think I was given the certificate on the condition that I did not ever get into a canoe! Chapter 42 Back to the Gippsland Lakes for the next canoeing expedition “Narse” Lesser Bairnsdale expedition One day when I was whipping ends of rope, Shirley and I received a pleasant surprise in a visit by “Narse” Lesser. “Narse” was one of several scout leaders who were masters at Wesley College in Melbourne. The other members included W. D. Kennedy, Dick Milne and Eddie Wells – each of them famous in their own field. In my diary I noted that most of the senior scouts on this trip were on their first such expedition. At that stage there was no regular troop leader. A converted ambulance was hired for transport. The Bairnsdale area was used again as I had already had the experience of the trip to the same spots some years earlier and there was a limit to the navigable rivers in Victoria. “Narse,” at my Explanatory course back in May 1952, had led a session during which he shared the contents of his scout library with us. He was a member of the team that conducted the wood badge course when I was a candidate. Some time later “Narse” invited me to be a member of the campfire team for the jamboree at Clifford Park. That jamboree was memorable for its daily tropical downpour. I well remember conducting campfires in the rain. Somehow we would encourage the lit fire to defy the rain. Ground sheets were the “in thing” to wear at these campfires! The expedition team at Mallacoota Guide State Camp Loading of the trailer went to schedule. There was a storm on the eve of the trip but the trailer, parked outside our house, weathered the night rather well. I was assisted by Elton Wescott, a 3rd Highton scouter and Mr. and Mrs. Tom King. Both Elton and Tom brought their families. Both contributed boats, which were towed behind vehicles. Being married to a Guide Captain meant visits to and support of guide functions. One day we went to Britannia Park where some of Shirley’s Guider friends and Guides were in camp. The park is near Warburton. Water certificates Day One – To the Mitchell River I am not sure how I got caught on this one, but there was a need for the senior scouts going on the Bairnsdale trip to have the relevant water certificate. This included getting back into a canoe, having been “pitched” overboard. I found myself challenged to be so certificated, but in the middle of the Barwon River (suitably buoyed up by a life jacket) I tried time and again On Saturday, 13th January, the four vehicles got away at nine and made good progress, although I had trouble with the booster brakes on the Valiant. Cliff Dent visited us at our campsite. The ambulance was driven by Elton Wescott. 212 Day Two – Orbost, Mallacoota Day Five – Still on the water The troop attended churches where once again we were made a fuss of. It had been a good start to the day with a very brisk “break of camp.” Lunch was at Orbost and the site at Mallacoota occupied late in the afternoon. Geoff Grant varied the day’s plans by fishing off the point. The hoped for boat trip out to the island did not eventuate. Two of the troop came back past a notice discouraging passage beyond that point. Elton and I took the canoe parties further a field and waited for their return. By now, members had made contact, or hoped they had, with the district’s females! Day Three – Water activities Clark Swan writes home Roger Grant fishing The scouts canoed on the lake during the day. The sail plane was also successfully launched. A lady lent the lads a prawning net and that occupied them if they were not playing Monopoly with me. Towards midnight the catch was cooked and served to those still awake. Day Six – Lind, Bairnsdale It was a most lethargic “break of camp.” I had been lulled into a false expectation by earlier moves. Lunch was taken at the Lind National Park. Afternoon tea was at Nowa Nowa. My passion for trains had not started by then apparently or I would have sought out the magnificent rail trestle nearby. Later in the afternoon camp was established at Bairnsdale. We met up with a party of senior scouts from 1st Upper Ferntree Gully who had been canoeing “the hard way.” Day Four – Genoa and canoeing The party moved to Genoa. Here the canoeists were launched upstream, but they encountered reeds on the way down river. Tom King took his motorised yacht, the Egret, upstream to meet them and they were towed back in style. The engine was not the ‘super-duper’ one that most boat owners like to fit, but its motor and propeller worked well and achieved their aim. Meanwhile police were inspecting an overturned power boat that had nothing to do with our party. Prawning took place again that night. Day Seven – Canoe parties in the heat The weather turned very hot and the level of the Mitchell River was very low. Was this the result of a drought or the operation of the 213 Thomson Dam upstream? Geoff Grant’s party was launched at Lindenow and Glen Soulsby’s at another spot. Day Eleven – Day of decision Nature was still batting against us. The next stage of the trip was to include a boat trip in the vicinity of Wilson’s Promontory but this was unlikely to take place. The lads were pretty well tired out. A troop conference took place and the decision was made to return to Geelong the next day. That night, the party feasted at a Golden Fleece restaurant getting nearly all they could eat for $2. How money values have changed since 1973! Day Eight – Waiting for the canoe parties Eventually that day, Elton and I recovered the teams – now very tired out and scorched in the sun. In the afternoon quite a few had an excellent time on the yacht. We played Monopoly again that night. It never seems to pall. We were glad of the availability of some soldering at the enterprise owned by Cliff Dent’s father to make the canoe rack safer for travelling. Day Twelve – Home Packing up the camp was very efficient and the four-vehicle party proceeded back down the Gippsland highway through Melbourne and home to Geelong. This time we did not have to rely on V Line. An increasing feature of these expeditions was that families were involved. As with Jean and Brian Williams of the previous year, the King and Westcott families fitted in and there was great respect between all parties. The smiles on their faces tell it all Day Nine – Church and rest day This time, the “non-Anglicans” went to the Methodist Church. After that the party took things easy with swimming and some canoeing. The local Senior Scout Leader, Kevin Perry, was most hospitable to us. Day Ten – A repeat of Day Seven A developing feature of the January canoeing expeditions was that families accompanied the expedition. Here Tom King (left) and Elton Wescott (right) are supported by wives, daughters and their friends Our planning was correct but the weather did not play ball. The two parties struggled again with warmth and water levels, but in due course they were recovered. This recovery included that of a canoe that had been abandoned upstream. Geoff Grant and Dale Constable swam after it and returned with it. Probably the other main lesson was that a period of ten days is probably quite sufficient both in terms of the energy of the boys and the families of the adults. I did not know it but it was to be my last such trip as I would be packing up to go 214 years: of scouting” and listed the ten or so Queen Scouts that received their badges and certificates during that period. I had played a small part in that process. to Birchip twelve months later and handing the leadership of the troop to others. February functions I only attended for one day of the Gilwell Reunion, that of the business meeting. A feature of the annual meeting is always a roll call of when the attendees had completed their wood badge. I had only had mine for eighteen years. There were those present who went back to the very first courses held in Victoria. ETSST I did not lose contact with my former Warragul district senior troop. That troop held a reunion of its members at the Brighton Grammar School camp at Labertouche. It was now ten years since the troop had formed. I was invited to attend and pleased, not only to be with Shirley, but to produce our brand new son, Roger, for display. There seemed to be genuine pleasure in Roger’s appearance and many wished to hold him to be assured that he was not a figment of their imagination! The Training Team meeting was again held at Scotch College. I cannot recall the reason for this decision but apparently Norm Johnson only saw the need for one day’s meeting. Scotch College in the metropolitan area was a central location for it. Max Grinter First Mirboo North It was very sad when Max, a member of the Geelong training team, succumbed to lung cancer and died. He had undergone an operation in which one of his lungs had been removed but the outlook had always been bleak. Max had been a keen scout leader and his wife, Heather, headed up the catering branch for our training courses. In his professional role, he had been a key member of the management team of the Griffiths Book Store in Geelong. Shirley and I were invited to attend the opening of the 1st Mirboo North’s scout hall in the town’s recreation reserve. Prior to this, scout meetings had been held in the Anglican Church hall. Norm Johnson asked me to call in at the training course at Gilwell Park on the way to Mirboo North in Gippsland. Here he presented me with my fourth bead and announced that I was now a Leader Trainer, thus eligible to conduct the wood badge courses. The “Boss” Hurst light The area panel had sought a means by which to recognise Mr. Hurst’s contribution to Geelong scouting. The decision was made to erect a mast surmounted by an eternal light on the edge of the parade ground at the Eumeralla scout camp. It was lit in association with the Area AGM. Eumeralla service The Leader Trainer’s certificate, previously the Honourable Charge of Deputy Camp Chief A group of Geelong scouters thought that a scouts’ own service should be held in the new chapel at the camp. Those seated in this chapel had a wonderful view of the Southern Ocean. The opening ceremony for the scout hall went to plan. A booklet was produced for the event and it had a history of the group. In the relevant years of 1956 to 1958, it referred to the “golden 215 A proud father holds his new-born son, Roger, complete with mini scarf. The coast and township of Anglesea are clearly visible beyond the chapel altar. The weather on the day was excellent. The mother that made the scarves for the Barwon senior scouts had run up a small one for our son. I have a picture of us both on my bookcase as I type this chapter. It brings back some very happy memories. Unlike so many of its predecessors, this publication had plenty of colours in its diagrams and page headings. It ranked in “authority” and “presentation” with the quality school text books that were then coming on the market and could be proudly part of any school boy’s locker or book shelf. Considerable resources and effort had been put into this book. Above all it had been specifically produced for Australia and its conditions. BDVU About this time, Australian scouting made a number of changes, most based on recommendations from the Design for Tomorrow report. One was to change the name of senior scouts to that of Venturers and treat them as “units.” Hence the district troop now became the Barwon District Venturer Unit or BDVU and the Warragul one, the ETVU. Turning the pages of the Australian Scout Handbook the reader could soon pick up the changes that had already been made. The uniform appeared unchanged except that Scouters wore a normal shirt, tie and long trousers. The four-dented hat was still in vogue. A seminal publication 1n 1973 The Scout Association of Australia prepared and put on sale the Australian Scout Handbook. This handsomely presented “text book” was published by the well-known firm of McGraw Hill Book Company, Sydney143. It was a comprehensive book for the boy entering the Scout section and contained all that he would need to know, whether about the fundamentals or the award schemes. It ran to some four hundred pages The new Scout award scheme of Pioneer, Explorer and Adventurer was in place. The activities of the former Air Scout and Sea Scout sections were now available to all scouts, which presumes that those separate sections were being phased out. The final two pages concerned the Venturer section. The coloured diagrams and drawings contained a message that e Venturers hiked, canoed, learned about car engines and abseiled. Distinctively he wore a beret but was still in shorts! 143 McGraw Hill was a well-known firm in educational and knowledge-based circles for their up-to-date range of well-presented text books, many of which were prescribed by schools, universities and other educational institutions. 216 The book’s chapter headings were informative in themselves: Scouting; Citizenship; Air Activities; Campcraft; Water Activities; Art; Bushcraft; Conservation; Construction; Emergencies; Fitness; Science; Water Safety; Awards and Venturing. Geelong had played a big part in both of our lives. Shirley had been born and grown up there. My only Australian relations, the Faggs, lived there. I had been CO of the Geelong regiment. I had taught at both Bell Park and North Geelong high schools. We had both attended St. Stephen’s Anglican Church in Belmont, where we were married and witnessed our son’s baptism. I was also a lay reader and had taken services at St. James’ and St. Cuthbert’s, both part of the St. Stephen’s parish. Presumably there was also a corresponding handbook for the other sections. In removing the majority of UK publications off the shelves of the Scout Shops, there was a likelihood of a vacuum being created in their place. Mike Downes was directly involved in a series of later publications to fill this void, but all too often the “print run” was never big enough to justify the quality of the booklets that was probably necessary. Comparisons are always odious and if a boy was to choose Scouting as his main “out of school” hobby, then he must have in his hands an attractive and informative book that his non-scout friends could not fail but to admire and covet. Preparing for a continuous Stage 4 In the same way that the Explanatory Course had been re-styled Stage 1, the Part Two of the wood badge course was titled Stage 4. This was the practical or camp part of the certificate. It was conducted either over three weekends or by a week’s continuous attendance, generally at Gilwell Park. I was invited to lead the one that would be held over the January vacation. I am not sure how I recruited my two assistants, but one of them was George Todeschini from Bendigo. He would later be awarded the medal of the Order of Australia at the same time that I was so honoured in June 1999. George was to be part of the January continuous course on a number of occasions. His contribution was terrific but the account of those must wait for another chapter. Final nights for the Farleys I had successfully applied to be a principal and I was appointed to Birchip High School from 1974, which meant that we would be The other assistants would be Leon Costermans, Dick Milne, John Kent and Barry Marshall. Barwon District Venturer Unit (BDVU) in the care of their new leader, Elton Wescott. LtoR: Elton, Clark Swan, Bryce Hutton, Trevor Miller, Peter Dawson, and David Lambourn. Venturer on right unidentified leaving Geelong. In turn the BDVU, the Guides and the training panel held farewell nights for us. A chapter, that had spread over seven years, was about to come to an end. 217 Nor was there an adequate toilet block. It was also a feature that the trainees prepared and cooked their own meals. Chapter 43 From Barwon to the Kara Kara District to the UK again Now nearly twenty years later, the training ground had been developed to the stage where there was a second training area centred on the De Molnar hall. The huts, originally constructed by Tom Russell had been moved to the upper area and brick huts put in their place. Wood badge course I had completed my wood badge course back in 1955 by attending a January continuous course. That one was conducted by Mr. W. D. Kennedy. In those days the training team lived up in the lodge at the other end of The Chief’s Approach The Fritz De Molnar Hall This was to be the first of a number of January continuous courses when I would have the confidence of the branch training commissioner to conduct the Group Leader/Commissioner course. In later years the commissioners would have their own course, their training needs being quite different. The Lodge* *This and other photos of Gilwell Park, Gembrook, come from The Story of Gilwell in Victoria, Revised Edition, 1980 and the trainee scouters slept in the original Russell patrol huts on the lower training ground. This was before the Hoadley Hall was built. The beauty of the continuous course is that leaders could get to know one another and the course could have a unity not as easily achieved with three separate weekends. Leon Costermans and Dick Milne accepted my invitation to join the team. In seeking “counsellors” or “mentors,” George Todeschini (Bendigo). John Kent (Warragul) and Barry Marshall joined me, although we acted as a team taking various sessions and changing roles. There were two courses being run in parallel; the scout one using the Hoadley Hall and ours the De Molnar. The various scouters arrived on the Saturday, enabling the team to get organised the day before. Dick Milne was a great help. Over many courses he played a support role and in particular supervised the catering. January 1974 Continuous GL wood badge course at Gilwell Park. Training Team members: Rear row second from left – Leon Costermans; same row last three – Dick Milne, John Kent and George Todeschini. 218 choice to organise and chair144 this function. Again, such a formal activity tended to show up those members who had never experienced such an occasion. Having now retired from Wesley College, Dick’s energy was directed into many tasks, but one of great benefit to the movement was the binding of magazines and other documents. As such he became a fount of knowledge, particularly about the founder. Dick took over the role that “Kenno” played in telling people on courses about the movement’s founder. The following and last day of the course was declared a day of total fire ban. But it rained for much of the day! Compared with nowadays, few preparations were taken or concerns were held for the threat of bushfire. I often shudder when I think back over my scouting career to the hikes and expeditions that I took or led in fairly dense bush on such days – I mean the hot north wind ones. I attempted to find out before the course as to expectations of its members. Having been through university and in the school situation, I tended to be confident with the written word, but I was to find that this was not a general characteristic of the community. The course concluded with perhaps the team leader learning more about running a course than the trainees did to take back to their groups and districts. In the end people on such courses judge the success or otherwise on how genuine and memorable the leader team is and can be. At this stage of my scouting career I was more or less faithfully following the handbooks. With the blessing and encouragement of John Ravenhall that would change. In fact, one person on the course was functionally illiterate. I did not mean to, but I embarrassed him when I queried his ability as a group leader to cope with correspondence and books. He assured me that his wife read the documents for him and it left me to ponder as to how a person could be best utilised in scouting. I was fortunate on this course in dealing with this leader that I had a number of mature people, including a former sea captain (with two rows of naval experience ribbons on his chest and a proven record of handling men). He counselled the leader in question developing a compromise that was acceptable to all. I found I had to cope with the full range of problems that might include response to accident, news of domestic stress or ability to cope with the requirements of the course amongst many other possibilities. These were always less on a weekend course, where the course member knew that they would soon be home again. I think this was when “Tim” entered the course. It was a tape describing how a potential cub, when it came to his investiture, wondered how he could take the promise without having a belief in God or feeling he had loyalty to the Queen. This situation reflected changes in society with more and more relaxations taking place in regard to accepted forms of behaviour. In earlier days, a person having either of these difficulties would have kept quiet. Now these situations were being brought more into the open. This was a large course and perhaps not the one on which I should have cut my teeth. The old Gilwell UK training was still being followed to a considerable extent. It was increasingly less relevant to the Australian situation of 1973. I learnt a lot from it and it was probably only my conceited belief in my own ability that got me through. Future courses would have their challenges but never to the same extent as this one. The ‘final dinner’ was now a feature of woodbadge courses. With all his army and cadet experience, Dick Milne was an obvious 144 Readers with any service experience would be well acquainted with the role of Dining Mess President (military messes) 219 I recognised her efforts. It was odd to be in a town with the experience that I had and not find a vibrant group with a strong group committee and at least the cub and scout sections. At that stage there seemed little that I could do about it. I had long service leave coming up and thus I would be away from the town for three to four months. My first duty was to the school, but I was on the watch for likely citizens to become leaders and reinvigorate the local group. Somers Memorial Gateway and Somers’ Walk ADC Training Meanwhile, Elton Wescott, who had taken over as Barwon District Senior Scout Leader, led the summer expedition for canoeing on the River Goulburn. The notes from him on the reconnaissance were very similar to those of the previous trip to this area which I had led. The BDVU was now someone else’s problem and challenge. I was appointed ADC Training for Kara Kara district. The DC lived in a neighbouring township. There was not too much district activity and I cannot recall attending many meetings. Long Service Leave in the UK Having been born in England, I took the opportunity to “show off” my wife and son to the various families and friends that both of us had in the United Kingdom. Through the ease of flying, we would be able to enjoy some three months away – much the same time as in 1951, when sea travel was the only way to get from one side of the earth to the other. That took four to five weeks both ways. Birchip I had taught in two country towns before coming to Birchip, but this time the difference would be that I was the school’s educational leader as principal. Birchip was an important centre for a region where the farmers ran sheep and grew wheat. It was said that the township had begun at the junction of several cart tracks when a merchant’s cart overturned and he sold his wares there and then. Naturally I took my scout uniform and got a letter of introduction before I went. Donald was some distance to the south with Sea Lake to the north. To the east was Wycheproof: a similar sized township to Birchip. Both towns were served with rail transport, Birchip being on the line to Mildura. The larger centres of Warracknabeal, Horsham and Bendigo were thought of in distances of time to travel to them: up to two hours. Baden-Powell House Shirley and I found it very convenient to make our headquarters at B-P House in London. A one-year-old son required an understanding dining room and a suitable menu. I could also park our camper van in the basement of the building. 1st Birchip In the foyer was a glass case containing the complete works of our Founder. I also had the chance to enter a lift just as Ralph Reader, the producer of the London Gang Show, came out. Later in the trip we were at Poole and could see Birchip had little in the way of a scout group. A lady looked after a group of boys of cub age but from what I could observe, it could hardly be called a cub pack. But the lady was willing and 220 Brownsea Island in the distance but it was not to be on that occasion that we could visit it. SAGGA The Scout and Guide Graduate Association was/is a group of scout and guide leaders who were linked principally though having undergone tertiary experiences, such as the senior colleges and universities. My cousin, Elizabeth, and her husband were members. They showed me some of the magazines that SAGGA published. The main hall, Gilwell Park, Chingford, UK It was a pleasant experience to be back in the atmosphere of the “Mecca” of Commonwealth scouting, if not of the world. I was also able to find out the new training systems that UK scouting was developing. It was certainly now more “adult” in its approach. The articles discussed the aims and achievements of the movements from an academic point of view. I suppose I had a similar approach to most activities. I took out membership and received their material for some years. The earlier Gilwell Park training courses expected that on a Cub course, the adult trainees would act and behave as cubs. There was always a dressing-up day. On a scout course, the adults became scouts with their elected patrol leader, while the trainers became the Scout and Assistant Scout Masters. On a Group Scout Master (GL) course, a day of the course would be allocated to each section, with the adults being trained in the culture of that section. This could be both satisfying but also very irritating to some. While near Coventry, I met up with a member of their executive and he let me have a set of “situational” or “gaming” scenarios. These documents outlined a “typical” group and gave details as to numbers, locations, personalities and activities. The document would then ask the candidate to accept a particular role and respond to letters, phone calls, visits and happenings in real time. This was a technique in adult training that was being used in many occupations. It was an attempt to simulate a situation and help the trainee to develop skills to react to the situation as it evolved. Airline pilots, for instance, undergo simulated cockpit training as a matter of course. Catering I will come back to this matter in later chapters, but the more adult approach in Australia was accompanied by the move from “patrol” to “central” catering. I think the original reason for the change was that the former took up too much time. But over the years that I was involved in training adults, I came to the conclusion that the “patrol” time spent in preparing, enjoying and clearing up from a meal was probably the most significant of the course. Gilwell Park, Chingford Norm Johnson had written to the Camp Chief at Gilwell, who was now styled as the Director of Leader Training, to see whether I could be used on one of the regular training courses. Through the limitations of time that I had for such an opportunity, it was finally agreed that I would visit Gilwell Park for a day and act as a tutor to a patrol. I could look back on the course that I did in 1955 and remark that I learnt and probably contributed more in the group of us seven patrol members in the vicinity of our feeding and 221 sleeping quarters than I did from the adult training team members. training facilities and camping fields on a fine summer’s day. The analogy is the family that “washes up” the traditional way as distinct from the more efficient and probably more hygienic dish washing machine. The common activity, whether digging a hole, building a fence or washing up, provides a first class opportunity for relaxed and meaningful communication. It had intrigued me back in 1966 while at Gilwell Park for the Training the Team course that we had prepared our meals and cleaned up after them instead of having central catering. Now in retrospect I could see the advantages of patrol interaction that rarely takes place in the formal training situation. The Girl Guide Association training and camp sites “The Boy Scout” statue in USA Ever since meeting the Mr. and Mrs. Carr on a bus tour in 1966 in the Benelux countries, I had been pressed to visit these hospitable people who lived in Marseilles, Illinois, USA. Brownsea Island The closest I got on this occasion to the island where B-P trialled his first “scout” camp, was the pier at Poole. All I could do was look from the coast to the island and dream. It was not practicable to make the trip given time and the age of Roger. It suited our plans to return via the USA and the Pacific and in due course landed at the very busy O’Hara airport, Chicago. One excursion was to Starved Rock. On the way, Bob Carr drove us past the site of one of the statues of “The Boy Scout,” which had a story that I did not record at the time. Memory is that it was connected with the spread of Scouting in the states. A smaller version of this statue exists at our Gilwell in Victoria. But I did buy a postcard of the campsite on the island. It would be 1983 before I was able to cross over to the island and walk the ground. Return We returned to Australia and I concentrated at the high school on preparing for a ministerial deputation to the Minister of Education, The Hon. Lindsay Thompson. Despite the good intentions and achievements of the various Public Works inspectors (whose responsibilities were divided as to whether the matter was plumbing, buildings &c), townships of the size of Birchip could miss out on maintenance and new construction. Consequently I had little time for scouting. Brownsea Island, near Poole, off the South Coast, UK Foxlease Foxlease is the Girl Guide Association’s equivalent of Gilwell Park. We visited the 222 Wood badge But I was asked to conduct the continuous group leader course in January 1975. I was also sent a copy of the new Australian training handbook. This required quite a bit of study with a view to its application. The members of the training team were being encouraged to experiment. Some of us will gladly seize such opportunities but one can feel a little naked in the application process. The year in summary My scouting was now limited to adult training and the degree of activity was very limited. I probably did more scouting in the UK while on long service leave than in the whole first year in Birchip. When Tom Russell presented the Victorian Boy Scouts Association with a parcel of his land near Gembrook and then erected the four patrol huts, the “bush” and the site at the time were fairly basic and much has been achieved since those early days in terms of infrastructure and foliage 223 respond to Mrs. Phelps’ complaints. Inevitably these concerns would be a visit by Mrs. Phelps to the pack leaders during a meeting. They in turn would pass these on to the GL. Chapter 44 The January continuous woodbadge courses Wood badge course This was the second continuous course that I led. As a school teacher I had the holidays and the time to allocate to it. I was to lead some eight courses in all. The problem now is to remember what was different about each one. George Todeschini became a regular “fixture.” The week suited him as well. This time Carl Christenson, another school principal joined me, as did Doug Edmunds. Doug had taken over from me in Geelong as the training commissioner. He was to hear the call to the Anglican ministry. Peter Lyon, yet another school teacher (as was Leon Costermans, although he was tertiary) from Swifts Creek, was also in the team. He introduced us to the “Wallaby walloper.” Members and team of the 13th Group Leader and Commissioner Stage 4 course. Sooner or later there would be a face-to-face meeting with Mrs. Phelps, often in the presence of the cub pack. Without me asking, George Todeschini went to the “dress up” store in the Russell Troop Room loft and reappeared as a very presentable mature lady who was most concerned about her cat. I used the relatively new Australian Group Leader training notes, but would radically move from them in later years. I went to some trouble to sit down with each trainee and share with them a whole range of life’s characteristics. “Gaming” was quite a feature of the course and this of course leads us to Mrs. Phelps. It is very easy in role playing to overdo it, but George was able to adjust his response to the manner in which the GL handled the situation. Sometimes, the whole business would get completely out of hand with threats to seek the council’s intervention and to get press publicity. The more experienced scouters would be able to snuff out the problem very quickly getting Mrs. Phelps on side. Mrs. Phelps Having been given considerable latitude in the manner in which I conducted the continuous Group Leader course, I was anxious to use some of the material that I had obtained the previous year while in the UK through the SAGGA organization, namely the situational exercises. But Mrs. Phelps became a highlight of every course that I now conducted. She has earned her place in scout leader training history! 1975 Gilwell Reunion Just the one-day visit this year with Geelong’s Area Commissioner, Graeme Taylor. It was the usual good turn up of scout leaders. As usual, the count down at the AGM, when leaders got up to indicate their year of receiving the woodbadge, was a highlight. But it was a bit strange to be operating from Birchip where I had no direct contact with an active scout group. One of these or a similar one that I made up concerned the complaints of a Mrs. Phelps that the cubs at the end of their meeting, threw stones on to her roof and distressed both her and the cat. The trainee scouters were deemed to be the GL of the group concerned and were required to 224 Gold pass Much had been said about the Scout Association obtaining a gold pass for its leaders to use on Victorian trains when attending training courses. This valuable pass had been obtained through the good services of a leading scouter, Ian Hodges, who was then General Manager of the Victorian Railways. Training the Team course Norm Johnson had asked me to be in the team that would lead the Easter training team course. Leon Costermans was another member. Shirley was not well so I decided that I should stay home, but John, the doctor, and Shirley “ganged up” on me and I was sent off to Gilwell. Shirley’s mother came up to Birchip to look after our two year-old son, Roger. I drove to Gilwell on the Thursday night through wet blustery weather glad that I was not amongst the many Easter holiday driving towards me from Melbourne I successfully asked for it so that I could travel to Melbourne for the training team weekend. Bill Dawson would meet me at Spencer Street station on arrival and we would travel together to Gilwell Park. But on the Friday before the training weekend bushfires took place further up the line to Mildura. The track was burnt out and neither division of the “Vinelander,” could proceed further north than Donald. Shirley must have driven me to Donald where I caught the one there on the Saturday morning. The course emphasized and practised the trainees in the various “modern” methods of presenting a session from the overhead projector to discussion and “gaming” exercises. “Gaming” Once I had been allocated my compartment I retired for the rest of the journey, getting some sleep in the process. This was the modern division of the train. Paul Thomas, instead of Bill because of the late arrival, waited in Melbourne and met me. The rest of the weekend was not all that memorable. A training team leader took me back to Spencer Street station in time for the Sunday night return trip. I had come back from the UK the year before with a set of “situational” or “gaming” exercises. Some of these did not have a time limit on them. For instance, the GL would be faced with a set of incoming letters, phone calls or “person at the door” cases. He (no “she’s” at this time in GL slots) would be required to set them out first in priority and then deal with them. By now the track had been repaired and it was a through train to Mildura. But it was the older division with its traditional brass toilet facilities. However, I was still able to get some sleep, although as the train found its way via Ballarat, Maryborough and Donald, I became anxious that I might miss the Birchip stop. The Mrs. Phelps “exercise” was a simple example of the “game.” The time was about four in the morning when Birchip came in sight. I walked the short distance to our home and got as much rest as I could before reporting for school later that morning. Team & members, Training the Team Course, Easter ‘75 225 camping skills. Clearly this youth group was enjoying the time of their lives at the same time. “Razor blades” Scouting has never quite known where to draw the line as to alcohol. Despite the guidelines that were laid down, scouters would still bring their own supplies whether to their camps or to training courses. At jamborees and ventures, scouter clubs were set up to keep the matter separate and more or less under control. Closer up: Norman Johnson in centre. Dick Milne far left In the more complex games letters and phone calls would be introduced, which would test the GL’s ability to respond without finding it all too much. Also, having made a phone call, the recipient might react in a certain manner to further complicate the GL’s “day.” One had to be careful as to the trainee selected. The aim was not to put him off scouting but to help him be able to deal with situations more competently. I could not put a date on it, but in turn the policy was relaxed and then tightened again on training courses. However, after a couple of scouters went off to the nearby township of Gembrook to purchase some razor blades, this excuse was regularly put forward to cover visits to the Gembrook hotel! My own experience taught me that “between monthly meetings” matters should be minimised. A leader probably can’t say that he will not take calls at his home at night, although he should impose this restriction while he is at work – otherwise it is stealing from the boss! Hence again, Mrs. Phelps would make her appearance in the game. Region meeting I drove to Ballarat in Shirley’s Capri for this poorly-attended meeting. I learnt that a woodbadge course would now take place, heavily supported by the South Western district, who’s DC was a very dominant personality. I was impressed by Chick Carey, a fellow “chalkie” (but higher up the scale) from the New South Wales Education Department. There was also a member of the psychology/psychiatry profession on the team, who tended to prove my feelings that these people could always find special motives for people’s actions, but the nickname of “shrink” is hardly fair. I drove home was one with very little petrol. I never travel without half a tank full, but for some reason I did not fill up in Ararat and then found nothing open on a Sunday afternoon on the road back to Birchip. In Donald I rang ahead, asking Shirley to meet me in the other car with the emergency can of fuel and a funnel. With the gauge on empty (or less) I drove into the lights of Birchip just as Shirley and my young son were preparing to set out. I returned to Birchip on Easter Day. The previous day I had taken a group of the trainees145 for a walk through the “boys’ field” to make sure that they knew what scouting was all about. We were fortunate to come across a patrol that exemplified the best things in the movement from badge passing to quality 1st Birchip suspended There was only a so-called cub pack in 1974 and it was becoming an ever harder task for Beverley, its lady leader. I was seen as the “scout man” in the town and when Beverley came to see me, I had no hesitation in recommending that the group be suspended. I made it very clear that when at least four leaders 145 In preparing these notes, I have not been comfortable with the terms for the leaders attending courses. “Trainee” is technically correct, but many scouters who attended courses were anything but ignorant of the world. 226 offered to lead the scout troop then the group would be started up again. which made the room too hot at head height. I was off-colour for part of the weekend and glad that Peter MacAuslan, the GL of 1st Highton with whom I had worked very closely when in Geelong, came to assist in addition to the rest of the team. I was in effect “replaced.” GL/Commissioner woodbadge course I drove to Ararat on the Friday night and booked in at the motel where George Todeschini looked after me as always. The team would consist of Carl and Beryl Christensen with Dick Milne as well. I have always found that courses away from Gilwell Park never seem to acquire the atmosphere of that place. Scout halls always have to be adapted and there are no “scouty” symbols, spots or memories around. Scout halls are generally cold and cheerless. I could not raise the same spirit as for a continuous course or for one at Gilwell. When it came to the Scouts’ Own I found I was still wrestling with the matter. I have always felt that in not wanting to offend anyone, such as removing the words “Jesus Christ” from prayers, there is no ”meat” left for anyone146. 1st Birchip meeting I had felt honour bound to do something about the local group, so called a meeting of parents. I spelt it out that nothing would happen without four potential or trained leaders coming forward and a group committee composed of every parent being established. Further that the troop, if started, would commence with the training of patrol leaders, before invitations for general membership would be issued. This was textbook scouting. 17th Group Leader/Commissioner woodbadge course at Ararat and Grampians area. Rear: Ian Irwin, “Woody” Woolcock, David Ayer, Bob Reid, Lloyd Lobbe, Graham Farley, Bill Mostert, Doug Pittard, Trevor Parfett, Allen le Courteur. Front: Norm Allen, George Todeschini, Ted Allan, Carl Christenson, Beryl Christenson, Hank Howey and Dick Milne. Absent: Peter MacAuslan Woodbadge Course – 3rd weekend The third and final weekend was also held at Halls Gap with the formal lunch on Sunday. I was able to complete the interviews. I have always seemed to have several “irons in the fire,” and this time I was trying to complete an essay for a university course. I had even taken my typewriter. (In 2011 I guess it would have been a lap-top computer!) The heating in the hall that we used was by kerosene. This gave a pungent smell to the atmosphere. One could not go outside as it was raining heavily. The weather was better on the Sunday and I returned to Birchip after what was starting to develop into a useful course. Again, it would turn on what the trainees could get from the training team and from their fellow trainees. Local troop to reform I was delighted when a number of local citizens came forward with an interest in the proposed re-formation of the 1st Birchip group. Two at The second weekend was at Halls Gap. The bunk rooms were only just bunk rooms. The hall had no side rooms, which cramped what we would have liked to do with discussion groups. The overhead heating was from a gas system 146 It was not until the training team weekend in February, 2010, that I finally heard a senior member of the branch team clarify the whole matter of faith and the responsibilities of the leaders of the movement to encourage it 227 least had scouting experience: the post master and a direct recruit from the USA to the high school staff, Greg Nelson. Tony French, a young and enthusiastic science teacher, had been a rover. The fourth person was the local doctor. Information was given through the local paper and the first boys came enrolled for training. So, for someone who had not touched youth work since he came to Birchip at the start of 1974, he could now safely leave and take up his new position as foundation headmaster of Braemar College at Woodend with a clear conscience. I will describe Braemar College in the next chapter. I do not know how long 1st Birchip was active but it was for some years operating under very effective leadership. Thanksgiving Day For the days and years that are to be, For the land where everyone is free, For our work and happy hours of play, This is our Thanksgiving Day For the roof that shelters overhead, For the people and our daily bread, For our homes and loved ones far away, This is our Thanksgiving Day For the gift of songs to sing, For the right to everything, Let us now before the day is done, Count our blessings, every single one; Here again on our Thanksgiving Day, Let us thank You for today. Ralph Reader 228 of low-fee schools to put together a Christian ecumenical, co-educational day school. Chapter 45 A significant career change in my life Having won the appointment as its leader I would be flat out mastering all the requirements of an independent school together with all the challenges of obtaining staff, establishing a curriculum, obtaining basic school furniture and convincing the community that we were here to stay. From being a high school principal in a small Mallee township in the north-west of Victoria, I found myself appointed as the foundation headmaster of Braemar College, a brand new school in Woodend. The new school would occupy the premises of the former Clyde School. The hard work of those foundation families and the wide ranging group of leadership skills that they possessed resulted in the school going from success to success to its present enrolment in 2010 of nearly eight hundred students from Years 5 through to 12. It was obvious that there was going to be little time for Scouting. Illness I guess I was still in that age category of believing that I was “immortal” and thought nothing of leading a continuous wood badge course at Gilwell Park in between clearing my desk as Birchip’s principal, moving from our leased house in Birchip and re-establishing ourselves in accommodation at the new school in Woodend. And just to add to the pressure, Shirley and I took our caravan again to Torquay for a summer holiday. Braemar College,Woodend, formerly Braemar Coffee Palace (1891) and then Clyde School (1919 – 1975) Clyde was to some extent the “sister” school to Geelong Grammar. During 1975, the councils of these two schools, together with The Hermitage in Geelong, agreed to amalgamate, closing the two girls’ schools at the end of that year. Geelong Grammar would enrol these girls and would become co-educational “overnight.” But fate stepped in. I came down with a urinary disease that would not clear itself up quickly, despite all the anti-biotics that were then available. Instead of running the course, I had to be very grateful to the other members of the team and particularly to Bill Dawson who took over its leadership. This series of decisions did not please everyone who lived in the Macedon Ranges area. One person was Mr. Tony Tyler who, although he had attended Geelong Grammar with some distinction, sought to maintain independent schooling in the area. The illness drained me to some extent and its affects varied. I was able to visit the course at Gilwell on one day right at its end. I stayed overnight after the formal final meal. Commonsense said that I could not attend any part of the Gilwell Reunion weekend. I needed all my energy for my new role of educational A group of parents and interested parties in the Macedon Ranges area took advantage of legislation which encouraged the establishment 229 could be argued that the average leader on the Stage 3 course had not been long enough in the movement to be able to clarify these questions and it was perhaps better to “fill” him or her with what they should know and do. leadership where the demands of parents, staff, students and the world of 1976 seemed insatiable. Training Team weekend One of the members of this course was Jim Lindsay, who was a key member of Braemar College’s governing body. We were probably both surprised to recognise each other. My friendship with Jim and his wife, Wendy, continue to this day. I was not prepared to give in that easily and drove up to Gilwell for the training weekend. Here I found I had graduated to being one of the senior group of trainers, whose opinion might be respected. I had been asked to take a session on “counselling,” and had expected to do it off the cuff. But as I “lectured” on, I realised how weak I was and how much I was skating on thin ice. I was getting hot and cold as I spoke. The malady just would not go away. But I coped and returned to Woodend in due course. Shepparton wood badge course If necessary I should have taken leave from the training team, but here I was accepting the leadership role. I needed my weekends to rest, not to trail up into central Victoria. There were only eight candidates and I hoped that the training commissioner would call off the course. I found I had almost more adults on the team. The first weekend was the 11/12th September. Easter Easter came and went and I did not go near the Hoadley Hide in 1976. But on the Tuesday, I was able to fit in a leader trainers’ meeting. These meetings were much more correct in their conduct than those I described in Chapter 30. I had to be back in Woodend for a public meeting on the Sunday, so we as a family headed up on the Friday night and had a room in a motel. I was joined by the other members of the team, namely Carl and Beryl Christensen, Dick Milne, George Todeschini, and Peter MacAuslan. Stage 3 course I must have been tricked into supervising this course. I had not run such a course since leaving Geelong several years back. As with all courses away from Gilwell, the training leader and the attending scouters have to accept the venue and make the most of it. This course was in a scout hall in Seddon. Whether this one was I cannot recall, but scout halls are notorious for being ill-lit, noisy and draughty. Seating is often chancy and catering has to be done with whatever kitchen facilities exist. The venue was a scout hall and the fewer numbers meant that the course could be run on a discussion basis in the Scouters’ room. The readiness of some of the candidates was questionable, but training in the regional districts of the state has always been plagued with such characteristics. If a course is being conducted and you are available, then get on it. Jim Lindsay was one of the eight on the course. He also had to return for the public meeting at the school. My diary notes suggest that I opened and closed the course but absented myself for part of it. I was never comfortable with courses other than the wood badge. I found that the other leader trainers had not graduated from the “I’m telling you” approach as distinct from the “What skills and knowledge do you wish to acquire?” But it Second weekend This time Jim accompanied us in our car. I received a guard of honour on arrival, being almost late. By this weekend, the course had all 230 got to know each other and worked in a team fashion. One of my ploys on these courses was to get the leaders to give a thumbnail sketch of their lives. These are generally fascinating. All too often, you do not hear them until in a eulogy at a funeral. One of the group for instance had been in the 39th Battalion, the militia unit that had been rushed to stem the incoming tide of Japanese over the Kokoda Track. trainer should still have his or her “feet on the ground” and know how the youth members tick, particularly in a society with rapidly changing values. I kept my hand in, but only just. In endeavouring to keep some sort of active role in Scouting, the Army Reserve147, church, family and profession I was putting myself and the family under some pressure. Somehow we coped and I trust that none of the activities really suffered in any way. Braemar could have absorbed well over a 100% of my time if I had let it. There had to be time for relaxation or a change of scenery and the other activities provided it. Visit jamboree Victoria was hosting the jamboree that was to be held again at the Dandenong site. I had enjoyed the one at that location some years earlier while in Warragul. This time I received an invitation to one of the official luncheons. 22nd Group Leader/Commissioner wood badge course. Rear: Carl Christensen, Frank Juffermans, Peter MacAuslan, Graham Farley, Ian McKee, Jim Lindsay, Ray Murphy. Front: Roy Eliason, Alan Hood, Beryl Christensen, George Todeschini, Harold Sharp, Harry Barkla. Absent John Hague. Pardon my identity marks By chance the invitation and the car pass came in the mail the morning of the official function. This saved me having to “talk my way in.” We parked near the eating mess tent and enjoyed lunch. After that we moved around the jamboree site catching up with Shirley’s nephew, Anthony Scott, and other Geelong friends. A few days later I would be at Gilwell for the annual group leader/commissioner wood badge course. Third weekend In early October, the third weekend was held. This time Jim supplied transport. My diary talks more about a bad night’s sleep than about the course but I have to presume it finished on a high note. Jim and I returned to Macedon. Eumeralla Day A furore broke out at that jamboree when one of the visiting “artists” behaved in a manner that drew protests from leaders. The jamboree organisers were put under considerable pressure to somehow wipe the slate clean and apologise on the visitors’ behalf. Where once entertainment had been through campfires and Gang Show type concerts, now there was an increasing tendency to bring in people to give the scouts “what they thought they wanted.” For nostalgic reasons, I attended the annual Geelong Area Eumeralla Day later in the year at the area’s scout camp on the cliff tops above Anglesea. Shirley and I were made very welcome and invited to the luncheon that was held. Review of year’s Scouting For the third year running I had no contact with youth training. On the other hand I was getting further enmeshed in leader training. Ideally the 147 231 Then still known as the Citizen Military Force following the practices and habits that had begun all those years earlier at Brownsea Island in 1907without much thought about them. I did not question why I wore a purple patch to indicate that I was a commissioner, whatever that title meant. I will be returning to that subject later. Woodbadge course As I had the school holidays, it was fairly logical that the branch training commissioner would use my services during that time of the year and relax demands on me at other times. Training team members were supposed to be prepared to be involved with so many courses a year. Once again Beryl and Carl assisted me and I was glad to have Doug Edmonds on the team. Doug had followed me as area trainer in Geelong but was now training to be an Anglican priest. Doug with Lynton Wade148 was to produce an audio cassette tape with a properly played guitar background. I used this tape quite a bit in my religious education classes later at Braemar. This was to be the 23rd Group Leader/Commissioner wood badge course. Once again, the course was at Gilwell, but my team was different, as those who had attended the jamboree did not feel they could spend another week away from home. The numbers on the course were less than normal, but there were sufficient for it to go ahead. Adult readiness I do not think I have ever lost either a school student or a scout over the many years that I have been in leadership and loco parentis positions. But this time I nearly lost an adult! I became conscious that one of the trainees was missing – or rather his mates reported this fact. Fortunately he was not far away. He had headed off to get away from the course for a few moments and consider his situation. I do not think that he would have walked off into the bush or been suicidal. But it brought home to me the pressures that a person can feel themselves on a course. The main gates to the Gilwell Park Training Ground, now the Gilwell Campus of Scouts Australia Institute of Training On arrival at Gilwell I found that the scout course was on the Hoadley training ground and we had been allocated the De Molnar ground, which was the newer of the two. I had suggested that we older chaps needed the lower site but without success! The two elements in this case were that the scouter had been asked to undertake an appointment that was perhaps beyond his capacity (the Peter Principle at work). The other was the requirement on a woodbadge course for the completion of a project. If one is immersed in a week of leading a group of mature men (we were still a male movement, the ladies restricted to the Cub section) in the skills and ethos of Scouting, then one had the chance to philosophise and ask oneself as to what we thought we were doing. This chap might have been able to be an effective DC as distinct from a Rover Leader, but the system had required that he complete a commissioner woodbadge course. So, here he was with us. I was probably at that stage still “playing the game of Scouting,” and perhaps happily 148 232 Also to be an Anglican priest times before he was ready to stand down! But this is not a common experience and we often long to play a role that is beyond us. We do not need to be servile but we can be very happy playing minor but important roles in life. Someone has to sweep the streets! As one of the pragmatic innovations in the history of scouter training, the woodbadge course in the UK had been divided into three parts. The first was a series of questions, which the leader could answer in his own time before or after the second part of the woodbadge, namely the practical course. The third part was the application of what he or she had learnt on the practical course in his own troop, group or district or (for that time) her cub pack. I did not believe that he would ever complete the project, but he would have gained from the practical week. His home area would never enforce the matter. This chap incidentally could play the bagpipes. We had rather tactlessly kept his playing at “ear safe” distance. We now encouraged him to entertain us – and by doing so, he would have experienced personal acceptance and a place. But I went home a wiser man in the area of working with adults. Because so many leaders had attended the practical and then failed to tackle the answering of the questions, the idea was trailed that the questions could be incorporated into the practical course under the title of a project. Under this approach, the training team leaders would sit regularly with each trainee and guide them through the development of their chosen topic. The requirement for scouts to demonstrate signalling and or to undertake the overnight journey, had stopped many a scout from achieving their First Class badge. The Part 1 or assignment had the same effect in holding up leaders from gaining their woodbadge. Yet, to take these challenges away could lead to a weakening of the whole structure. It all depends where you set the high-jump bar! But the fact was and is that such a written project was beyond many people. We do not all learn to play the piano. We do not all learn to speak with confidence in public. So, what do these people do? The short answer in this particular case was that the chap should never have been put in the position of being a DC if he could not handle the written project requirement. It was not an answer to say that he could be excused from it, although this might well have occurred. The matter of assessment and the training that should be undergone for “entry” to a profession, trade or club is too wide a one to be given more space here. The requirement for some form of formal “written”149 work continues to form part of woodbadge training today The participants were: Kevin Hall, Les Harley, Robert May, Ken McCowat, George Mouser, Jim Petter, Ron Scarfe, Harry Simpson, Terry Smith, Eric Stoneman. The writer has been blessed with a range of leadership positions which have apparently been within his capacity to discharge both to his satisfaction and to enough of the population groups involved that he not be sacked too many The formal lunch card also lists the following trainers, who visited from time to time: Merv Tebbutt, Bob Morris, Bob Gardner, George Todeschini and Dick Milne. 149 Verbal projects (using tape recorders) have been openly accepted as I am sure that power point presentations would also fulfil the criteria 233 The path known as The Chief’s Approach, so named as B-P stayed at the Warden’s Lodge and walked daily to and fro the training ground. The maples struggle to cope with Gembrook’s climate but are still a picture in autumn Training the Team courses Training the Team course, Gilwell Park, Easter 1977 Photo has been split into four to permit some recognition. Rear: John Hardy, Ian Seeger, Cor DeVries, Jenny Lang. Centre: Sue Johns, Eric Firth, Dick Milne, Joan Fox, Brian Butler, Jim McGill. Front: Peter Marriott, Jess Trew, Allan Newland, Jenny Staddon, Maureen Titcumb, Bob Shaw I attended the February 1977 training team weekend but arrived tired out from the demands of starting another school year – Braemar’s second. I had the energy to conduct the Scouts Own and then on the Sunday to lead a session about “gaming.” But whether I used the Mrs. Phelps routine again I do not know. At Easter I was asked to join the team for the training the team course that was to be held. I was also involved in its planning, along with John Ravenhall, Ken Bayly and Leon Costermans. I was asked to lead a session on “gaming.” Scouting never accepts that its leaders generally have to earn an income and it might be more fruitful to let them have a good night’s sleep at home before hustling them up on the Thursday night to arrive, often after a flight, in what was relatively speaking still only a scout camp with fairly primitive sleeping facilities. The Don Spring Lodge was yet to be built. Accommodation was limited to the patrol huts and the rooms off the Russell Troop Room – all a little on the bare side. Rear: Bill Pearce, Wanda Osborn, John Phipps, Warwick Bateman, Doug Broad, Lindsay Hamill. Centre: Philip Matthews, Hugh Grayson, Brian Eade, John Ravenhall, Gwynne Kett. Front: Don Stone, Arthur Newnham, Vern Cracknell, Graham Farley (Note: Only the names of identified Victorian members of the Training Team in the following photographs have been included in the index) But the situation was made much worse that time through a storm coming down the east coast of Australia and which left areas of Melbourne and nearby inundated. I drove through this downpour and collected a leader at 234 from South Australia, that he might like to help me on the next continuous course. Norm Johnson hosted a final meal for the participants at The Baron and Beef restaurant in the Dandenong Ranges. Leon Costermans played Gang Show tunes before the meal. I led the singing. the airport, he having had a trouble free flight from Wagga Wagga. Other activities In the course of the year I was guest speaker at the 1st Woodend Scout Group AGM. I also attended a commissioners’ conference. Here I was measured for long trousers for the new-style uniform. This was a long-sleeved shirt and tie, with long trousers, was offered as an alternative uniform for leaders. It did not last long and fell out of favour. It was sensibly designed for night meetings, where a leader had to speak at a public meeting. Shorts and short-sleeved shirt can present an odd image at times and be very cold. Rear: Doug Daniel, Kirsty Brown, Col Martin, Patrick Goss, Rix McGinley, Max Gowty, Kees Klep, Vic Sharp. Centre: Wayne Myers, Ada Wilkinson, Jim Richards, Kingsley Davis, John Barlow, Philip Haywood, Neville Spillane, Betty Mugg, Ken Durham. Front: Cliff Farmer, Leon Costermans, Ken Bayly, Peter Barlow, Bill Dawson, Shirley Greer. Bendigo woodbadge I did not need this course. I offered transport to two local leaders and let them drive while I rested! I had switched the venue from a scout hall to the Kangaroo Flat High School and this offered excellent class room facilities for our discussions. On the second weekend I had to return for a school budget meeting on the Sunday. The third weekend passed off quietly with the formal lunch on the Sunday. The course had an intimacy that I had not experienced before. This was greatly helped by the role of Tom Glazebrook, the local DC. Tom was a senior engineer with Vic Roads and was very active in the army reserve. He brought his expertise and experience to the course and stimulated us all with his perceptive questions and knowledge. In particular, he studied my gaming documents from the SAGGA organisation and adapted some of them to local needs. Rear: Bryce Kelaart, Greg Samson, Margaret Turner, Martin Davies, Allan Saunders, Max Anderson, Centre: Warren Jarrett, Greg Boulton, Helen Strutt, John Wilmot, Shirley McKay, Aline Thomson, Tricia Marriott, Neil Weatherill. Front: Margaret Green, Bob Lambert, Pat Dugan, Lance Bulluss, Betty Willison, Lorna Bon But many leaders on the course arrived late and consequently exhausted. The four-day weekend holiday at Easter has never been quite long enough to conduct this particular course without squeezing its members up against their normal paid commitments at each end. I have retained no details of the Easter course other than I agreed with a chap named Jarrett, 235 Year ends To use Her Majesty’s description of a year of her reign as being “annus horibilis,” 1977 had been rather similar to me in my job as headmaster of Braemar College. That of course is another story. The only other scouting event for the family was to attend the annual Melbourne Gang Show at the Palais Theatre in St. Kilda. My scouting involvement was getting very patchy. I was neither in touch with youth, other than in my professional situation, or able to give the time to the training team role. But somehow I maintained my membership. I do not like resigning from things – one never knows what might be around the corner. 236 years it would be dramatically changed in its presentation. Chapter 46 Continuous woodbadge course A quiet period and the All Sections Advanced Course Whereas I had looked forward to conducting these courses, this time I would have preferred to stay down at Torquay with the family where we now had our own holiday house so that I could recuperate from yet another busy professional year. 1978 was to be another lean year for me in Scouting. My daily job was consuming all my time and energy. I fitted in a day at the Gilwell Reunion, but it was becoming less and less meaningful to me. I was asked to demonstrate the pioneering item, a bridge without ropes. With the spars laid in a particular way, friction could hold them in place. In the same way I was present at the training team weekend but had few memories of it and was probably as tired as I had been twelve months earlier. Early in March, there was a suggestion that I might be area commissioner for Hoadley Area but it was then cut back to a general duties commission. Did I refuse it out of hand? It was not the last time that such an idea was put forward, but again with no finality to it, which was just as well. 1978/79 Group Leader/Commissioner wood badge course I had met Warren Jarrett from South Australia the previous year at the training the team course. He accepted my invitation to be on my team. I picked him up at the airport. He was a larger than life character, both physically and in Norm Johnson, who was a dentist to many of us in the movement, must have been chief commissioner at the time. Much scouting business was completed in his surgery. With a dental drill and a suction hose stuck in one’s mouth, it was rarely possible to make any meaningful comment to Norm’s ideas! In hindsight I was hanging on to training team membership as I believed I had some ability there, but I was likely to become a “Colonel Blimp” in the process through little youth contact other than my four-year old son and some three hundred secondary school students. Once again, I attended the Gang Show. Ken Bayly was now taking the leading role in this show, writing songs and conducting the orchestra. The format was largely unchanged from the Ralph Reader model but in the coming Warren Jarrett from South Australia 237 Ken Brewster personality. He was in the legal profession. He acquired the nickname of “Petrocelli” on the course for some reason. One of the most experienced group leaders at the time was Ken (“Kenya”) Brewster of 10th Malvern. He was able to handle a wide range of scouting appointments including being a deputy chief commissioner. He managed 10th Malvern in a most effective way. 10th had always had a strong Rover Crew, many of which doubled up as section leaders. The team included Dick Milne, Bill Dawson and Peter Lyon. Peter was a teacher at Omeo who had been appointed to one of the” joke title” schools, ‘Swifts Creek Central Classes.’ When we reviewed the trainees’ documents, I found that we still had leaders that seemed to think that nicknames, such as “JJ,” “ Bulldog” and “Jumbo,” were necessary to bond with the scouts. I had always been “Graham,” “Mr. Farley” or “Sir,” and it would stay that way! The program for the week on the blackboard in chalk Dick Milne, Geoff Switzer, Bill Dawson, Peter Lyon I was now quite confident in drawing up the program based on the needs of those leaders who had come on the course. This approach always seemed threatening to my fellow trainers, but it seemed to work and be eagerly accepted. I even had leaders coming from interstate to attend a course structured like this. I have a photograph of a black or green chalk board with the program set out on it. In later years the white board would be used. At this stage the trainers tended to take all the sessions in response to the needs, but in later years, if there were experts on the course in the subject wanted, then they were the ones who led the session. Ken Brewster shares his accumulated Scouting knowledge with members of the course I invited Ken to come up and take an afternoon session about his experiences as a GL. This he did, but I wonder whether the leaders got the most benefit from his knowledge. Ken had the tendency to affirm that there was only one answer or one way to deal with a situation and, probably, like others amongst us, he was starting 238 to date himself. People increasingly needed reasons for doing things. as I considered that there was so much history there. Jamborella Dick Milne In addition to the two training courses the Jamborella was being conducted nearby. This included both scout troops and guide companies. It was fortuitous that I was able to meet Rita Friee150 and at the same time offer her a position as a music teacher at Braemar. Now married and a mother, she is still on the school’s staff in 2011! I may have mentioned Dick before. He had been on the staff of Wesley College and was part of that school’s training team members, although Dick tended to specialise in catering and administration of courses. At Wesley he was the “sloyd” teacher, but also in charge of cadets. He was a major in the CMF and had been second-in-command of the Hume Regiment in Shepparton. He had also been made an MBE.151 Training Team I have no record of attending the 1979 training team weekend, but I was able to fit in a visit to the Training the Team course at Gilwell at Easter on the Monday. Having been given approval and support to conduct a special training course later in the year, there were some useful things that I could do while I was there. Having reached the end of his normal scout career Dick started to specialise in two areas. One was the history of the movement, for he had been an aide to B-P at the Frankston jamboree. The other was to develop a skill in binding magazines and books that would come to be kept in the various libraries, particularly at branch headquarters and Gilwell. All Sections Advanced Course We knew each other through Wesley College. I also knew he was looking for scout “employment.” I had invited him some years earlier to be a member of my training team and he regularly shared my courses. I could rely on him thoroughly to handle the administration and in particular the formal meal at the end of a course. The idea had come to me that the content of the woodbadge course lacked depth for those with an enquiring mind. Would it be possible to get support, both from headquarters and also from leaders, to advertise a course that would go beyond the current handbooks and help people to understand scouting in its many facets? It was to be called the All Sections Advanced Course John Ravenhall was very enthusiastic. The course was listed in the monthly magazine, then titled, Victorian Scout. Some sixteen or so applications came in but not from any particular spectrum. The idea had clearly interested them. I thought that we could hold the course at Braemar on at least two of the weekends, using the now completed Room 10 and 11 classrooms that had heating facilities and plenty of light. The middle weekend would be at Gilwell Park, 151 150 Member of the Most Excellent Order of the British Empire. It currently ranks between the AM and the OAM in the Australian order of precedence for decorations Now Rita Vanderwalk 239 training team being pooled. This certainly gave further depth of experience to the two courses. Gilwell The second of the three ASAC weekends was at Gilwell. On arrival we found that the two training grounds had already been taken over by one of the areas. That left the Delacombe Hall for us and it proved to be very appropriate. Meals were right alongside us and cups of tea and coffee were readily available. The certificate presented to each participant at the end of the ASAC with the names of those who attended. (The top of the original certificate got chopped off in copying) Certificate The final weekend was held at Braemar College and the weather again was at least sunny. The traditional formal meal took place and the leaders that had come went to their homes, groups, districts &c better we trusted for their attendance. Whether there would ever be another ASAC remained to be seen. It would depend on the critique that these first attendees gave it. Another team member was Martin Davies who worked at the nearby Mount Macedon National Emergency Services College (now Emergency Management Australia). The fourth person was Bill Dawson who was readily available and who often worked with Norm Johnson. Strangely, I have no record of what material or information I sent out to those who applied for a position on the course but I would have made it clear that discussions would be held on most aspects of the scouting story, such as its history, the fundamentals, its program and the like. Rather than use the standard course certificate, Dick arranged for a special one to be printed. This was to bear the names of all who were involved, both team and leaders. The leaders who attended were: Lee Brooker, 1st Chadstone; Ann Edwards, 2nd Preston; Ernie Stermole, West Nunawading District; Shirley Reeves, 2nd Korumburra; Don McDowall, Springvale District; Judy Wood, 1st Greenhills; Fred Turner, Dandenong District; Margaret Tremewen, 1st Doncaster West; Cliff Dent, 2nd Warragul; Jack Griffiths, Diamond Valley District; Bruce MacKenzie, 1st Camberwell South; Sandra McCallum, 4th Preston; Ray Stevenson, Box Hill District, Colin Slutzkin, 3rd St. Kilda; Peter Bellis, Springvale District; Kevin Fowler, Dandenong District; and Bryan Nitz, 3rd Bennetswood. Catering for the weekends at Braemar was handled in a partnership between volunteer school parents and, of course, Dick Milne. Accommodation would be in the offices occupied by teaching staff during the week, particularly those that could be adequately heated. Braemar at eight hundred metres above sea level is never a warm place mid-year. Stage 3 Unless the reader has worked with Norm Johnson they will not be fully able to understand his flexibility and his winning ways. Few can fail to fall in with his ideas. He was to run a Stage 3 course on the first weekend of the ASAC (as it became known) and he suggested that his group come and join us at Braemar the 240 Years later, many of these Scouters are still very active in the movement, holding down very demanding warrants/certificates.152 My diary for the rest of 1979 contains no references to scouting. I was involved but not involved. The risk was that I was missing out on the communication and networking so essential for an understanding of what was taking place in Scouting’s society. One might ask: Where are they now thirty years later? Shirley Reeves, Don McDowall, Jack Griffiths and Cliff Dent were all to continue to be involved in leader training, in fact Jack was branch commissioner for some years. Cliff is currently branch commissioner for Venturer Scouts. Margaret Tremewen is chair of the Committee for the Far Future. Another risk was that I was bringing to scouter training the approach of the” teacher.” B-P was always on guard against us “chalkies,” feeling that we might lose the “spirit of the game of scouting,” and see our task as one of achieving standards and outcomes. For B-P it was not achievement but the degree of effort that the scout put in to his activities, whether in camp or in badge work, and the degree to which he had progressed in his knowledge and skills. Above all, Scouting was meant to be fun. My wife, Shirley Farley, was directly involved with the course both in catering and in looking after the visitors. Having been a guide captain and a campcraft trainer in the Guides, it was logical that she chaired the session on the sister movement. This was often quite fiery, particularly over the matter of camping and how carefully guiders were trained in their responsibilities for it. Scout camps, on the other hand, seemed to take place without apparent adequate preparation or support but perhaps more of its members actually camped, albeit at a second class standard. Looking back, there was a degree of trust placed in us. In addition the group and the district provided expertise with checks and balances. Scouting’s peak years It is interesting to note Margaret Tremewen’s name above. She is chair member of the Committee for the Far Future, a team that is reviewing Scouting’s share of the potential youth population of the community. Scouting’s numbers in Victoria reached their peak approximately during the period that the three ASAC courses were held. But I do not believe that we were in any way responsible for the decline in membership that then began to take place! 152 At some stage in the new century, the terminology was changed from “warrant” to “certificate” – perhaps another example of the desire of Scouting to distance itself from its semi-military origins, yet “commission” in “commissioner” has been retained! 241 Chapter 47 Commissioner Stage 3 Still involved in leader training – just! On the last Saturday in May, I found myself programmed to go to Gilwell to help John Ravenhall on a Stage Three course. It was a difficult day from the start. I had difficulty in trying to get away from Braemar College in time to be at Gilwell before the evening meal. My son’s pet rabbit refused to come out of its hutch as he and his mother were going down to Torquay. I virtually had to wreck the wire netting on its cage to extract the reluctant animal153. Training Team weekend, February, 1980 The start of the year always saw me “being full on”! I generally came back from our Torquay beach house early in January and then had to head up the reception for new and former students and the settling in of the school with its changing staff, curriculum and facilities. Come the second weekend in February I was generally very tired out. On this occasion, I arranged with John Ravenhall, then already a senior person in the movement both in training and leadership appointments, that I would drive to his home in Strathmore. He would take me on to Gilwell. Thus we arrived, but looking through the program for the Saturday afternoon I retired to my bunk and got some useful sleep. There are plenty of ways to get to Gilwell, but I chose the route adjacent to what was then VFL Park. This was the ground specially developed in the Mount Waverley area but it lacked public transport and was eventually down graded. Houses now stand on the former large car parks. But on the day in question there was a football match listed for the ground and I got locked in traffic. At Gilwell that night I took the session on Fundamentals and then gave the yarn the following morning at the Scouts Own. That night there was a campfire led by Kees Klep with me in support. On the Sunday morning, there was a Scouts own led by Kingsley Davis at which he asked me to give the message. Apparently I got some points across to at least one training leader, for Martin Davies was able later to almost quote what I said. I have never been sure that the Scout Association has got clarity with its Duty to God policy, particularly as its members represent such a cross section of religions, denominations and degrees of spirituality. Kingsley of the Jewish faith showed in his writing of the Scouts Own that all should be represented and acknowledged: from Jehovah to Christ to Mohammad. All too often the names of the traditional deities are left out on the spurious ignorance of not “offending” those of different belief. A Scouts Own in the training ground chapel at a previous course. The photo is from The Story of Gilwell in Victoria. It also shows the statuette of the Boy Scout, copies of which are in many parts of the world, including the one I saw in the USA in 1974 As readers can appreciate I was not at all active in the Scout movement, limiting my involvement to training. But Braemar came first and my CMF army obligations came next. I got the opportunity to advertise the All Sections Advance Course for 1980. I can’t have done it very well considering that it had to be cancelled through lack of applicants! 153 A few days later I added side panels and other features to the rabbit hutch which made it all too easy to extract “Betsy,” the rabbit 242 public transport, other than walking from the parallel St. Kilda Road. No ASAC course Neither the January continuous woodbadge course went ahead nor the ASAC course. The latter course would have to draw from a limited number of scout leaders and the team of us that ran the course bided our time until 1981. But there was the Albert Park lake and park just a road width away. This had some appeal. Two large rooms at the front of the “house” provided space for training courses and conferences. I am sure there is a story behind each of the headquarters’ moves. For it was not long before the property in Barry Street at the top of the city became available and was acquired. For those of us who use public transport and live west of the city, this was the ideal location for there was car parking in the street at the weekend and plenty of space in the building.. By the end of the year I had spent little time on Scouting. Yet, I appeared to be still valued and no one suggested that I should hand in my warrant and beads. I was still available to conduct the January continuous course if required, but it was now in the safe hands of Bill Dawson and Martin Davies, who ran the scout course. Australia Day Visit Woodbadge course On the 2nd of January I drove up to Gilwell to lead the Fundamentals session for the combined courses of some forty-one leaders. I had put considerable preparation into the session. The follow up questions and discussions proved helpful. The Gilwell Reunion by now had been returned to its traditional Australia Day weekend, but I was no longer making the effort to attend it each year. Both this and the training weekend were too early in the school year and I needed those weekends in which to gain strength for the following week. Queen’s Road BHQ Training weekend When I first became a leader, the Victorian Scout headquarters was at 516 Collins Street. The Scout Shop was on the ground floor, administration probably on the first level and a café was located on another. The latter was quite a meeting place for leaders. My wife and I were experiencing car problems. We felt that both of us needed access to a car without the rigmarole of having to dove-tale in with the other one’s program. But both cars had seen better days and were experiencing too many visits to service stations for things like new batteries and tyres. We even had a fire under the bonnet in one of them. For reasons best known to the Branch Executive, headquarters moved to 384 Elizabeth Street, a former bank building. I think the Scout Shop was still on the ground floor. But there was no café in the new building. If 516 was well down Collins Street, 384 was well up Elizabeth Street. Trams served both streets. Consequently, I had to contact John Ravenhall to take me up to Gilwell. I caught him just as he was leaving his Strathmore home. Shirley drove me to the new headquarters’ building, where John picked me up. On arrival, Dick Milne invited me to share his caravan again. Paul Thomas wanted a mate to go with him back to Berwick to pick up something he had left. Paul then headed up Air Activities at the Berwick (Casey) Airfield. By 1981 the headquarters had moved again, this time to a property in Queen’s Road, fairly close to St. Kilda Junction. This building had once been a private mansion. To house all the scout full-time officers, additional rooms were built on at the rear of the building. There was no 243 The afternoon session was on Transactional Analysis. At the time with my “educational administration” university work under my belt I probably knew what it meant. My diary refers to my dislike of the “Stand up with a blindfold and move amongst the other persons until you find someone by smell or other characteristic with whom you would like to undertake other activities.” Those approaches to training were the buzz of the time, but they passed away like most bright ideas do and traditional methods reappeared. The first weekend was at Gilwell and started on 23rd May. I came up from Geelong by train and Martin Davies met me at Spencer Street station. Vic Sharpe had asked to be on the team. His approach was not as subtle as mine but I had no reason to knock him back and was rather pleased about it after our earlier shared training experiences. On the Sunday I accompanied two lady leaders for a walk down Forest Path to survey the damage to the camp from the January bushfire. 8th Malvern had lost their hut. Had the suspension bridge to their site gone by this time? I led the Scouts Own. Bill Dawson wished to get away promptly so he drove me to Spencer Street station where Shirley picked me up. The second ASAC. Rear: John Wilson, John Ireland, Graham Farley, Stan Brown. Centre: John Dunkley, Marcia Whitely, Rachel Kelly, Merv Tebbutt. Front: Mal Jenkins, Jerome Winston, Tony Beck. Jim Money On Saturday 21st March a dinner was held in Geelong to recognise the contribution that Jim Money made to the area as Area Commissioner and later in managing the Scout Shop in Geelong. Shirley and I attended and sat with Aileen and Graeme Taylor, Beryl and Alwyn Hickman and the Moodys. Vic and Dick Milne started the course as I wished to deviate via Croydon to pick up some repaired model steam engines – a hobby I shared with my son. I might have started the course in a different manner, but I accepted the situation and endeavoured as the day proceeded to orientate the course to my liking. ASAC One of Merv’s team, an American, kept me informed as to how he thought the course was going. This was very helpful although I wondered how many other course leaders would be able to tolerate what might be seen as impertinence. But this chap reflected the sort of university teaching I had received for my educational administration course and I understood “from where he was coming”! Headquarters training personnel advised that there were sufficient applications for the second ASAC to justify it going ahead. This was because a live wire DC in Merv Tebbutt had encouraged (directed?) his district team to attend the ASAC course. Merv was a airline pilot and he reminded me very much of my school’s chairman. By the second course, the program was more or less in place and its actual fixation depended on who was available for leadership roles. There was a new team of caterers – John and Carol Bloomer. They were “Poms” and, because of my own birth place in Cheam, Surrey, we got on very well. The Australians 244 starting a new appointment with the CMF, reporting directly to the divisional general. ‘Three into one’ was too tight a squeeze. How long would it be before I made the right decision and pared down my professional and spare time activities? had to get used to the serving of “elevenses” (and not necessarily at eleven in the morning!). John even swept up the leaves and cleaned leaves off the roof! Vic conducted several of the key sessions and our friendship and understanding developed. The leaders who had come on the course began to appreciate the “free thinking” approach that I was encouraging to consider what we and they were doing as scout leaders. The group looked forward to the second weekend at Braemar College. I was then approached about taking an active warrant position or resigning. I could not see how I could accept such a load and thought that this would terminate my membership with scouts. The phone call was on Monday, 27th July with possibly my final day at the mid-year training team conference on Sunday, 2nd August. The second weekend included my birthday which was on Sunday, 14th June. The Saturday was typical Mount Macedon weather – cold, dark, wet. The classroom in which we held our sessions could be lit and heated more than adequately. Dick Milne helped Shirley with the catering. Those that stayed overnight were accommodated in what Clyde School knew as The Memorial Wing. Merv Tebbutt went flying overnight! But the axe did not fall and I continued to be “attached,” however part-time and this situation continues to the present day (1st June, 2010) when I am officially an “honorary commissioner” at the age of nearly 77. I must have been seen to still have some use or I would have been terminated long ago. I am very grateful for this degree of tolerance and acceptance. Mike Downes came up on the Sunday to take a session and we all looked forward to the third weekend at the Queens Road headquarters building. A year or so later, Wayne Myers dubbed me along with other ‘old-stagers’ to be an “elder statesman.” Harking back to 1981, Shirley and I attended the Gang Show, having tickets almost in the front row at The Palais, St. Kilda. I was sorry to hear from Bill Dawson that Dudley Wilson was succumbing to cancer. I made a note to see him in hospital. I eventually saw him in the nursing home. He died on 1st May, 1982. The third weekend (4/5th July) took place reasonably well, but catering was patchy. For the Saturday lunch, the participants went to a local restaurant. The evening meal was Chinese, which Dick and Martin went and got. Sunday’s breakfast was cooked indoors and was sumptuous. On 16th October a number of the team and the course participants were able to attend a reunion dinner at The Naval and Military Club which was appreciated by all. “Parchment” certificates were presented to those who attended. By now the “trainees” were “feeling their straps” and giving all the session leaders “a bit of curry.” From this point of view the course was a success and its members were more than likely to tell other leaders that it was worth attending, even with all the odd aspects of weather, accommodation and catering. For me it had been a difficult weekend with an embarrassing situation with the bus for the school’s play dress rehearsal and that I was 245 Father and son following the latter’s entry to Cubs On Wed 21st October, my son, Roger, was invested as a cub in the 1st Woodend group. In the father and son photograph, I am wearing the long-sleeved shirt uniform with tie and long trousers. This was a sensible uniform for nonphysical activity meetings. But it fell out of favour and the short-sleeved shirt with scarf prevailed as that worn in preference. Cubs retained their traditional cap but they now wore the same uniform as their elder brothers, the scouts. There were no girl cubs at this stage. The badge system had been updated with boomerangs, the third and top being the golden one. Roger completed three happy years as a Cub earning his Golden Boomerang. He did not proceed to Scouts but would have rejoined as a Venturer if travel to the Gang Show rehearsals could have been more easily arranged. Some years later, 1st Gisborne regularly had some of its members in the show taking transport in turns. 246 normal pattern. I had to steal away to attend an army dinner on the Saturday night, which meant that for all three of the ASAC courses my attendance and leadership had been intermittent, but no one saw it as a crime or a weakness in the course. I was just over committed. I kept on having “good ideas” and wished to see them to fruition. Chapter 48 The Third ASAC course Training Team w/e 13/14 February 1982 I now began to play the “elder statesman”154 role on the training team; after all I had been a leader trainer for eighteen years. I rarely got to the weekend for flag break. In this case I was making sure my mother was ready to move from the flat which she had occupied since 1947 to one in Belmont, my father having died in November, 1980. I again shared Dick Milne’s caravan. I left Gilwell in time on the Sunday to go to dinner at the school chairman’s home. I had the un air-conditioned car and noticed it! Once again a suitable certificate was issued, this time on parchment. Those in attendance were: John Back (3rd Wodonga), Peter Ingram (1st Healesville), Patricia Catt (1st Doveton), Bryan Kidd (East Nunawading District), Carol Thom (Bullas District), Catherine Coverdale (2nd Clifton Hill), Leslie Milroy (1st Endeavour Hills), Stanley Parfett (Branch HQ), Robert Cowdale (1st Queenscliffe), Kenneth Williams (Branch HQ), Jennifer Dovaston (1st Healesville) and Allan Thomson (Branch HQ). Third ASAC course Sufficient applications had come in for this course to be held. Would it become an annual event? But this was to be the last one. Yet the title found its way into later training course terminology. I had an army dinner on the Friday night, so I drove on up to Gilwell and let myself in to the training office. Fortunately I found a tangential heater and ran it for the rest of the morning, for it was one o’clock before I got to the camp and it was very cold. The team was the same as the previous year with Dick Milne, Martin Davies and Vic Sharp. Ken Brewster visited the course. Assist at GL Course Rather than run a course with all the responsibility, I chose to assist Lewis Tulk with his continuous woodbadge course that commenced on Monday, 27th December, at Gilwell Park. Other members of the team included Dick Milne and George Todeschini. The first weekend was on the 5/6th June. There were three field commissioners as “participants” (the new term) on the course which made things all the more stimulating. My diary contains little of the content of the course other than the good humour that John and Carol Bloomer brought to the catering side of the weekend. The second weekend at Braemar College on the 26/27th June was again a very cold one. Both Neil “Wacka” Westaway, Chief Commissioner, and John Ravenhall, Branch Commissioner for Training, visited the course. The final weekend (17/18th July) was at the Queens Road headquarters and followed the Lewis Tulk, (above the axe head), with Graham Farley and Dick Milne on his left 154 I was not know that I would be granted this title officially at this stage 247 Martin Davies, my assistant on the ASAC courses, ran the Scout course on the De Molnar training ground. and safely started to achieve the aim. I was not much use as a leader trainer to Lewis until the match was over one way or the other. Then with three runs needed, Thomson snicked the ball. The first fielder dropped or rather knocked it into the air, whereupon another slips person moved in to take the ball safely. England had finally won and the series moved to two – one in favour of Australia. I could now relax and concentrate once again on scouting matters. Relieved of the course leadership worries, I concentrated on “management” on the second day of the course with a view to keeping the tasks of the Group Leader to its essentials. The “hike routes” of Scouting are littered with group leaders who have allowed themselves to be burnt out through not keeping their own role tight and delegating the challenges to others. In all my sessions I would emphasize that one night a week is one night a week. You do not take phone calls except at the time you nominate. Most problems that seem critically important one night solve themselves several days later! I came away from the course the next day, when Dick Milne returned. Spring Lodge With son Roger in cub uniform, Shirley and I drove to Gilwell Park on the Gilwell Reunion weekend to witness the opening of the Don Spring Lodge. Norm Johnson performed the opening ceremony. After the opening, we were invited to afternoon tea, before we returned to Braemar. My chats with Lewis about the fundamentals of our respective beliefs, for he was from the Salvation Army background, had to be put aside as I listened to the test cricket. Unbelievably Australia in this test had lost ten wickets, leaving only Border (batsman) and Thomson, (bowler,) to find the last seventy-five runs or so to win. Born in England I am emotionally involved with test matches in a way I cannot explain or control. My diary says that there were action songs in the campfire that night and that I went for a walk in the moonlight along Forest Drive. The Spring Lodge was built for overnight accommodation for training team leaders and participants. It was enabled through a very generous bequest from Don Spring, who was a dentist and also a member of the Pigeon Patrol. Norm Johnson had persuaded him to adjust his will so that something substantial could be built. The architect was the late Dudley Wilson It was an interesting design with a central corridor. Off to each side were bedrooms with two beds and alternately, off the central corridor, shower rooms and toilets. Dudley must have had good reasons for not having cathedral roof panels to let in the light into the corridor, which always has to be electrically lit. Perhaps this was a precaution against embers from bushfires. However the facility has more than proved its worth. A sort of discussion area was made by dropping the floor level in a rectangle. The space was about three by four metres. Leaders could sit around the edge with their legs dangling below. Eventually the hollow area was The E. H. C. (Tom) Russell Troop Room On the following day I sat myself down with my tape recorder, turning the tape every thirty minutes as the two Australian batsmen slowly 248 filled in as it was too easy to fall into it if the lighting was poor. Fundamentals package Something encouraged me after all the sessions that I had taken on the subject, to put together a number of documents relating to Fundamentals in Scouting. This meant a lot of typing for Mrs. Jan Morehen, my secretary at the college, and quite a bit of assistance from helping hands to put it all together. The stapling of the final copies was done by printers in Kyneton. The cover of the booklet seemed to carry the authority of the national training team. The package was distributed at the 1983 February training team weekend which started that year on the Saturday morning. Norm Johnson was never noted for his use of time in terms of a program but he was par excellence for social interaction and supporting people. He was a past master at soliciting ideas and turning them into action. My session seemed to be well received. With Cliff Farmer, the national representative, to get to the airport, we got away before the weekend’s program finished. 249 a fine but windy day. The visit fulfilled a dream. Charterhouse Chapter 49 This had been B-P’S school where he had practised cooking in a nearby copse and had hidden from the masters by climbing up the trees amongst other life-developing exploits. On this sabbatical from Braemar College I was expected to visit a number of schools and I had no trouble in listing Charterhouse as one of them. On that day, Monday, 27th June, the headmaster made me very welcome and showed me round, I was then placed in the care of the school’s scout leader. Overseas trip and five Scouting landmarks On what might be termed a sabbatical, our family together with that of Meilma and Peter Hutton enjoyed several months in Britain and Europe. In the course of this we were able to visit or sight five of very important sites or buildings in the history of scouting. Peter Hutton was a GL; Meilma was a scout mother and had been accompanist for Barwon District’s B-P Revue. So, all of us on board the camper van that year were scout or guide devotees. I was able to visit five of the historic sites associated with Scouting. I had been to the UK Gilwell Park, Chingford, in 1966 and 1974, but had only seen Brownsea Island from Poole across the bay. Brownsea Island This of course was where it all began – where B-P held his first experimental camp of public school and town boys back in 1907. Brownsea is reached from Poole by boat. A recent hail storm had brought down a lot of leaves from the Charterhouse School, Godalming, Sussex This master took me to the copse where it is alleged that B-P practised fire lighting and other ploys. I was also shown the Boer War memorial and the writings of B-P in the archives section of the library. This was the second scouting landmark that I was able to visit this trip. The monument to B-P’s first camp on Brownsea Is. trees. We were there on Monday, 6th June. It was a short walk to the site of the camp, now marked by a large obelisk rock and signposts to the other scouting countries of the world. It was The copse at Charterhouse in which B-P hid from the masters by climbing the trees. The school’s SL is right 250 known also as Kanderstag. Memory says that I visited the chalet. There were many British scouts resident in the building. World Bureau Our travels took us to Geneva. The date was Monday, 11th July. It was too good an opportunity not to visit the international headquarters of the Scout Movement. My son, Roger, and I walked to the building. Here we found Phillip Pijollet getting ready to go to a conference or jamboree but he interrupted his packing to show us over the offices and conference rooms. In particular he showed us the name plate of Norm Johnson, our Victorian commissioner, who had been elected president of the world body. Kanderstag International camp site, Switzerland Gilwell Park I had been blessed with several opportunities to visit the English Gilwell Park, having taken woodbadge courses there in 1966 and assisted in 1974. But it was new to Roger and the Huttons. On Friday, 12th August, having arrived back in Britain, I navigated our van from Canterbury, through the Dartford Tunnel and via the M11 to the famous scout camp and training centre at Chingford. The World Bureau, Geneva, Switzerland. Please excuse the human interest – after all, it was “tourism”! We were looked after royally at the scout camp, but I have no record as to who showed us around. Before we left this “mecca” of scouting, we visited the shop and made bought some memorabilia, some of which I still have. Kanderstag Still in Switzerland, we had spent a glorious day on Manlichen, having reached those heights by the rigi or small cars dangling from moving cables. (Shades of James Bond and other adventure movies.) The snow covered alps were shining in the brilliant summer sun. It was Friday, 15th July. When we came down off the mountain, we drove to the village of Kanderstag where we sought a site for our camper van. This was within view of the international scout lodge, The visitor from Australia to Gilwell, England, finds it hard to cope with the manicured lawns upon which the tents are pitched for the training courses, as against the “rough old bush” of the one at Gembrook, Australia. The “Boys’ Field” was more of a field than the one at home and it has become quite famous for its “bomb hole” – 251 left by Hitler in World War II -- but extended since for pioneering constructions. There was little in our Gilwell at Gembrook to compare with the “White House”155 at Chingford and perhaps just as well, knowing the maintenance costs that the English one presents. when I “reverted” to being a member of the training team. I must have done something to justify retention of the warrant but what I did has been erased from my memory. Our visits to the five landmarks was now complete and in due course the two families returned to Australia and normal life. If I could not fulfil the chief commissioner’s hopes in regard to the ABC-TD warrant I could at least make myself available to conduct the continuous group leader course after Christmas. But this time I adopted a completely new approach in regard to meeting the needs of the participants and that account can wait until the next chapter. Group Leader course John Ravenhall John’s scouting background was in the cub section but he had a very broad view and, being a university lecturer, was obviously successful in the leader training role. He too was a regular Anglican Church member. We had many parallels in our lives. He was always hopeful that I would find the time to contribute more to the movement than I was currently doing. In one sense, he never gave up, particularly years later when my age meant that I could no longer be active in the military CMF. My diary notes that he visited Braemar and left some “homework” for me to do in regard to courses. ABC-TD A “then” and “now” pair of photos of the Middleton Flag base at Gilwell Park, Gembrook. It is hard to believe the scene could change so much over the years despite it being a coloured photo Neil “Wacka” Westaway, the Chief Commissioner, had talked me into accepting the warrant as an “Assistant Branch Commissioner for Training Development.” The main request was that I prepared each month a presentation to members of the training team. I at least made one such presentation and I should have been able to discharge the task, but all too soon events “choked” off the time that I had for such work. It was not that I did not have the knowledge and skills to do it, it was more that I was too far from Melbourne and too involved in day to day leadership of an ever expanding school. I held this warrant for several years. My diary mentions it at the end of February, 1986. My warrant certificate has no entry until late 1967 155 Also known as “Main Hall” 252 trailer full of canoes, boats, sails and all the items associated with the water. Chapter 50 Still training Finally, on that first day, Mrs. Phelps once again came along to complain about the way the cubs were upsetting her cat by throwing stones on her roof when they came from their meeting. Group Leader course With the backing that I was receiving both from Neil Westaway and John Ravenhall I felt a new confidence in how one might lead the course. I cannot be certain that I had planned to do what I did. But on the day that the course was to commence, I took my time to drive to Gilwell via Launching Place wearing “civvies.” I have no list of who helped me but I suspect I was a “one man band,” with the exception of Bill Dawson who looked after the projects. Providing I kept my health, there was no need for a second leader as the participants were taking most of the sessions. The course commenced just after Christmas in 1983. My diary records the names of several of the key members of the course. I used the word, “dynamic,” to describe how the course developed. The participants came out of themselves as they demonstrated assurance in taking sessions and relating to others. One leader returned to witness his father’s death at the age of 92 and arrange for the burial. Another leader, unaware of high blood pressure, started to have nose bleeds and he was taken off to hospital. A Roman Catholic priest, although a course member, gave me great assistance. For once, I did not have to carry the “burden” (privilege) of taking the Duty to God sessions. He was prepared to demonstrate and explain the various vestments worn by his denomination in particular during communion. His counselling skills came to the fore. He celebrated mass on New Year’s Day to which everyone was invited. The ecumenical movement took another step forward as a result. When we were all gathered in the De Molnar hall, I drew lines on a black/white board to show the possibility of six sessions a day for six days. I then asked the participants to tell me the topics in which they sought information or skills. If someone had said “water activities,” I then asked whether anyone present felt they “knew it all.” In nearly every case a leader would suggest that they did. Whereupon I would write that topic into the program with his name alongside it as being the person who would conduct the session! The Spring Lodge provided a standard of comfort for us all which was much appreciated. Eric Davey ran the scout course and unfortunately there was some friction between the two groups. As it turned out the scout people went off on their overnight journey returning New Year’s eve, but tired enough to want to retire early. This revolutionary approach meant that the needs of the course could be met, while at the same time giving each participant a direct emotional involvement in the training process. In the case of the water activities leader he would, when the opportunity came, drive back to his group headquarters and return with a 253 standards. I grabbed the chance while I was still a favoured leader. One can so soon be seen as an “old timer,” who could only be wise about the courses that were run “in the past.” Things are different now – what could I possibly learn from him! Theoretically the formal lunch should have presented no difficulties on a combined basis, but by the end of a course, the participants develop a code of behaviour in relation to the course leadership which can often conflict with that developed by the other course. There is also hesitancy in this country for people to proudly wear their “gongs” or ribbons. But I will do so on any excuse – they were not awarded to me for nothing. Training Team weekend group. John Ravenhall centre seated, Norm Johnson (World Bureau scarf) on his left. I may mention this again in later chapters, but clearly the movement was changing or about to change while I “stood still,” without any youth involvement as to know what the needs and opportunism of and for youth were current. I do not think I was even aware that the number of enrolled “scouts” in Victoria, and in Australia for that matters, was in serious decline. Scouting was attracting a smaller percentage of the possible youth quota than it had in the past. The presentation of the lowered national flag to the leader of the course, who knew how to be humble and meek for the occasion! A “one-day” ASAC A month or two later on Sunday, 8th April, a number of the woodbadge participants came to Braemar College for a reunion and bar-be-que. The spirit of the course was living on. Four leaders in the Geelong Corio District sought some form of extra training along the ASAC lines. The number was too small to warrant a full course, so I went down on Saturday, 2nd June and spent a day with the four going quickly through the program that we had found valuable for the three weekends of the full course. Training Team weekend This was held on 11/12th February, 1984. I travelled up with John Ravenhall, who gave full backing to my approach to program arrangements and the use of the participants except he felt that other leaders might do well to stick to the normal system as not all would have the skills (audacity, nerve?) to do it the Farley way. Commissioners’ course On 14/15th July I journeyed to Gilwell to assist at a commissioners’ course. Cliff Dent was a participant and we renewed friendships. It was twenty years since he had been invested as a Senior Scout in Warragul where I had been the leader of that section. I fitted in the Association’s AGM a few weeks later. By I took a leading role at the weekend. In particular I endeavoured to get the message across as to language, example, alcohol and 254 On the Saturday, 13th October, the first gathering was held at the same spot that the troop had used for its first meeting back in March, 1963, namely Crossover. Here the former railway line to Noojee from Warragul passed under a bridge. Nearby in the former station area about a dozen scouts had spent a day dealing with scouting challenges. doing so I was ‘building up capital in the bank’ and giving the impression of activity in case some zealous commissioner decided to apply the rules about the number of course a member of the training team was expected to conduct or participate in each year. East Tarago’s 21st birthday After I left Warragul at the end of 1965, Ken Abrecht continued to lead the senior scout district troop with Graham Dorling as his assistant. Ken Carland also helped. In 1967 the ETSST won three “A” Grade pennants at the annual Hoadley Hide, a feat that they tended to emulate year after year. Cliff Dent became leader and the same standard was maintained. The two ‘11-seater’ buses became worn out and were replaced with an 18-seater one. In the evening of the reunion, the dinner took place in a restaurant with the Hoadley Hide and the many “A” Grade pennants strung along the walls. Both Ken Abrecht and Graham Dorling were able to attend the dinner. Original scouts or those in the period 1963-5 who attended were: Ian Hastings, Wayne Hardie, Ron Brooks, (incidentally the first three Queen Scouts), Colin Walker, Ian Jackson, Ian Snape, Russell Marriott and Stuart Burns. Tony Holland, who had been GL of 2nd Warragul, also came down from Taree in NSW to the weekend. He had been involved in many of the senior activities including jamborees and the B-P Revue. On the Sunday, the church services were well attended and then everybody involved met at the 1st Warragul scout hall for a general get together. It had been a great weekend and a reward for the work that had been put in to organise it. It remains to be seen whether there will ever be another reunion as the yeas pass and memories fade. LtoR: Cliff Dent, Graham Dorling, Mrs. Kent, Ken Abrecht and Tony Holland at the anniversary dinner With the 21st anniversary coming up, Cliff Dent, with a little encouragement from me, undertook to arrange a reunion. These were the days when anniversaries were marked with a special bottling or labelling of souvenir wine. It was not too difficult to draw up an alphabetical list of those lads eligible to attend the function, even though the title of “Senior Scout” had been taken over by that of “Venturer.” But to find the current addresses of those boys was quite a challenge. Eventually Cliff had to cut losses and accept that he could do no more. A location for a dinner was found and the local churches warned that their congregations might be slightly larger on the Sunday. Past and present members of the ETSST/ETVU on the Sunday afternoon adjacent to 1st Warragul Scoot Hall 255 It has always been a tradition that the course members should take part in a good turn to Gilwell. A large tree had been felled in front of the De Molnar hall and a chain saw had been professionally used to saw into in to half-metre lengths. Our task was to split the large slabs of wood and stack the split lengths ready for drying and eventual burning on the hall fire. Group Leader course, January, 1985 On arrival at Gilwell I spotted a group of leaders who were obviously participants who had arrived early. I mixed with them without revealing who I was or my role on the course. They accepted me as “one of them.” I even asked some questions about what they knew about the leader and what they expected of the course. I thought we might get some of it done, but one of the participants must have been a professional wood man for in the space of an hour or two he split every slab into burnable widths and the rest of us stacked these pieces of wood. Then, to their surprise, I having changed into uniform with all the badges of achievement and authority bedecked about me, asked the participants to make the horse shoe preparatory to “flag break” and the start of the course. If there had been tar and feathers handy I think I know how they would have been used! It was one of the most cohesive courses with which I have been privileged to work. Maybe that was because I at last understood what my role was and had the confidence to carry it out. The reunion for the course was held on Sunday, 28th April, 1986, at Braemar College. Lunch was enjoyed on the croquet lawn in the shadow of the wooden school building’s tower. Strangely enough, I glossed over this end-ofyear course in my diary. It would have flowed in much the same way as the previous year’s, with the program being drawn up against participants’ needs and then the offer of the opportunity for them to take many of the sessions. Bill Dawson and Dick Milne assisted me again, with Bill handling the projects and Dick the catering and administration. We understood each other and hardly needed to be in contact as we were able to predict the certainty of the January course and its format. About this time, “the powers that be,” started to approach “leader of adult” training from a different stand point. I could not put dates on it, but it was thought that workbooks might be a better way for these “management-role” adults to prepare for their tasks as these were quite different from those leaders who worked with youth. These workbooks would allow for “prior learning” and give remissions for skills and knowledge already learnt elsewhere. The third element was for “personal leader trainers” to be allocated to these new adult-focussed leaders, who would liaise with them and help them to complete the relevant workbooks. The concept was not all that different from the system that I recalled in 1952 when I first became a leader of youth. I did not experience it but it was the vogue in Malvern District for new leaders to be allocated an experienced colleague. Further, the new leader might well be asked to work with a group different from the An additional feature of these courses was to arrange for the participants to give a short “life story” on a roster at meal times. These personal reflections were very revealing as are of course eulogies at funerals. Those that “were unaccustomed to public speaking,” soon found their tongues. 256 one that he or she would finally adopt as their own. Like all changes of such a significant nature there were arguments and evidence for both approaches, which by 2010 had been brought into a workable balance. Adults learn through many complex forms and a combination of course, workbook and personal assistants might be the optimum outcome. Accolade Knights Knightood’s spurs are fastened to thee, Keep them shining long, Honour’s sword is girded to thee In faith and service ever strong: Shield the weak, and keep the Law, Spotless let thine honour be, Bravely face the world before you Secure in Chivalry. Scouts On your honour you have promised That you will do your best, Your duty to God and your Sov’reign Stands firm, whatever be the test: Ten good Laws, your armour strong, Will serve to guard you on your way, To our happy band of brothers We welcome you today. All Knights no longer ride in armour, Swords are turned to rust: Kings have passed into the shadows, Castles crumble into dust: Where is honour? Where is truth? Have these treasures passed away? Faithful hearts still band together And keep them bright today. Don Sutherland 257 probably as it was the closest to the Delacombe Hall, which contained the dining facilities. Chapter 51 Just doing enough training to stay on the books! Training Team weekend 1985 These weekends were now a regular opportunity for me to don uniform and be seen. My professional life was getting more organised and I was no longer as stressed at the start of the year as I had been. Once again I drove to Strathmore and picked up John Ravenhall to go to Gilwell. It was a good weekend and I slept well. I came back with John and also Cliff Farmer, who was the national training leader so that he could get to the airport. I was one of the few members who lived beyond it in the direction of Bendigo. There was nearly always a large envelope of material ready for each team member. These envelopes contained the latest handbooks and information on training. Not every team member could be present at these weekends but for those who could they were invaluable for their social contact and the “state of being.” The training weekends began to fall into a pattern. The members would convene after lunch on the Saturday and would commence with a challenging session, often taken by a nonscout management consultant or trainer. Over the weekend there would be opportunities for the camp warden, the chief commissioner and the national commissioner to report on developments and changes. Campfires or sing songs would be held in the evening, although in later years these became entertainment sessions taken by the areas or regions in turn. Sundry events The training team day in the second half of the year was held on 14 August. Scouting had been traditionally “dry,” but several key leaders had their “first aid kits”! Then there was a relaxation, and alcohol could be consumed on courses. Probably the assumption was that it would be at meals, but experience found that many participants brought alcohol to the courses in quantities and consumed it in their huts at the end of the day’s sessions. The policy was now tightened and it was spelt out that the only exceptions would be for the formal meal at the end of each course. On the Sunday a Scouts Own would generally start the day. Section leaders could then meet in their groups and review their training courses, for this was a time when the English handbooks were no long in vogue and Australian Scouting was feeling its way to developing its own course handbooks. The weekend would conclude after lunch on the Sunday. The Association’s AGM was the opportunity to be seen, but I only arrived just in time to second the motion of Mr. Butchart to adopt the minutes of the 1984 meeting. Correctly so, movers and seconders of the straight forward motions were arranged prior to the meeting from those who indicated that they would be present. The fulltime training leader at headquarters, would endeavour to get the team members to roster themselves for leading the courses for the ensuing year, using charts pinned to the back wall of the De Molnar hall. This hall was used AGM’s in those days were followed by the Herring Oration in tribute to the long period of service that Lieutenant-General Herring had rendered to the movement. This was given by 258 Dawson was resident at Gilwell so he was more flexible. Then I found that several training team members had been given approval to join me, namely, Peter Butcher, Ray Hughes, and David Bennett. Was this the sort of appeal that I had? David set himself up with his computer in one of the rooms off the De Molnar hall. my army colleague, Major General Kevin Cooke –resplendent in his general’s uniform. My final appearance for the year in uniform was at the Guild Hall in Geelong where I led sessions on role-playing, such as the Mrs. Phelps routine, and gaming. I apparently added another dimension into the course with the daily planning being almost day by day, but ahead enough for participants to prepare their sessions. I used a whiteboard, having ruled it up with red lines and a blue or a black washable whiteboard pen to write in the topics and session leaders. This was the only copy of the program that I or the participants had recourse to. Group Leader course 1986 I was not to know it at the time, but this would be the last continuous course or even a full woodbadge course that I would lead. The move to the workbook approach cancelled out the holding of the “get-together” courses. That they are back to some degree in 2010 is beside the point. One morning I walked into the De Molnar hall to find that the whiteboard had been completely wiped clean. The only marks left were the ends of the red ruled lines close to the edge of the board. I was at a loss for what to say or do. I could not believe that I could be ‘sabotaged’ by such a great group of chaps like this, but there was the evidence. I was only fifty-three at the time, but my diary says that I approached this course with a degree of nonchalance or vagueness. I only heard that it was on through a secondary source. I then failed to make sure that I had a team or that headquarters had notified Gilwell catering that we were coming and for how long. That we turned up before lunch for a course that started at two was another minor aspect of my situation. Before I collapsed or spoke out of turn, one member of the course came forward and turned the board around to reveal the original program still in all its beauty on the other side. Some person or persons had gone to a lot of trouble to put those short red lines in on the other side to give the apparent vandalism authenticity. In the end three leaders came from New South Wales for apparently they had heard about the novel approach that I took to leading this particular course. I was asked to pick one up at Spencer Street but my diary says that he came by car, but we still met up and moved to Gilwell. A further innovation (for my courses) was the daily camp paper which the two patrols took it in turn to write. An ordained clergyman was again able to visit the course and carry out the functions that he had so well done a year or two back. Here I discovered that the Bloomers had not been given any information about the numbers attending the course other than it would start at two in the afternoon. I have already alluded to that problem. I found myself on my knees, literally, to Carol Bloomer seeking her forgiveness and understanding about the whole matter. Further I had to seek something for lunch to feed half the participants who had, like me, turned up in the morning. On the night before the course finished there was the combined formal function, followed by mass. On the Sunday, there was a Scouts Own, clean up, flag down and everyone away to their homes. Dick Milne was not at all sure as to what was going on, but had kept himself available. Bill 259 The Morning of My Life 1. What it is to be a very lucky fellow Living in a world forever young. How I remember when I was like them, Games we played and the songs that were sung. Cares were never there, blue skies ev’rywhere, In, the days when we were young. Interlude Theirs is a Springtime all, all their own Where not a cloud appears. Theses are the days when silver dreams Shine through their tender years. Where ev’ry storm is just sunny showers, Filled with all magic things, And with the surest anchorage Of someone’s apron strings. My year – 1961! Ch. This is the day when ev’ry thing Is filled with songs the Bluebirds sing. The world is yours and you are king! This is the morning of your life. Yours is a journey just begun, A time to dream, to walk and run Though fields of green and summer sun, Here in the morning of your life. 2. Life is good and ev’ry one’s a lucky fellow When like me he’s young and full of vim. Times that are wonderful we are sharing, These great days we’ll fill them to the brim. Learning how to live, and so blessed with Pow’rs to climb, to trek and swim. Ralph Reader 260 Costermans took the main sessions which were based on nature-craft. I found myself fishing wild life from the creek and identifying and measuring trees. Chapter 52 World Jamboree and Conference Gilwell Reunion, 1986 I regret that I never kept detailed notes of the programs of the many training team weekends that I attended so that I could watch how they developed and changed over the years. “What comes round comes round” it is said, and thus it was no coincidence that at the 2010 weekend, the Branch Commissioner for the Environment should take a session, but we did not go outside and get our fingers dirty! I was asked to attend the business meeting of the reunion as I had been made a life member of the Reunion. There was some by-play with Bill Dawson over the sum of $5 but I cannot remember why. I was glad not to find myself elected into any post on the committee and I came away when I could. Training Team weekend 26 Jan 86 Scout Task Force Once again I travelled up with John Ravenhall, but this time on the Friday night. Saturday was to be a day of Total Fire Ban. But I must have had better nerves in those days as I was satisfied that our new caretaker would have things in hand. No students would be at school. I went to Melbourne one night in the course of 1986 to offer some thoughts to the Scout Task Force that had been set up. This was chaired by Graham Beanland and had Major-General Ken Green, Barry Armstrong, Alan Dash, and Dr. William Wells as members that night. I had no further contact with this committee or ever read its findings. The one-day training team conference was held on 10th August. My diary sums it up, “I speak up more and more and get some laughs, if not results.” It was probably time to resign but resigning is not one of my habits. I had too many friends in scouting just to walk away at this stage, although I think I would have objected if I had been any other member of the team and knew that this “four-beader” was not being obliged to meet his commitment to stay on the list. Saturday was a nasty day from the point of view of the weather. At nine, fire sirens could be heard as fire tenders raced near us to deal with a fire four kilometres to the north. Throughout the day the situation was monitored. I decided that the Spring Lodge was the safest place, particularly the central corridor. Every side room had its own exit door so no one would be trapped. The building was also set low and was of brick. Fortunately the bushfire did not reach the camp that day. Having rarely made a note of the sessions at the training team courses, I am now impressed with my write-up for the August one-day event. Mind you, my son now had a BBC computer and that made writing up the diary, that was also a letter, much easier and I could be lengthier in my comments. In the evening there was a very good Scouts Own, and then a campfire but, owing to the weather, it had to be held in the Tom Russell troop hall room. On the Sunday, Leon At the one-day event, a professional trainer came along and spent two hours reducing us to laughter as he explained the characteristics of 261 exercise in Canberra, when he had come from Singapore as a UK visitor to it156. persons in a quadrant where the descriptions in turn were: Enthusiastic, Friendly, Forceful, Thorough. He carried on a quick-fire commentary as he made his presentation. My eyes were running and my mirth- cackles were drawing the attention of others. World Scout Conference in Melbourne The World Scout Conference was held in Melbourne parallel with the jamboree in Sydney. Shirley and I had invitations to the opening speech by Sir Ninian Stephens at the Dallas Brooks Hall in the Masonic Centre. A combined Gang Show team put on two items, whetting my appetite to see the full show the next night. 1987 – A lean Scouting year! My diary only has two scouting entries, namely the February Training Team weekend and the one day in August. At least I was not wearing out my uniform! On Tuesday, 12th January, I was able to spend the day as an observer at the conference. I was joined that night by Shirley and Roger and we thoroughly enjoyed the performance of a Gang Show cast drawn from the various capital city casts. The evening was memorable, concluding with the massed flags and singing of Prayer for Brotherhood. World Jamboree in Sydney As we as a family were touring near the site of the World Jamboree near Sydney, it was decided that we would visit it. It was a hot day on Wednesday, 6th January, 1988, but we found the car park and walked into the site. I got the impression that there might have been too many visitors. We had already seen plenty of local and international scouts in Sydney. David Armstrong David lived with his family in Woodend. He had known my father through their shared insurance management roles. David and Noelle’s two children had attended Braemar College, their daughter, Debra, having previously been enrolled at Clyde. David had been asked to visit the training team weekend and speak about insurance matters. I took the opportunity to travel to and from Gilwell with him. The bush colonial court at the World Jamboree, Sydney Spiritual Development weekend Finding the UK contingent area, I was delighted to hear the words, “Would you like a cup of tea?” This was the British approach to fraternisation. I gladly accepted the tea with scones. I then had the chance to meet the UK chief commissioner, Major-General Michael Walsh. I was further surprised when he said that he had met me! We narrowed it down to the 1977 Chief of the General Staff’s annual I was asked to prepare a paper or two for this conference of guide and scout leaders. It was held at the Wycliffe Bible College at Kangaroo Ground. I prepared a booklet of sayings of B-P in relation to the spiritual side of scouting and I also added my thoughts. Overhead projector transparencies assisted me in such presentations and I had it in that form. 156 Many people, military or otherwise, have this wonderful knack for remembering faces and names. It can make a great difference to relationships 262 and girl patrols. But like most such arguments they soon become extrapolated to the general scene. I was obviously not a party to the discussions but I would be very interested in the politics amongst the chief commissioners that led to this decision. When I gave the first part of the paper I had a video camera light shining at me. This made me realise what it must be like to continually face the media, such as politicians. It was most disconcerting. After lunch we had to erect hike tents blindfolded. I guess it had some relevance as well as making us realise how important one’s sight is. If the Victorian Education Department was wedded to “mixed” or “co-educational” schooling, then neither Melbourne High or MacRobertson Girls would remain single-sex schools or delay their intake until Year 9. Braemar College can really owe its establishment to the decision by Geelong Grammar to enrol girls from The Hermitage and Clyde School. The second part of the paper was given that night. I came home about lunchtime the following day, Sunday, 1st May. Girls in Cubs and Scouts The media could not wait to announce what they suggested was revolutionary: that girls were to be admitted to the cub and scout sections. Presumably they had already been brought into Venturer and Rover sections, where perhaps maturity maintained some balance. From perhaps an ideal point of view, there is a school in Victoria which, through the chances of history, consists of two separate gender schools up to and including Year 10 before the two genders come together for the VCE classes and section of the school (Years 11 and 12). I have no statistics but my guess is that this innovation did not lead to any great advantages for either gender or for the movement. This is not the place to discuss co-education, but it is only so when no activity could be held without both genders being directly involved. The old segregation in classrooms and playing grounds was not co-education – it was “mixed” schooling. Gang Show After a long run staging the Gang Show at the Palais Theatre in St. Kilda, the 1988 performance was at the Princes Theatre next to the Windsor Hotel. Shirley and I saw the show on Friday, 19th August, along with Meilma and Peter Hutton. The longer that I had the privilege of being a head in a mixed school, the more I became aware of the disadvantages of having boys and girls in close rivalry at the junior secondary levels. There is no way to stop the girls from developing faster than the boys in nearly every sphere of their lives. I cannot say that boys “retreat” into themselves, but they are generally powerless to prevent the girls from lording it over them in class performance and in activity involvement. So, I could not agree with this announcement on 23rd May, 1988. The content of the show was nearly all Australian. Local musicians, such as Ken Bayly, were now writing songs and others were presenting skits. However, some of the items were UK repeats, although Ralph Reader was no longer alive to write and compose songs. Unfortunately, the program included an item or two where the Guide movement was not shown in the best light. I think this was the song with boys dressed up as guides on a hiking trip. It could just have easily been acted by males in male parts and placed in the scouting situation. The classic argument for joint membership is always cited in the poorly populated rural districts where a single parent committee could be supporting the “troop” with its separate boy 263 six-thirty from the college. There was a detour on the way down to avoid a fatal accident. In Melbourne getting fuel I noticed that a tyre looked distinctly flat and I pumped it up. It stayed up for the weekend but eventually a nail had to be located and removed. Chapter 53 Not too old to help on a Hoadley Hide Training Team weekend, 1989 Once again this event started my scouting year. Once again I made sure that I was “seen” at it and that I attended enough sessions for my presence to be noted. On the way to Gilwell I spotted the Puffing Billy train in Emerald and then another leader in Gembrook, which confirmed that I had the right weekend! I was successful in arriving on time, but this year, instead of total fire bans, it was raining. A university lecturer presented a session on transfer of learning, which was relevant in many areas. On the way home I called in at our church where the lady deacon was being farewelled. My scouting shorts were much appreciated on such a wet day! I was glad to see that there was a speaker from the Scripture Union, which was fairly unusual in view of my thoughts that the movement was becoming increasingly secular, even to the point of being animistic! Animism157 is a love of natural world. The view from the mountain top might be outstanding but it can be a bit murky on a wet cold day. Norm Johnson dies When someone is as active and apparently as healthy as Norm was, it is difficult to comprehend such an early death. I never heard what the cause of death was, but I gather it was something to do with his heart. Norm had been my mentor for years. Unfortunately I could not attend his funeral owing to a curriculum conference at the college. In the forest animals are not all loving, and a number depend for their survival on their ability to devour others. Scouting respects the environment but it is pushing the case for one to plead that one can find God through it – certainly the Christian God that shows a love for the deity and for other people. He was one of my three referees for the Braemar College position. He was also my dentist from about 1976. His secretary, also a cub leader, found herself doing a lot of scout typing on the side. Norm had been a scout leader and slowly found his talents to be needed in various commissioner postings, culminating by being the World Bureau chairman. Norm had been the author of a camping text book, Camping for Scoots and Others. Scouting was different for me after his death. Leon Costermans was also at the weekend and we had a walk around the camp after the evening meal. On the Sunday the Scouts Own reflected all that worried me in regard to nature worship as distinct from a God with a personality. As I had a lot to do back at the college, I left in time to be home shortly after mid-day. Hoadley Hide, 1990 And that I have to confess sums up my scouting for 1989! This annual competition has been conducted at Easter from the fifties for the elder age group, ie., 14 to 18s. It has been extremely popular and is quite a challenge to those who take part, although since girls have been in that age group, there are now “social” patrols who no longer set out to compete. While at Warragul I was directly involved in helping with the running of I only attended the Sunday of the 1990 weekend training conference. I was keen to be in time for flag break at nine, which meant leaving about 157 “Animism, n, the belief that all natural objects and the universe itself possess a soul. …” The Concise Macquarie Dictionary, Macquarie University, 1985 edition 264 met up with Cliff Dent, who driven in his teams using the unit’s 18-seater vehicle. He had brought two patrols, one to take part with enthusiasm and one which just wanted to be there! these events, but had fairly little to do with them after leaving Geelong in 1973. I must have got in touch with one of the organisers to see whether I could help. Once the senior scouts could be trusted to camp in the bush without damaging it or vandalising huts, but it had been found wiser to establish VOCs or Venturer Overnight Camps! These were now run by the areas or regions and provided camp sites, showers, cooking, washing and toilet facilities. Rovers also tended to be active in staffing them. Unfortunately, in this day of portable electricity generators, the public address system accompanies the TV sets and of course with PA one must have frequent announcements and music (sorry, I meant musak!). At the HQ there was both Dr. William Wells and John Ravenhall. I had the cheek to wear my branch scarf, to which I was entitled as a member of the training team. Each of the Hides had a theme and this year’s was pirates. I was asked whether I would like to visit the stunt staffed by Macedon leaders. I found it without much trouble. Here Trevor Turnham and Christine Antonis were very busy. The competing parols were given their challenge, all but the PL being blind-folded. The last part of the stunt required the patrol to walk the plank. It was only two foot high and straw caught the victims. I returned to HQ for the evening meal. I had already erected my wife’s very waterproof and sealed hike tent and retired into this before the rain began in earnest. I had warmth and light from a gas-fired pressure lantern and was even able to read as the heavens opened up. I was quite secure. I had a good night’s sleep and rest. Saturday The “Legless Seadogs” patrol. This was my idea of how a patrol on the Hoadley Hide should present itself. I would have awarded them an “A” Grade on the spot! The Hoadley Area leader had been taken to hospital with stomach pains, but the Hide ran smoothly, which showed both the quality of planning and the use of understudies. No one seemed to want me for a specific task so I loaded up the car and spent the day moving around the good roads, talking with both the Venturer patrols and those leaders and Rovers running the stunts. A chap who had been a scout when I was at Warragul was one of the organisers and he gave me a job and a place to be at for Good Friday morning. The location for the Hide 1990 was in the Wombat State Forest west of Blackwood with its HQ at Barry’s Reef. I arrived in sufficient time to check the map references to make sure of my destination. I was self-sufficient for meals with my gas stove and brought rations and thoroughly enjoyed my day in the bush. I joined the Macedon group later in the day and enjoyed the BBQ at HQ, before retiring. But I found that I was supernumerary to needs and there was sufficient staff already in place. I found that I knew quite a few people. After providing cups of tea, as I always travelled with “the makings,” to some of the leaders I headed back to Barry’s Reef for lunch. I had already 265 Easter Day Cub Conference I got up and drove back to Woodend and the college and joined my wife and son for their Easter Eucharist in Woodend. By now I realised that my best contribution was as an “old-timer.” These were experienced leaders who wandered the roads and tracks with a view to sustaining morale and helping out here or there. The terminology was now up to date. The new phrase was “Venture Support Team,” but I stuck to the phrase I knew best. It was traditional to wear old gear appropriate to the theme but I only had uniform. Memory fails as to how I became involved with an invitation to speak to a conference of cub section leaders at Benalla, but it may have been as a result of the paper I presented at the weekend when spiritual matters were discussed. It fitted in with family plans, as a teacher and his wife from England on exchange, was at my school and Shirley and I would frequently show them the countryside, although they had taught in Australia before at The Geelong College. I combined the two activities and we drove to Benalla. There was at first a minor challenge in finding the location of the conference. Leaving the car at various secure locations, I would move about on foot. That I was also walking/hiking was appreciated by both the patrols and the stunt leaders and I received a lot of hospitality as a result. For instance I found myself discussing the problems with the Victorian Certificate of Education with those boys and girls in the Year 11 and 12 classes with some value to both sides. I had presumed that there would be about twenty or so leaders, so I was taken aback when I walked into a hall where I found several hundred present. I only had notes from which to talk but I must have been appreciated, as at the end of the talk, I was asked to leave my “paper” for reproducing! I suggested my notes were hardly in that state. A priest arrived to say Mass and the Reverend Norm Tong of the Uniting Church came to lead a Protestant service. The “entertainment” in the VOC’s was all too loud and all too bright for me but then I was only proving that I was an “oldtimer”! Narelle Swaffield A senior student at Braemar, Narelle was a member of a family where the Guide Association was fully supported. Narelle qualified for her Queen’s Guide badge, much to everyone’s pleasure. Some years later her mother received the OAM for services to Guiding. Monday The formal competition ended on the Sunday night as the leaders had to assess which patrols should be classed as “A”-Grade. So, on the Monday, a program of fun and games is offered. I found myself fully involved in this. When the pennants were announced, the East Tarago patrol was one of them – Cliff Dent and his venturers were maintaining their standards which reached back to 1967, when the troop three patrols all won “A’-Grade pennants. Training Day, 1990 Even though the current training commissioner, Jack Griffiths, had written to me and suggested that in view of the few training courses that I was running, I should consider handing in “my beads,” I only came for the Sunday. And that was only a sluggish approach, arriving in time for morning tea and then quickly volunteering to take the Tasmanian leaders to the airport. I am not sure what arguments I had used in my reply to Jack, but he did not pursue the matter. Every I hoped to be able to help on later Hides, but I was in the UK the following year. It would be some years before I joined another Hoadley Hide. 266 five years of membership is recognised with a certificate and a badge. I received my second certificate for 35 years service, but I did not point this out. I understood or accepted the strength and modus operandi of this new section. Overseas in 1991 As this pattern of attending part or all of the annual training team conferences would continue, I can look back (from 2010) and feel rather embarrassed that my contribution was so limited. I know that I had the ability to show leadership and to guide others in the movement, but there are only 24-hours in the day and my responsibility to Braemar College, my source of income, was the greater. There was time left in the day to breathe, but not much else. Review of 1991 During my 1991 sabbatical in Britain and Europe I had no association with any scouting or guiding activity. I do not think I even saw a member of either movement in uniform. Was this a sign of the times? Marcel Nyeholt, my deputy head, was not well and we brought forward the dates of our travels, but Marcel was determined to fulfil his acting role. Unfortunately, his health deteriorated very quickly and the next senior member of staff, Ian Buerckner, stood in as acting head. Marcel’s cancer could not be arrested and he died about a month after the Farley family returned to Australia. Queen’s Scouts I started to receive invitations to badge presentation ceremonies for the Queen’s Scout badge. The first was for Stuart Turnham and the second for Brendan Spears, both of whom attended Braemar College. A nostalgic reminder of what it was like “in the good old days” with a session at the campfire circle. This was probably in the days when the Russell Troop room provided the only cover in inclement weather. The carved totem with the kookaburra perched at its top still exists, having been carefully preserved. On its rear is the signature of B-P. The training leader looks uncommonly like “Bus” Derrick – certainly it was his legendary pose One-day conference Maintaining my view that it would be difficult to be “sacked” if one kept up attendances at the training team meetings, I prepared to drive to Bentleigh in Melbourne. On the way I attended church at St. John’s, Malvern, the church that was linked to the school I attended, Malvern Grammar School. John Ravenhall visited the meeting and there were discussion groups. A leader from the new Joey section spoke to us. This one was for the six to eight age bracket. I had doubts as to its value. I had always regarded the cub section as a recruiting ground for the important years of “scout” and “venturer” scouting. Here we were with one for the cubs! It was to be years before 267 On the Sunday the sessions continued until “flag down” at lunchtime. Rodger O’Hara, also of Bendigo, drove me home to Braemar. Chapter 54 More leader training opportunities and the history of training Benalla Phase 4 GL Seminar I have lost touch with what current course is equivalent to those with which I was historically associated. It was a weekend course to be held at the former RAAF base at Benalla, now owned by the civic authorities. The course would run parallel with a venturer one and the meals would be provided centrally. It would be held on the weekend of 6th and 7th of July, 1992. Training Team weekend, 1992 Once again the year started with the training team conference. I do not think we were down to one vehicle but I asked Joan Summers of Bendigo to pick me up. Joan was a life long cub leader. She was to receive the Public Service Medal (PSM) and to be awarded the medal of the Order of Australia. Joan met me at the bottom of the school drive and we went to Gilwell via Whittlesea which was a slightly longer but more attractive way of going than through the city. The Citylink had not yet been constructed, which was to make the city route even quicker. I had warned the applicants that my method of running a course was unusual and it might be more a matter of them training me! The weather was unpleasant on the Friday night, so I elected to drive up on the Saturday morning. It was very foggy most of the way and I was glad of the extra time that I had from being up early. I found a bed in Spring Lodge and then reported in. This may not have been the first time that a professional training person was to start the weekend, but when the person thanked him for coming, she remarked that he had even kept me awake. I have to admit that if my interest is not maintained, I will often close my eyes. But I also say that I was always tired from the intensity of those first few days of the school year and would have gladly spent the weekend home resting, that is, if the parent community had allowed me to. Not only was the venue new to me, but I had not met my assistant leader trainer, although he said he had been on one of my courses. Nor had I read through the material for the course. This failure “came home to roost” when, in the course of the afternoon, I saw that I was reading from the phase 3 workbooks rather than the phase 4! On the Sunday morning I switched without saying a word or admitting anything. But then my method of getting the applicants to tell me what they knew well overcame this ‘minor’ hiccup. In the evening we had what I would call “a proper campfire.” Appropriate to each activity in life are specific ceremonies or experiences that are unique to it. One of these in scouting was the campfire. There was a way to lay it. There was a way to open it. There were appropriate clothes or dress to wear to it. Most of us led an item. I fell back on the time-old one of singing “Pack up your troubles in your old kit bag” in unison with “It’s a long way to Tipperary.” I was impressed with the material. The session material commenced with the words, “At the conclusion of the session, the leader should be able to …” I could see the hand of John Ravenhall in this professional approach. It was a big step forward from the days when participating scouters were expected to take in the ‘golden words’ of the leader trainer, generally from a handbook written at Gilwell Park in the UK. The small numbers on the course permitted a “round table” approach. The Sunday passed without further incident to record or confess! 268 1993 Training Team weekend The return to a “seminar” format was the inevitable ‘turning of the wheel’ since the continuous and weekend courses had been scrapped in favour of work books studied at home with the help of a “training adviser.” It seems that a “shoulder to shoulder,” “face-toface” type of experience is necessary to get full value from the sessions. Lynda Wright was now branch training commissioner. I got to Gilwell on time but not before I had noted that work had started on the re-laying of the narrow-gauge “Puffing Billy” train from Gembrook back to Emerald, then the current terminus. No reader could guess that I was also a “railway buff”! I excused myself mid-afternoon to change into a suit and attend a fellow government principal’s farewell dinner in Geelong, returning to Gilwell mid-morning the next day. After lunch, I was able to take the national training commissioner, Kirsty Brown, to the airport for her to flight back to Brisbane. August Training Day in new HQ The one-day conference was held at the new headquarters in Barry Street, Carlton, just north of the city proper but within easy walking distance from Melbourne Central station. The former HQ in Queens Road had been sold. Our new HQ had formerly been the property of a trade union. Group Leader course at Benalla, Sunday 7 June 92 Over the years the movement explored the various approaches to training, even to allowing for proven prior knowledge. With the later establishment of the Scout Australia Institute of Training (SAIT) and the national recognition that this body could grant a diploma in leadership, training styles settled down. The Barry Street building had three floors, with the conference rooms on the third. Then we discovered that the lift was not working. In those days I could climb stairs easily – if one was to survive at Braemar, one had to. Trevor Miller 1994 Training Team weekend If one is to work in what I might term, “people industries,” then it is inevitable that it is difficult to go anywhere without meeting someone whom you have known. Returning home on Sunday 12th July I was in the Woodend convenience store. Here I was recognised by Trevor Miller. He had been a senior scout in the Barwon troop. He was looking for a campsite for his van for the night. I suggested that he might as well come up to the school and I would run out a power lead from one of the buildings. He accepted this offer gladly. I attended this conference, the only memory being that I accidentally left behind my second uniform, pyjamas and dressing gown. But I coped apparently. Training history At a Commissioners’ course in October, I was approached both by Lynda Wright and John Ravenhall with a view to producing a short history of leader training in Victoria. This was because it was the 75th anniversary of training in 1995. I could not see any difficulties in doing 269 this with my contacts at Scout Heritage and with the Gilwell Park warden, John Noke. further out from the town. The government land selected was at a cliff top some three kilometres back towards Geelong. I invited current members of the training team to send in “memories” of the courses they had attended. I was also able to get an up-to-date list of those leaders who had held “honourable charges” together with the current list. Their titles now were Leader Trainer and Assistant Leader Trainer. When one year some scouts from Nauru landed at the port of Geelong to attend a jamboree, “Boss” Hurst, as the local DC was asked to look after them. As a result “Boss” was to champion the right of the Nauruan people to have independence, even though the phosphate mining had run out on the island. For a while the Geelong scout area was known as “Geelong - Nauru.” “Boss” developed quite a range of facilities for leader training at Eumeralla as well as a number of huts and halls for functions, such as Eumeralla Day. On this occasion the area president, Philip Law, attended the luncheon and spoke to those assembled. Queen Scout badge awards In November, I was invited by Justin Gates to witness him receiving his Queen Scout’s badge. Justin was a student at Braemar College and I had encouraged him to complete the badge as he was so close to doing so and nearly over the age limit. I was to receive invitations from then on when local Venturers received their badge, even where they had not attended Braemar College where I was headmaster. The author with John Noke, Camp Warden, in Spring Lodge During the following January, 1995, I spent a day at Gilwell with John Noke pouring over the log books that he had in his library. I timed this with the Gilwell Reunion attending the campfire on the Friday night. Farley Library Talk on the history Doug Doak had re-established Eumeralla Day in the Geelong scout area’s calendar. I was encouraged to attend but not quite knowing why. Wayne Myers proudly showed me the room with its sign, “The Farley Library.” It was well equipped with scouting books and magazines. At the 1995 training team weekend I was asked to provide an “after dinner” talk about what I had learned in preparing the history of training in Victoria. I have never been able to remain serious on such occasions and I brought a bag of sweets to present as prizes when leaders were able to answer my questions. This would not be the last time I would be so asked. I was again able to take Kirsty Brown back to the Melbourne Airport on her way home to Brisbane. “Boss” Hurst’s book On the same day, a book on the life of “Boss” Hurst was launched. “Boss” had patented the double-ended wool-bale hook. With the proceeds he developed a scout camp near Anglesea but then was obliged to move it 270 of Dinizulu’s beads for course completion. These were known as “wood badge” courses. The Training Team Reunion day – Sunday, 26 Feb 1995 Present and past members of the training team were invited to Gilwell158. The group was to include Charles Hodgins who, as a patrol leader, had attended the first training course back in 1925 which added considerable colour and authenticity to the day. Copies of my “provisional” history were made available to all those present. The lunch was in the Hoadley Hall, followed by a Scouts Own. I sat with Jo and Geoff Allen, training leaders from Geelong. By chance I had lived next door to their home in Belmont from 1967 until marriage at the end of 1971. Geoff and Jo Allen who were trainers in Geelong with me Dinizulu had been a native chief in Africa and B-P had received this man’s set of beads that he wore around his neck. LtoR: Ray Beebe, Graham Farley, Wayne Myers, Lewis Tulk, Andrew Wallace. John Noke to the right But it was found that many leaders came unprepared for the long course and so a “preliminary” one was introduced. In due course, this one was “up staged” with the need for an “explanatory” one prior to that. When I did my training, I attended in succession Explanatory, Preliminary and the Wood badge courses. Nowadays such “titles” have been substituted with “stages159,” such as Stage 1, Stage 2 &c. Charles Hodgins was able to attend the training reunion day. He was the only survivor of the first course to be conducted. Adult leader training had commenced in the UK as a response to a need. The English association was presented with the White House and park at Chingford, to be known world-wide as Gilwell Park. Baden-Powell conducted courses for scout masters that lasted a fortnight. On completion the participants were awarded two 158 159 It had been left to the discretion as to whether uniform was worn. This resulted in a bit of a “hotch potch”! I may not be quite up to date here, now that SAIT overseas training 271 In many ways leader training in Victoria copied without question the UK system as did much of scouting in general. Two Victorian scout leaders were granted “honourable charges” to become “Deputy Camp Chiefs.” One of these men, Tom Russell, had presented the local movement with forested country at Gembrook where he constructed four training huts for sleeping and eating. Soon training courses, where practicable, were conducted here. “Arch” Hoadley was the other, the lower training ground being named to honour his contribution as was the naming of an area in the Western suburbs. Ian Hastings Ian had been the first troop leader of the Senior Scouts (later, of course, the Venturers) in Warragul in 1963. He had met his wife, Barbara, at a Guide social. They now live in Ballarat and in 1995 they celebrated their 25th wedding anniversary. Shirley and I were invited to join in the celebrations. He was an officer with the Forestry Commission of Victoria (FCV), now the Department of Sustainability and the Environment (DSE). I had to make an amendment to the list of leaders who could run courses as, for some reason, Ken Brewster’s name was not on the list I was given. Ken was able to show me a photocopy of his original charge. Betty Brooks I never took the history beyond what I termed this “provisional” stage as there seemed no need to go into any further detail, the log books of the various courses being available at Scout Heritage or Gilwell. I had been intrigued to read “Kenno” Kennedy’s comments on my own participation at the practical course in January, 1955. 272 By now, the show had changed its shape somewhat significantly. Gone were the songs and skits that had been the kernel of the Ralph Reader London Gang Shows. Now, there were two musical productions separated by the interval. In 1996 the first half was about the Jungle Book story. The second half took the story of Ruth in the Old Testament. Chapter 55 Another career change coming up – retirement! Training Team weekend, 1996 Doug Doak made a presentation about the changes to leader training as a result of the successful application by the movement to have its courses recognised at the Technical and Further Education (TAFE) level. This would mean a lot of standardisation as well as great benefit, but it brought forward the idea of Recognition of Prior Learning (RPL). RPL was possibly OK in theory but it had many practical problems in its implementation. Geelong reunion night Meilma and Peter Hutton arranged for a reunion dinner of those directly involved with the years of 1967 to 1973, when Shirley and I left the district on my appointment as principal of Birchip High School. During those years a number of adult couples had got to know each other very well as they discharged their scout warrants from area commissioner to group leader. Ross Hutton (right), son of Meilma and Peter Hutton, continued with Scouting in both Rovers and Water Activities. His two children, Joshua and Kate, were especially active in the Rover section. Here they are in 1996 at Government House – all three Queen Scouts. Ross’s brother, Bryce, was Eumeralla camp warden amongst other roles. Ross’s sister, Jill, was a cub leader. Three generations in Scouting -- an example to us all There were still scouting aspects to the show, such as the finale in uniform and the ritual singing of It’s a Wonderful Life; with “Out in the rain, boys,” or had it become “Guys” by then, with the introduction of girls! There were three Braemar students in the Gang Show cast, namely, Jessica Rodda, Nicki Buskes and Meredith Frearson. Meredith’s younger sister and brother would be in later casts. The guest list included Aileen and Graeme Taylor, Jenny and Bob George, Carmel and Peter MacAuslan, Duncan MacAuslan, and Chris and Ross Hutton. There was much reminiscing during the meal. We also remembered those that were no longer with us, such as Max Grinter. Some symbolic awards were made in the course of the evening for “good services.” Warragul reunion Gang Show Cliff Dent had married Pat and they had settled down in Warragul where they had four children. Cliff was the leader for the Venturer unit, the renamed one from my days. Over the years, the East Tarago Venture Unit was consistently successful in securing “A-Grade” pennants at the annual Easter time Hoadley Hide. The two earlier eleven-seater vans had been replaced by an eighteen-seater bus. Braemar’s Year 5 and 6 classes decided to attend a performance of the Gang Show. This was staged at the old Hoyts Victory theatre in Acland Street, St. Kilda, not far from the Palais where I had been in the cast in 1961. 273 activities for the elder adolescent age group, was able to be present. It was a great night. At the dinner were eight of the original 1963-65 unit, as well as Clem Jervis, who was DC. I wore civvies but adorned myself with both the Change of life After 21 years I offered my resignation as headmaster of Braemar College. It was time, as they say, to “move on.” Theoretically I would now have time to pursue many activities, which would surely include more scouting. But with the changes in leader training that had taken place, it was unlikely that it would be at that level. In the meantime, Shirley and I would have a five-month trip to the UK and Europe. 1998 would come around all too soon. Graham Farley and Cliff Dent at 33rd Reunion dinner Scout Heritage opening famous “unofficial” district scarf and the scarf that was issued for the 1965 Tasmania trip. Bob Swinton, who had done so much to inspire While Lillian Beard and particularly “Mac” Stidston had brought together much of the memorabilia of the movement before it had been lost for ever, storage and display had been limited. Now the association handed to Scout Heritage a disused scout hall in Ivanhoe. The fact that the scout hall was available was a sad reflection on the loss of membership that scouting, along with many other organisations that assumed commitment, were experiencing. Scout Heritage already had use of “Como,” the National Trust property in South Yarra, but needed storage space for the number of “bequests” that families were making of scouting uniforms, books and the like following the death of a loved one. On the same night, Ray Beebe presents one of the Dents with his Queen Scout badge The Governor of Victoria, Sir James Gobbo, performed the opening ceremony, an indication of vice-regal support for the movement. 1997 would prove to be a quiet year for me in Scouting, but I still found enough activities to keep me occupied. I was not out of it yet. Ray Hughes, who had worked with me on training courses, found himself ‘conned’ into giving me a lift to Gilwell for the annual training team weekend. Nothing much of note took place at the course upon which to Wayne Hardie (Founding member, 1963) and Ken Carland (1964) at the dinner 274 comment. The weather was indifferent. The new TAFE approach influence was beginning to be felt. I wondered whether it was becoming too bureaucratic for “Mr. and Mrs. Average” to both understand and cope with. I had had little contact, other to encourage from time to time participation if we had boys old enough to take part. When the St. Bede’s 6th St. Kilda rover crew was formed, some of the lads acted as assessors and helpers. Shirley and I had our five months in the UK and Europe in 1997 without coming into contact with Scouting at all. This was partly due to me not having any reason to make contact but I was surprised that we saw no scouts in uniform or their activities. Over the years several aspects of the hide changed. Some scouters offered to act as “old timers.” They would dress in the costume relevant to the theme but move about the countryside in an encouraging role. Their title was changed over the years, but the original one described their role very adequately. Hoadley Hide reunion Whereas the patrols had previously camped out, the decision was made to bring them in at night to a “VOC,” a Venturer Overnight Camp. Some patrols had abused the bush and even vandalised huts in the forest areas used for the hide. The “Vocs” provided hot water, toilets, warmth (large fires), medical aid, but also with public address systems came noise. Some called it music! With a view to getting oral and written histories before many of the leaders died or could not longer be compos mentis, headquarters organised a reunion on a Sunday afternoon at the relatively new Barry Street building. Photos and memorabilia covered the walls to remind those attending of the “days that were.” In turn the surviving commissioners told of their memories. Then, of course, those of us who had brought items could chat with each other and “remember the good old times.” While at Warragul, I was very much involved with other Warragul scouters in the staging of the 1965 hide, which was held nearby north of Labertouche. The theme was “Unlocking the land.” That Easter was characterised by alternate bursts of sunshine and rain squalls. The hide competition commenced I believe after 1945. It was held at Easter in parallel with the other two Easter competitions (Cohen Shield and Stradbroke Cup) but for the over–fifteen age group. There would be a theme – generally historical, such as the days of Rome – and the patrols would be expected to hike from one map reference to another where they would be challenged with a task that somehow fitted in with the theme but involved scouting skills. Points would be awarded for how well the patrols tackled and achieved the tasks After leaving Warragul, Ken Abrecht, who took over from me began to have incredible success with his patrols, winning three “A”Grades in 1967. Cliff Dent carried on that tradition to the extent that there wee always Warragul patrols in the winning list for years. Leon Costermans and I swapped photographs and stories of the hides with which we had been associated. One of the famous hides was that of Anthony and Cleopatra, in which the battle of Salamis or its equivalent was trumped up. Boxes of rotten tomatoes and bags of flour were used in that mock conflict; and all recorded on silent 8 mm film, courtesy of Bob Barrow. The patrols would be self-sufficient and camp out over night. A log would have to be kept. Only those patrols with the highest training standards and morale could expect to hear their names read out on the Monday when the “Agrade” pennants were awarded. On returning home I drafted a report about my association with the Hoadley Hide over the 275 the play off of “Peter Pan.” Membership of the team that I was in seemed to be an attractive idea. In the morning, the usual Scouts Own was held. Once again I was concerned that there was an unnecessary emphasis on the beauty of nature, when I knew that in the world of the jungle, dog eats dog and despite the beauty of a sunset, there are also floods, droughts, hurricanes and the like. Slippery thinking continued to exclude the person and divinity of Jesus and his life and example. years, unaware that I would have some contact later on with this annual event. Regrettably with the reduction of enrolled scouts, fewer take part. One other step was to drop the requirement for a log book to be kept. This might have saved both the youth members and the leaders who had to stay up all night marking them, but in my opinion it was a retrograde step. The Warragul approach to the keeping of the log book was to nominate or select one member of the patrol and make that his or her only task. Meals and other comforts would be supplied for the log keeper by the other patrol members. I visited the August training day at Barry Street. Even then I wondered how long I could “get away with” so little participation in the movement. Why didn’t I resign? Why didn’t they sack me? I still seemed to be acceptable and small tasks came my way. It was not that I wasn’t interested, it was more that there was no great demand for what I could offer. I was invited to be on the district warrant committee but was never invited to a meeting! In 1998 my scouting involvement was limited to attending the training team functions. Nor did I get involved in helping at the Heritage Centre – it was not convenient to public transport. Training Team weekend, 1998 Having assisted with transport for the national training commissioner, Kirsty Brown, I also picked her up from the Melbourne motel where she had stayed overnight. Our early arrival at Gilwell permitted us to settle in to our accommodation and meet up with others. Wayne Myers, who had been training commissioner at Geelong, was now the branch training commissioner. I thought this would be a step forward for the movement. In fact the training weekend took on a new pattern. From now on, a specialist trainer from the business world would be engaged to give the morning session and stimulate the scout leaders to look at their task from fresh points of view. In the evening, one of the areas/regions would be responsible for the social activities. Having won the previous year I did not seek glory but had it thrust upon me and my group. A hat bearing a famous person’s name would be placed on heads in turn and the wearer had to guess who he or she was meant to be. I was asked at some stage to revise the story of Gilwell book, but that would mean frequent trips to Gembrook and an unnecessary demand on the use of the car. I let the idea slide into the night! To use that dreadful cliché, it “went down to the wire,” with our captain guessing her identity on 276 Heritage I seemed to be a natural to be involved with Lillian Beard and the heritage area of the movement and one day to test it, I made my way by public transport to their new Ivanhoe headquarters. I spent the day at the scout hall and Lillian drove me to the nearest railway station to get home. But there my involvement more or less came to an end as far as that location was concerned as it was not easy to reach by public transport and, in retirement, one had to be sensible about how much one used a car that would possibly never be replaced. The following year I was able to find a way of assisting the movement “that ticked all the boxes”! I was disappointed with the decision that I had to take but Shirley and I would now be living on income from superannuation. We would be glad of any discounts that might arise from the Seniors’ Card and the like. I was now 65, an age that restricted one’s opportunities for employment, even locally, and the little teaching that I did told me that I might be past that activity as well! To say nothing of a change in student culture that made my tired and proven methods of class control obsolete! There was always plenty to do outdoors on our five acres. I made sure I had time to have the sheds restructured to permit the model Hornby train to be laid out and my tools and documents well stored. One can dream but sometimes one has to face the reality of life. 277 by sitting carefully and upright that my hat protected me from the worst of it. Chapter 56 A Silver Koala, a Hoadley Hide and helping at BHQ I had also continued to wear my “old” uniform, that of the short-sleeved collarless shirt and shorts. By this date many leaders were wearing the new uniform of darker long trousers and shirts with a collar. I was not alone in the traditional gear. But when it came to the presentations nearly every variation of the uniform arrayed on bodies of all shapes and sizes paraded across the staging. Good service award I apparently asked to be excused from the 1999 training team weekend, the first that I had missed in years. I have no recollection why I tendered an apology. But almost the following day I received a letter from BHQ advising that I had been granted the good service award of the Silver Koala. This award was the new Australian one that replaced the former Imperial Silver Acorn. Suspended now from the broad yellow ribbon was a metal koala. We recipients were seated on forms on the flat ground of the campfire circle with the supporters on the banks. It had been expected that the senior awards would be made first but this was reversed, sending the team looking after the “gongs” and certificates into a bit of a flap until they sorted things out. I found it interesting that the names almost next to mine were Cliff Dent, my neighbour back in Warragul in 1963 – 65, and Graeme CumbraeStewart, who had been one of my scouts when I was scout leader of 15th Malvern! I mused as to whether this was a way of saying both thank you and goodbye! Barry Marshall was similarly honoured but in the Canberra area, where he had been a leader. The Farleys and the Dents found a dry spot for lunch under the cover of the gap between the Hoadley Hall and its library/offices. Hoadley Hide I was to be a member of the Venturer Support Team, the formerly known “old timers.” I can not recall how I got involved with this Hoadley Hide. It was fairly normal for it to be held near Barry’s Reef south of Trentham where the Association had good links with the Forestry Awards day, Sun 21 Mar 1999. Cliff Dent on right! The presentation took place at Gilwell on Sunday, 21st March, 1999, in the campfire circle – now very much improved with staging and seating. I was glad that I had worn my scout hat – the one designed by our founder to protect us from sun and rain. Not far into the ceremony a light rain began to fall and I found Rovers at one of their Hoadley Hide stunts. Note the welcoming committee, equipped with “water blaster” 278 lighting and TV for entertainment, although I did feel the sight of rugged-up leaders watching TV in the Wombat State Forest a bit odd. There was a row of “portaloos” as well as some basic showers. Meals were supplied, which reminded me of the 1965 Labertouche hide when I was involved with the group that provided the “rest and recover” hall for the supervising leaders. Commission, or had it already become part of the Department of Sustainability and the Environment (DSE) by then? I loaded the Laser car, now on its last legs (or wheels) with the comforts that I thought I would need. These included of course Shirley’s hike tent which had a sewn in groundsheet base and could be closed up against the elements. I also put in the camp box containing the gas cooker and other such equipment. Providing the car did not break down or become bogged I was ready for what might unfold. I was in a team of three, the others being Doug Waldron and Graeme Harrison. We set out after lunch on the Friday to ‘minister to the fallen’ and to encourage the others! It was very cold that afternoon as we visited the spots where the stunts were conducted by teams of Rovers and other adult leaders. On Good Friday I was due to report to a certain map reference to check rucksack contents. But when I got there, I found that the others had the situation well under control. It was quite surprising the loads that some of the venturers had packed that morning. Quite a few items were put on one side for collection the following Monday when the hide had been completed. I was glad of my flask of tea. On the Saturday the weather this time was quite glorious. I wore my English “senior scout” beret complete with the District Senior Scout Leader’s plume. I had left my proper scout hat in the car as one might have guessed. I had sun cream with me. I came across Bruce and Marcia Ellis. They are chiropractors in Gisborne and are very much involved in the very successful 1st Gisborne scout group. The Macedon Ranges are blessed with several well-functioning venturer units under the leadership of people like Bruce, Rose Moait (Macedon Ranges) and David Bachelor from Woodend. The good weather rendered our ministrations quite unnecessary. I was glad to find that I could still keep up the pace of hiking. I was now “under command for movement” at Cliff Dent’s beck and call. My, how the pendulum had swung! He had come with his wife, Pat, and they set up a large square tent, offering me space for any gear that was not convenient for me to stow in the hike tent or the car. Whereas I had used the car quite a bit back in 1990, this time I hiked around on my own two feet. On the Sunday after I had been to church in Trentham, I wore my scout hat and soon came to be known as “B-P” by some of the Rover staff. The traditional scout hat had been replaced by something akin to the Australian Akubra, but it was not popular. It was odd that a movement that should have been concerned about sunstroke and the like should make this change and become almost a hatless youth group. But I showed them what a true scout wears or wore! The leaders’ camp was quite well set up with a kitchen, marquee, generated electric power and Rain had been forecast and it began Sunday afternoon continuing into the evening and all Another view of the Heathmont Rover Crew’s stunt 279 night. There were those who said, “This should test them”! The rain had eased by Monday morning but unfortunately Pat and Cliff’s tent did not have a waterproof ground sheet or a sealed one and my case of spare clothes got quite wet, but by then it did not matter. I think membership of the lodge was restricted to warranted scouters, but many of its members were no longer active in the movement. On the last Monday of February each year the lodge holds a “uniform night,” to which many people, masons and otherwise, are invited. The sun had come out, unlike the previous year when it had rained solidly over Easter. I packed up the car and drove home. I was to find over the next couple of days that that car was about to give up the ghost as we prepared to trade it in for a new one. I had been fortunate that it had not let me down either going to Barry’s Reef, church or coming home. Ken Brewster Perhaps because I had met up with him again, Ken invited me to his home in Gardiner not far from where I was used to play bridge on alternate Wednesdays – another of the “hobbies” I had taken up on retirement. Ken was now a widower. Either at this or a subsequent meeting he asked me to make sure that his eulogy and obituary were correctly presented following his death160. Girls had attended the 1990 hide but I had no special memory of them other than they often came along as a “social” patrol with little intention of taking part in the stunts with any cut throat enthusiasm. But they did have a humanising affect on the boys, who were nowhere near as “macho” as I recalled them to be. I have not attended a Hoadley Hide since 1999, although I was given several opportunities. I had always been impressed by Ken. You knew where you stood with him. I guess he was a bit humourless, but he ran a first class group, 10th Malvern. He used to be in charge of the Easter camping at Gilwell and never found it funny when flags were “souvenired,” particularly a 10th Malvern one! He knew his scouting backward and would generally be in the panel at a conference when it came to answering questions from the floor. Baden-Powell Lodge Although Lord Baden-Powell was never a mason, scout lodges sprang up in most Commonwealth countries. A significant number of the commissioners in Victoria seemed to be members. At each jamboree there would be a special night for members of the craft, in rather a similar to the Gilwell Reunion night. Helping in BHQ Sometime earlier in the year I had written to the Chief Commissioner, John Ravenhall, offering a day a week if I could be of use. I did not receive a reply for some time. When I did, the offer was accepted with enthusiasm. I was asked to report to BHQ on a day to be fixed. I had walked the roads of the Hoadley Hide with Doug Waldron. He was to pass his first degree in the craft on 26th April, so I accepted the invitation of the Honourable Michael BadenPowell, then Master of the Baden-Powell Lodge, to this induction night. I think I had attended a B-P lodge meeting earlier in my Masonic career. On this occasion I met up with some good friends, including Michael, namely Paul Thomas, John Noke and Ken Brewster. I had my first day on Monday, 5th July, 1999. On that occasion I had a lift by car to Melbourne but on subsequent Mondays I travelled by train. Concessions for Seniors’ were limited to Tuesday through Thursday, so I had to pay full fare which was refunded by the HQ. 160 When Ken died, his memorial service was at the church where he had worshipped most of his life. James Jacoby was the sole eulogist. 280 of invitations for the Queen’s Scout certificate presentation at Government House. Vice-regal invitations were limited to three per Queen’s Scout, but sometimes my fingers would slip and fourth relation would be very grateful! Headquarters staff had once consisted of a general secretary and probably one typiste. In addition, there were three field commissioners who were responsible for assisting scouting in the country regions. By 1999, these three fulltime appointees were working in the headquarters and no longer acting as “travelling salesmen.” One of these positions was held by Neil. By 1999, “IT” had taken a hold in management across the world. Scouting did not escape this medium. The “floor below” seemed to have quite a team of IT experts or those in training. Slowly scouting records became computerised with all the advantages and disadvantages that followed. Sometimes the program or unit would be “down,” and we would have to wait upon the pleasure of the IT boys to sort it out. Apart from being relatively thorough and methodical with administration, I had developed reasonable typing skills ever since becoming a commerce teacher and needing to teach this skill in schools. Hence I was asked to enter up training records and the like. On that first day I addressed and prepared minutes to be sent out to the training team or a training section. I was also shown how to put together the “show bags” that were handed out at Stage 1 courses. The headquarters’ computers were an advance on the one that I had inherited from my place of work. At the end of the year my son and daughter-in-law “dragged” me into the next century getting me to buy a new computer, but such was the pace of IT development that that machine became superseded in no time. My present one has a memory capacity that I do not think I will ever be able to fully use! But my specialty was with photo-copying. The Association had a modern machine that was able to do nearly anything that was imaginable from copying back-to-back to making overhead projection transparencies. I terminated my attendance at BHQ when the “powers that be” decided to sell the city office and move out to Mount Waverley. Despite the nearby station, well over several kilometres away, there was no ready public transport and the time came to take off my hat, yet again! Each Monday I would arrive sometime after nine, work through until lunch and then leave in time to catch a train back to Gisborne. I began to sit with a particular group of chaps on the “up” train but a different one on the “down” one. Amongst the latter was Derek Guille, a well-known ABC TV and radio announcer. I was given a farewell lunch and I knew that I had made a small contribution. There were others that came in on a similar basis, especially Lillian Beard. For lunch I would go to a nearby café and have a vegetarian focaccia, together with a chocolatebit biscuit. In this way the waitresses knew my predictable needs without further explanation. Following that I would walk around the block before returning to my “demanding” duties. In this manner over the nest few years I got to know the BHQ staff very well. They were all dedicated to the job. Some very interesting queries came up for the team to answer. One of my most interesting tasks was to administer the receipt and then the mailing out 281 The cover page from an early selection of articles to assist leaders of the then Senior Scout section (15 to 18 yearolds). The booklet was produced by Richard Franklin and Grenville Kirton, with an introduction by Bob Swinton, who was then the BHQ Commissioner for Senior Scouts A later publication when the Venturer section, now 14 plus, had been created 282 windows of the Hoadley Hall as quite a few non-masons and ladies were invited to attend the meeting. Masonic aprons were worn but the ceremonial was cut to the minimum. Chapter 57 Gilwell visits and the Leaders’ Manual What with my Mondays at Branch headquarters, the year 2000 saw me being busier in Scouting than I had been for many years. I endeavoured to get to the training team weekend in time to witness Cliff Dent receive his honourable charge as an Assistant Leader Trainer, but I failed in that endeavour. But I did offer him the three beads that I had worn until I was upgraded to Leader Trainer in 1973. I worked out that I had now been on the team for 33 years161. The highlight of the meeting was the series of talks as leaders described the lives and contributions of four outstanding scout leaders, which of course included Lord Baden-Powell, Arch Hoadley, W. D. Kennedy and Lord Somers. It was eerie to have present the 1999 lodge master, the Hon. Michael Baden-Powell who is direct in line for the title should his brother pre-decease him. Pre-dinner drinks took place and the ‘banquet’ was held in the Delacombe Dining Centre. I was not to speak until after the third course. I was concerned that my voice might not hold out, but it did. I gather that what I said was generally well received. I have to confess that I did not attend many of the sessions, but spent time with John Noke putting together more facts and stories for my talk in a few weeks time at a meeting of the Baden-Powell Lodge at Gilwell. I was to be the after-dinner speaker. My topic was the campsite’s history. The weather being appropriate, the first part of the evening was given over to a campfire in the training ground campfire circle which is overshadowed by the hand carved bird-emblem, which in turn bears the signature of our Founder. The following Monday, I helped process the envelopes that advised the Year 2000 good service awards to the many recipient leaders. We were both irritated when the Chief Commissioner added some names to the list. A week later, we discovered why this secrecy had been necessary. We then recessed to the nearby chapel. I had never been to a night service in it. Flood lamps behind the altar shone up into the trees above giving the place a magical feel. In addition, an electronic organ had been installed, which gave great encouragement to the singing of the hymns. Gilwell Masonic Lodge gathering To celebrate the 70th anniversary of its foundation, the B-P Masonic Lodge held a meeting at Gilwell. Graeme McCoubrie had made sure that I was invited and the bargain I made was that Shirley and I would be accommodated in the Spring Lodge. I was asked, as I have said, to give a talk on Gilwell. Queen’s Scouts In the course of the year I was invited to badge ceremonies in honour of Andrew Newell, David Lapthorne, and Andrew Ellis. On Saturday 7th October, these lads were amongst many who received their certificates at Government House from the Governor of Victoria. Shirley and I made good time to Gilwell using the newly opened “CityLink” tollway that cuts so much time off the trip as there are no traffic lights except when one leaves the freeway. I am not sure why efforts had been made to cover the 161 When I arrived I found that the ceremony had been moved indoors as the weather was Now 43 in the year of writing this history 283 errors. I even took the manuscript to one of our time-share weeks at Nathalia. becoming inclement. Years ago, the recipient scouts would be drilled at the 2nd Field Alston appeared to be happy with my approach but would probably have settled for something a little less in the form of an itemised manual. We would swap chapters by email and he thought nothing of printing off chapters on the association’s photocopier. On the 14th November I was invited to Coral and Altston Park’s home in Geelong where we worked on the index, thus completing the task. It was reduced to a CD that was then made generally available throughout the movement. Alston, who had been in insurance, was a very skilled administrator. 1st Gisborne Queen Scouts at Government House Regiment’s artillery training depot, often under Warrant Officer Class 1, Joe Monahan. With the sort of hob-nailed boots that were in vogue at the time, the long rank marching forward could make quite a bit of noise that marred the whole exercise. I conspired with John Ravenhall that we would go to Gilwell Park for the 2001 training team conference together and just for the day. Cliff Dent and Barry Marshall were both there. The presentation was on relationships and I noted that I would have been grateful to hear that lecture “prior” to my marriage! With the change in arrangements caused by the rain was the need to deploy chairs. While many hands made light work of it, it did not add to the dignity of the ceremony. I have not recorded who the Governor was at the time, although John Landy was quite likely to then be in office. Richard Tracy This scouter from Canada needed a “host,” so I was a natural to handle that role. In case he wanted to see around Melbourne, I took the car and parked it at BHQ where there was enough space for interlopers or the “non-professionals.” Leaders’ Manual Earlier that year, Neil presented me with a copy of the then Leaders’ Manual a hotch-potch of writings that were meant to provide a leader with all he or she would need to know in terms of protocol and procedures, such as insurance and the purchase and sale of property. I walked across to The University of Melbourne and presented myself in the Union building. There I was briefed by a lady professor with the aid of a poorly maintained overhead projector as to the course that Richard was visiting. Then, moving into the Union dining room, I met up with my guest, who seemed to have no difficulty in recognising the “tall one.” Informative in itself, it required editing and being brought on to a common form of writing. I accepted this challenge, but warned Neil and Alston Park that I would wish to make it look like an army training manual with numbered paragraphs and cross references. Richard was the “Directéur General” of the Conseil Provincial du Quebec. This was the “protestant” scout organisation in Quebec as distinct from the much larger Roman Catholic one. The function must have been only “drinkies,” for we walked back to BHQ and I So I commenced the task of correcting the script, putting it all into the same grammatical tense and correcting spelling and typographical 284 left him with Dion Ellis, the then Executive Manager and General Secretary. Dion then took the three of us out to lunch which I found to be a great upgrade on my vegetarian focaccia! Returning to Barry Street, Richard made his way about the premises “bleeding” information from the many employees who only seemed too glad to chat with him. It was a breath of fresh air from across the Pacific. 285 did not occur to me, but a seat was found on the side of the auditorium. It was then that Jon Chapter 58 The Melbourne Gang Show’s fifty year story Gang Show story Having completed the Leaders’ Manual, I was then approached about updating the history of The Melbourne Gang Show. The first 25 years had been written by Andrew Taylor, but the fiftieth anniversary would take place in 2002. The idea was to produce a presentable history to coincide with the show and the reunion dinner. Jon Willis, Melbourne Gang Show producer Willis sought me out and presented me with a copy of the program. Presumably he had now heard that I was to write the book, but I had not been in touch with him at that stage. I had been a member of the cast in 1961 when the show played to full louses at the Palais Theatre, St. Kilda as a result of some very effective promotion. I had produced concert shows at Mirboo North Warragul and Belmont, but on a very amateurish scale. The music and skits of Ralph Reader in the English show had But for some reason I did not seriously start on the history until the end of the year. It was not until September that I could sit with Shirley Bean, who was supervising the Gang Show reunion arrangements and get some clarification as to my charter and what the committee thought they would like. Late in November a sort of reunion was held at Barry Street for Gang Show enthusiasts and this was very useful for me to get atmosphere, help and information. While there was excitement about a book, few were offering to write for it. But I was starting to get some response and particularly with photographs. Eric Black’s funeral On Tuesday 14th August I attended the funeral of Colonel Eric. E. R. Black, who had been General Secretary of the Association in Victoria for some years. He had the distinction of holding the equivalent rank in both the British Army and the RAF162. Eric was a most capable administrator. He had been an area commissioner and it was he that while visiting the Preliminary Course that I was on at Herring Isle in the River Yarra, that he fell in when the dingy capsized. The dust cover of the book by Ralph Reader of his story of the London Gang Show been part of my scouting life and culture. I used them in my shows to a great extent. I thought that I should attend a performance of the current Gang Show and, without advising anyone, I drove to the Darebin Arts Centre for a matinee performance. Here I met up with Lillian Beard who directed me to where I could get a ticket. That the matinee might be sold out 162 286 The RAF equivalent rank to Colonel is Group Captain He was the secretary at the time of the 1964/5 Dandenong Jamboree when it had been suggested that my father, who had just retired, be brought in to administer the jamboree. Rather than that role, my father indicated that it would be more efficient overall for him to assist Eric, thus releasing one of the field commissioners for the role – a person who would be much more conversant with Scouting’s ways. Ken came to write quite a few of the songs that became incorporated in the “old style” of the show in lieu of some of Ralph Reader’s from the UK. In the fifties, the Melbourne show used material about two years behind the UK Golders Green one, even to the skits as well as the songs. Some of Reader’s material, particularly the skits, were too much in the British culture and lacked the Australian flavour. But it was the music and singing that Ken handled. But with Eric’s death, Scouting lost another of “the old brigade,” and another person at whose feet “I had knelt” in my earlier scouting days. Of the same ilk were “Narse” Lesser and “Kenno” Kennedy. The story goes that when the Melbourne show hired professional musicians and Ken was to conduct them, he had to be enrolled in the musicians’ union before he could proceed. The back of Ken’s head was a familiar scene to those who went to the St. Kilda Palais or other venues to see the show as he conducted the orchestra. Ken Bayly, OAM I had my first discussion about the book with Ken on Monday, 26th November. Ken and I had known each other through both being scoutmasters. He had been the leader for 11th Essendon. It flourished under his leadership. Ken had remained single and lived in his parents’ home in Wood Street Essendon, which he inherited upon their death. By 1961, Ken was one of the key members of the Melbourne Gang Show team. For a start he was a skilled pianist and organist. He had the capacity to compose songs and transpose them from key to key as required163. My memory is that he was in charge of the 1961 show or one of the trio that produced it. He and I would talk about the history of the show before and after lunch. I took copious notes and started to grasp the extent and success of the show, particularly through Ken’s contributions. A photo of him wearing his Order of Australia medal sat proudly on the mantelpiece. Ken was able to tell me about the two overseas trips of the Gang Show cast, namely to the Philippines and Thailand. In the former, the cast could use English as their medium, but not to the same extent in Thailand. Here many of the skits had to be developed in dumb show so that the Thais could appreciate them. Ken Bayly, taken from the 1961 Gang Show program Both of these overseas trips had been outstanding successes, but they were a big security risk even in those times. A problem with the flight home from the Philippines brought Ken’s organising ability to the fore. I 163 With the introduction of computers, this became a very simple task but not in 1961 when it would have to be done manually 287 rather gathered that the airline executives at the airport virtually handed the running and placement of the scouts that night into Ken’s hands! Two days later I had lunch at the home of Barry Meyers who, prior to his medical condition, had played a big part as well. Unfortunately by now Barry had extreme difficulty in expressing himself other than through printing in large letters. How tragic it was for him and Mrs. Meyers, after such an artistic life. I was now able to type up the narratives I had received as a result of my appeal to past members of the cast and back stage and also able to put down in print the accounts of the overseas trips as well as the home shows. I also had access to the programs for the fifty years and these were also brought together in their own chapter. Early in February, Sandra Pretty gave me the story of her part, particularly the two overseas trips. I now started to become aware that when the show changed its program policy of mixed songs and sketches to that of a couple of themed musicals, there was regret by many whose action was to withdraw rather than be involved with the new approach. Change is always both inevitable and hard to accommodate. In due course I would be talking to the current production team, Bob Motton and Jon Willis. The Gang Show story now started to develop a momentum of its own. The deadline was the reunion dinner, when presumably it would be on sale, if not part of the “entrance fee,” which would guarantee a number of sales. In addition to my invitations, people started to come out of ‘hiding’ to be involved and to contribute to the project. But I found myself being organised! Did I really wish to be organised like this? It all seemed to be deja vue. I remember a similar instance when Tony Holland, then GSM of 2nd Warragul, directed me to find enough senior scouts to help me after school to go to a property where there were poles to be loaded on a semi-trailer. These poles would form the uprights for our tower at the 1964/5 Dandenong jamboree. Robert Motton, Director Melbourne Gang Show On Monday, 11th February, I was involved in a meeting with David Jefferson, treasurer of the reunion committee, but who had been very active in past casts, particularly in a role as the chairman of the governors in “Goodbye Mr. Chips.” Also at the meeting was Ken Bayly. Clear decisions were now made on format, numbers of copies and deadlines. Back to 2002. On the following Monday I had morning tea with Doug Edmonds, now a priest in the Anglican Church based at Lancefield. Doug had followed me at Geelong as area training commissioner when I stepped down from that appointment. Doug had regularly been in the Gang Show cast and production team. I recorded his version of the events. These interviews would be typed back and submitted to the interviewee for comment before they were included in my draft of the book. Only a few years later, Ken Bayly was to die tragically from spinal cancer. I visited him in what had formerly been the Masonic Hospital where I found him in good and optimistic spirits, but pneumonia laid him low and he succumbed. The current producers of the Gang Show made a special tribute to him in the next show in Victoria. With his death, quite a chapter in the story of Gang Show died with 288 I then received a request to see the Chief Commissioner, Alston Park. When I did so he advised that the Association would not publish the book. Alston and I agreed that the reason the book was not going ahead was that there was now no money to finance it. him, although he had not been directly associated with the show for some years. Betty Stewart A sideline to my research now came from the suggestion that I contacted a Betty Stewart who had been retained in 1961 to promote that year’s show. She kindly sent me a copy of her autobiography and I started to get an understanding of what her role had been. Remember that that year, when I was in the cast, all tickets were virtually sold for the five-performance show at the Palais Theatre, St. Kilda in the days when that theatre held three thousand seats! Betty had also won the promotion role with The Beatles when they visited Australia at the beginning of their fame. I decided my efforts had not been in vain. I had learnt a lot and met some very interesting people in the process. The story of the second twentyfive years and an overview of the fifty were in draft form. Copies were given to key people in the movement, should the information in them ever be needed in the future. BHQ to move again Two months later I heard the first rumour that the headquarters in Barry Street was on the market with a view to HQ moving to premises in Mount Waverley. The location was very close to the freeway and the only practical access would be by car and from that road. Public transport would not be available. The Mount Waverley railway station was about two kilometres away. I learnt that when Betty first visited a rehearsal she was so impressed with the vitality, enthusiasm and competence of the scouts in the cast and back stage that she went out of her way as a theatre promoter to get the then media of the press, radio and fledgling TV on side. Clearly her efforts were successful. I well remember a photo appearing in the then evening paper, “The Herald.” This had to be the result of her enthusiasm. I would have the privilege of meeting Betty on the occasion of the last night of the 2002 Melbourne Gang Show. The move was not popular with Hoadley Region in particular. Also those leaders who found getting into the city, particularly staying after work, fairly easy were also directly affected. It even led to some of the long-serving employees considering their position. The draft stage For me it meant the end of my offer to do a day a week. This was to occur with my last day on Monday, 7th October, 2002. I had enjoyed every minute of this service, although at times I was asked to do some very “menial” tasks. Putting together packages of various training handbooks was one of them. I had to get down on the floor to get at some of the stacks of these booklets. But if I made people’s job easier, then I was quite satisfied. I am not recording all the meetings, but as drafts were produced others corrected errors and made suggestions. On Friday 8th March I was at BHQ and ran off some six copies of the almost final draft and forwarding them to key people, particularly Shirley Bean, who was chairing the Gang Show reunion committee. At some stage after that I received the information that the money that had been set aside to pay for the printing of the book had been spent on decorations and other aspects of the reunion dinner. The treasurer had not been aware of this information. No one could ever convince me that the move was better from a convenience point of view, even though the facilities were somewhat 289 But after the poor manner in which the committee had handled the production of the book, I decided not to attend the Gang Show reunion dinner which I am sure was a great success and I was the loser. It has not been convenient to attend any Gang Show in the past few years but I am sure its success continues to lie in the good hands of Rob and Jon and their teams. similar. I had lost my car park in the city for one thing! Anniversary Gang Show This took place in June with the final night on Saturday, 29th. I was given the opportunity to meet Betty Stewart at the home where she was staying while down from the north. She was the sort of person I expected to meet – genuine and a person with an eye for talent, ability and enthusiasm. Government House Two days before my last day at the Barry Street headquarters, I attended the presentation of Queen Scout certificates by the Governor. Once again, the ceremony had to be switched indoors into the ballroom but this time the authorities were ready for the switch. Unfortunately the number of venturers receiving this high award has declined in proportion to the drop in numbers overall in the movement. Only a few years previously there was a need to have two presentations a year. The scout and guide associations cooperate in the annual award day. Later that night I attended the anniversary Gang Show. From the moment I entered the foyer of the Bessen Theatre I was made a fuss of. I was the guest of the Chief Commissioner and was led to my seat. The first half was a musical on the theme of Hansel and Gretel, while the second half was traditional Gang Show. I was rather pleased to see that some of the photos that I had emailed to the producers had been used in the slide show part. After the show there was supper and I was led backstage to meet the cast. I was taken by surprise when Rob Motton invited me to speak to the cast. I have rarely been lost for words but Some of the local Queen’s Scouts whose badge presentations I had attended included: Michael Proctor, Matthew Boustead, Cameron Newell and Mark Jellis. I was not really ready for this one. But I spotted a Braemar College boy, Alistair Frearson of 1st Gisborne, and also some others from the same group. I gave them a special mention. 290 Australia From open country wide, From rugged mountain-side, Sing we a song of our native land; From crowded city street; From stately forest deep, Sing of our native land To you, Australia, we pledge ourselves a-new, Ever in your service to work our whole lives through, To you Australia, land that shall ever be Home for all men to live in liberty. So shall our anthems rise Upwards, to summer skies, And spread their message from shore to shore; Till all the world shall see Why we are proud to be, Each one, ever Australia’s son, Great land we love Ken Bayly 291 Chapter 59 An “elder statesman” and “Fifty years of training in 45-minutes”! Fifty years of training in 45-minutes As I was getting close to being 68, I wondered what my future in scouting would be. However, Wayne Myers, now the branch commissioner for training asked me and several others, such as Lillian Beard, to continue as members of the training team (and honorary commissioners) with the unofficial title of being an “elder statesmen164.” I was the pre-dinner speaker at the 2003 training team weekend and followed John Glover who presented a masterly presentation on “Anger Management.” I did not see that my talk had to be serious. I even dressed for the part, wearing shorts and garter tabs that Lillian Beard kindly got from Heritage. I read from large print sheets and someone operated the overhead projector which had images of what the scout uniform was (and perhaps should still be!). I had also produced photos from the Gilwell book so that everyone could understand phrases such as “The Council Rock” and “The Somers Gate.” Strangely enough, the Citizen Military Force (now the Army Reserve) had dubbed several of us senior but retired officers as “tribal elders.” There was a view apparently that we had a history of experiences that we could share with the younger and current members to their benefit. The degree to which the army used us was dependent on the attitude of the commanding officer, but the scout approach legitimised my future attendance without question at training team functions. I had warned those present that if they were not laughing within ten minutes I would stop but I had a task to stop them laughing me away from what I was trying to say. I think we all enjoyed it, but I only got half-way through the presentation. How would I be able to persuade Wayne to let me have another slot twelve months later! But one thing I did draw the line at and that was to acquire the contemporary uniform. At first the changes were negligible, namely a collar to the shirt and consistent wearing of long trousers, but this would change with a dramatic review of the uniform a few years later. Wayne then presented my certificate and I think the silver wood badge beads, which meant that I had moved from the “active” to the “inactive” side of scouting as both an honorary commissioner and an “elder statesman” I attended the August training day and rather surprised Wayne Myers as he had my 50-year long service badge and certificate at home, believing I was an apology. I did not think I was eligible until August but I had been credited back to the date I donned uniform in February, 1952. I suggested to Wayne that at the forthcoming conference in February I might take a session on my fifty years of being trained and training. This was accepted, as was an article for the monthly “Australian Scout” on the same topic. 164 Wayne Myers presents Graham Farley with his miniature silver wood badge beads and dubs him an “elder statesman”! I also used the words, “Tribal Elder”! 292 Around the room were the proposed mock-up uniforms for each section as the changes were being canvassed nation-wide. I, the traditionalist, saw no reason to change from the spirit of B-P’s South African police uniform but there were those who felt the “military” uniform was holding back membership. One of the poorest aspects of the exercise was that on the referendum sheet, there was nowhere for the current uniform to be ticked as still the most appropriate. East Tarago Senior Scouts on board a sea-going yacht on their annual expedition 1967, when I was in the UK. Graham Dorling (dark brown shirt) was the leader on the day 293 Some years later at another training weekend I got a clearer understanding of the differences in approach of the Joey leaders to that of the older sections. I still think the Joey leaders were very thin-skinned but they probably thought I was rude and indelicate! We have since made up! Chapter 60 Gilwell Reunion, Lodge night, and Ken Brewster’s memorial service Gilwell Reunion A number of the training team who had resigned were farewelled at the same dinner. It is just as well I keep a fairly accurate diary or I would refer to matters that did not take place at the 2004 Gilwell Reunion. I felt that I would like to attend one, having had such a close association prior to marriage. Shirley and I had a day in effect in the country, having a picnic lunch at the park in Gembrook. B-P Lodge uniform night Barry Marshall was then living in South Gisborne. I agreed to go to the meeting out at Glen Waverley if Barry drove. I did not think my uniform was suitable, even though it was the annual “uniform night.” I wore black tie. In the event, my uniform would have been seen to be very up to date when compared with some of the outfits that were worn. There were no grounds for ladies to be excluded, although the craft is a male-only activity. There was no Masonic meeting or secrets revealed as such. I presume the presentation of the annual rover award was made, although I made no reference to it. Gilwell Reunion 1968 I was able to attend the annual meeting of the reunion, although I am sure that I was always welcome at any of the events. These still included a social dance and a working bee. One of the traditional events at the AGM was for leaders to stand and sit as the years are counted back to when they did their wood badge. I thought I might have a strong chance to be “the last man standing,” but “Mac” Stidston still stood after I sat down, he having completed his course before World War II. In the South there was a sing song with the meal. Strings of scout scarves decorated the ceiling. I think there was also a special badge and memento menu. Being at that distance from Macedon, it was quite a late night before I was home. Queen’s Scout Alistair Frearson received his Queen’s Scout badge at the 1st Gisborne Scout Hall, but many speakers were drowned out by the rain on the roof. But Alistair, who had done a lot of acting and had been in the Gang Show, demonstrated how to pitch his voice and be clearly heard over the very loud pitter-patter above us. Training weekend, 2004 I offered the second half of my 2003 presentation but as an after-dinner offering. However, I managed to upset the Joey section. I must have made some comment about their role being to produce a waiting list for the cub section, something that the cub section did for scouts prior to the introduction of the six-toeight age group. 294 Ken Brewster’s memorial service A well attended memorial service at the Uniting Church where he had led the very successful 10th Malvern Group was held for Ken, whose life had drawn to a close. James Jacoby, onetime DC for Malvern, gave the eulogy on behalf of us all. Ken had previously made sure that I had an accurate account of his life both in the State Electricity Commission and in Scouting, but the family asked for just the one speaker and James did it in style. Ken Brewster 295 of this one was the Jindalee Jamboree in Brisbane at the end of 1967. But I still had forty years of scouting left to describe. Chapter 61 I write for the “Australian Scout” With the appointment of the new Chief Commissioner, Bob Taylor, there was also a significant change to the magazine. The committee’s membership was varied and the new policy was not to look back but to look forward. My articles, whether read or not, were put in the first category. However, the committee also proposed that if I finished the articles and they were accepted in that form, then CD’s would be offered through the magazine. Kingsley Davis was the committee member to liaise with me on this offer. I had for some years been writing four-page articles about my citizen army experiences for a quarterly “in-house” artillery magazine. I now offered to do something similar for the scout magazine. Dian Sheedy, who edited the magazine as the full-time employee, accepted the idea and suggested that they be bi-monthly. (This of course is the origin of this CD.) I now had to put together from my early diaries my thoughts and memories of my scouting days from the time that I became an “assistant scoutmaster” in February, 1952. The seeds for my membership had been sown several years earlier by a perceptive “group scoutmaster.” The 101 committee A group of “nameless” leaders now put out 101 recommendations to reform the movement. Rather than maintain the federal system under which the movement was run, the group considered that administration should be centralised. The committee was also concerned with the degree of repetition at the various levels and recommended that either “region” or “district” be abolished. Dian Sheedy presumed that there would be pictorial support to my articles but my store of photographs was limited until I got a 35-mm camera in 1963. Prior to that it had been a “bellows” Kodak 127 and then a “Box Brownie.” These cameras were limited to eight exposures to a film. Neither had focusing lens equipment. It was “point and shoot” and make sure that the subject was far away enough not to be blurred. To the extent that the recommendations in many cases did away with the very appointments of those who would implement them tended to lead to the recommendations being quietly moved to one side. David Jefferson, as editor of “Australian Scout,” gave the recommendations space and support. Little has come of them and probably the emphasis is now on the Committee for the Far Future which in August, 2010, had already started to report back to the movement through the pages of the magazine. I wrote the first drafts. I had found with the army articles that I would rarely use the first draft in the final offer. I would almost re-write it. I then had to put it to one side for a day or two and come back to it, meticulously checking spelling and grammar. It would then be sent by email or CD to Dian and I would wait to see whether it passed the editorial board and was published. Now sixty-one chapters later I am beginning to realise what a long scouting life I have had and enjoyed. Invitations On Sunday, 11th September, Shirley and I in the course of an afternoon drive called in at the course that Pat and Cliff Dent were conducting at the “Pax Hill” camp near Ballarat. I introduced myself as the chap who wrote the The first chapter was printed in the April, 2005, copy. In due course the articles started to appear approximately every other month, but sometimes if Dian was short of material, they appeared monthly. The last chapter appeared in April, 2009, the thirtieth to do so. The subject 296 articles. As a result many of those present knew who I was. all of our camps and ventures and at a very competitive price. Then just before Christmas Shirley and I accepted the invitation to attend the Christmas function at the new branch headquarters. There were addresses by the Chief Commissioner and members of the Branch Executive and every opportunity to “network” and liaise. Robert was always full of tricks. On one train trip as I went to sit down, he slid my scouter’s hat under me! I was not amused, but everyone else seemed to be. 6th St. Kilda was a church group and had been established in place of the traditional Anglican church’s Church of England Boys’ Society. At the 2006 training conference, Cameron Glover, son of John Glover, took the morning session and did it with verve. I was given a slot after dinner to add some more observations about leader training. I had plenty of aids with me, such as my own training handbooks in which I had dutifully drawn my daily sketch. I knew that I had the attention of training team members present, but would have probably preferred the hilarity of a year or two back. One can be too serious at times. I have rarely seen a group of boys take to scouting as that lot did. Investitures could be very emotional with the darkened church, the light of candles on the altar and the consecrated troop flag upon which they made their promise. Having fallen “in love” with scouting at the age of 18, I could understand how these lads felt. The group soon had a thriving cub pack and there was a wonderful spirit amongst everyone concerned. Trish Myers A week later, I drove to Drysdale to attend the funeral of Trish Myers, Wayne’s wife. For years Trish had had bad health, but now her body had finally succumbed although her spirit had remained strong. Like so many funerals, one learnt things that one would have benefited from if known earlier and one also caught up with a lot of friends that one had not seen for some time. A face from the past Watching the news one night I suddenly realised that the person on the screen, the CEO of Timbercorp, was named as Robert Hance. And what was more he looked like the Robert Hance I invested in the 6th St. Kilda scout troop back in 1955165. Robert was the younger brother to John. Their father conducted a grocery in the old style years before supermarkets changed retailing of foods forever. Mr. Hance provided the foodstuffs for 165 See Chapter 3 297 conditioning not working. But I was grateful for the companionship and the lift. Chapter 62 The weather that day was a cold north wind! I provided morning tea and north of Bendigo we were glad of this but we had to battle the elements. In due course we arrived and I reported to the B-P stadium or marquee. Wisely the organisers had erected large “canvas” (especially strong plastic material) with aluminium or metal frames. The Elmore Jamboree and the anniversary city parade Australia hosted a jamboree to coincide with the hundredth anniversary of the birth of Scouting, which can be placed legitimately in both 1907 and 1908, depending on the legalistic approach to its constitutional beginning. I enjoyed morning tea at the jamboree on arrival. Shirley Bean briefed me on what she wanted to happen. In due course we gathered for the lunch and I did my bit. I then sat at the same table as Sally and John Ravenhall and their daughter, Clare, now a doctor. The jamboree was held at Elmore. Elmore was a farming community on the highway between Bendigo and Echuca. Farming field days were held there and consequently there was quite a bit of infrastructure in place such as toilets and showers. This had helped to sway the decision in its favour. After lunch, we were put into groups for a guided tour of the site. I got as far as the Kaleidoscope where Pat and Cliff Dent, with other venturer leaders, were giving scouts a taste of what they could expect in the Venturer section. But the countryside was flat and the campsite was “gridded” with its roads. In winter no doubt the grass was green and if it was a fine day with no wind, the site would have looked more attractive than it was to look during a dry summer on a very windy day. I went for my own walk around the jamboree site, enjoying some hospitality and also admiring the work that Lillian Beard and her team had put into the Heritage section, where BP’s life, uniform and decorations were featured, as were a range of scout and guide uniforms on mannequins. The jamboree was oversubscribed. Its program was to include bus trips to the various facilities around, whether towns such as Bendigo and Echuca or opportunities to sail on the River Murray and the like. The camp fee, which was in the vicinity of a thousand dollars, covered all expenses. I could not help feeling that even in 1952’s money value I did not pay anything like the 2007 sum to attend that jamboree. It was then time to find the rest of the car party and depart but not before walking amongst the many “scouts” returning from their buses and day activities. They were nearly all dressed in their jamboree light blue gear but the wonderful thing about them was that they all displayed smiles and thorough enjoyment. The Elmore jamboree organising team went to a lot of trouble to invite honorary and past leaders on Saturday, 6th January. Further, Shirley Bean, was in touch with me to ask whether I would say grace before the luncheon. Meanwhile we had spent a day in the cold north wind walking amongst dead brown grass and the gridded dirt roads, many of which still showed the effects of showers from previous days. The site bore no resemblance to the Dandenong jamboree of 1964/5 with its rolling greengrassed hills. I managed to get a place in the car that Barry Marshall was travelling in but the weakness of this was that I was in the centre in the back, sitting on a ridge, trying to find the seat belt and having my knees up under my chin. The lack of comfort was compounded by the air 298 Gilwell Reunion, 2007 At Parliament House this scene of uniformed members was recorded on film and the like and became quite memorable. By then “scouts” were wearing shirts with sleeves the colour of their section. Leaders were in blue. I still wore my very much “out of date” uniform, but I was not alone in this. For the second year I listed the reunion in my diary, but this time picked up Barry Marshall on my way. Apart from attracting the attention of an over-eager puppy at our refreshment stop, we made good time and got there for lunch. At the AGM I was still not the oldest to have obtained a wood badge. John Noke, warden of Gilwell, had the audacity to be present, having got his beads in 1940! One day the honour may come! We drove home safely. Training weekend I again managed to get on the speaker’s list and I was to be given a slot after dessert at the evening’s dinner. During the afternoon, Gary Durant, OAM, gave a stimulating talk on the activities side of the movement. In the predinner drink period, I endeavoured to make peace with the Joey section leaders whom I had “offended” (in their opinion) a year or so back. State Parliament and the City of Melbourne had combined to help stage this event and the gathering was addressed by key parliamentarians and later by the Lord Mayor. In due course, the dessert was served and I was given my opportunity. Perhaps many had heard my thoughts on the history of training before but there were still valuable aspects to be presented. Leaders were still not completing their training within the required time if at all. Perhaps “history” might give a few pointers as to why. In nearby Fitzroy Gardens, there were special displays and entertainment for those present. Food was also available. The queue for people to walk across the “monkey bridge” was too long to spot the end. It was a great day and the idea was an inspiring one. City parade Lodge night again Perhaps it was not listed as a march as such, but a gathering of all sections of the movement with view to moving up Bourke Street and congregate on and at the foot of the steps of Parliament House was arranged. I went into the city by train, finding other uniformed members on the same train. I drove to Footscray and Barry Marshall drove from there on. We arrived in plenty of time and this year I wore my old uniform – but there were older ones there – impossible one might say! Joan and Russell Brad introduced me to two leaders who had been virtually the last leaders of 6th St. Kilda, the group that I had helped to start in 1955. They shared with me some of the factors that led to its demise. In Swanston Street I joined up with Pat and Cliff Dent amongst others, and moved off when the procession began. The movement’s members virtually filled the width of Bourke Street and with the new colourful uniforms this made quite a sight. Once again the committee failed to appreciate the distance that some visitors may have travelled and the evening showed no signs of finishing when Barry and I excused ourselves. 299 It can take anything up to ninety minutes to get home – much the same time as it does from the new headquarters near by. directory of all the groups and districts in those years. In the event, I struck the right chord and introduced some levity into the evening. I was surprised that there were hardly any leaders from “my era,” but of course that was forty years earlier. It is also questionable as to how much “history” people want to absorb – the present presents enough challenges. But then history was my second method in teaching and it was the history of Britain when I visited there in 1951 that was one of the key factors in attracting me to my vocation. Apart from attending part of the Saturday for the training team weekend and also the uniform night at the lodge, 2008 was not a “scouty” year for me, but my articles continued to appear in “The Australian Scout” so I kept in touch that way. I did get to the end of year Christmas HQ function, Bruce and Marsha Ellis kindly providing transport. As Bruce was assistant to Cliff Dent, now Branch Commissioner for Venturers, there was a “working dinner” at a Chinese restaurant after the socialising at BHQ. Brian Geary uses an email program that makes it appear that the recipient is receiving a personal email from him. I know how it is done, as I use the system in hotmail in particular. Whether he really wanted me to attend the Personal Leader Trainer day at 1st Ringwood I will never know, but I drove there. I would have used the train but it involved quite a walk. Brian had attracted some three hundred active “scout” leaders and we all received the excellent program, including meals and refreshments. Despite having been to Scotland for ten weeks to welcome my first grandson, I was passing through a period of insecurity. I found that I needed a mobile phone to keep in touch with wife and medical resources. I had had my pacemaker fitted for some time before going overseas and for some reason I began to doubt its efficacy. I do not wish to experience anything like this period of anxiety in my life again. The medical solution was that I needed to be on fluid tablets! The bushfires of 8th February, 2009, and the dreadful loss of life, led Brian Geary, the branch training commissioner to move the training weekend from Gilwell to a safer location. I did not attend it or the lodge uniform night. Geelong anniversary dinner The “Australian Scout” magazine changed its committee and policy during the course of the year. It had been flagged at the end of 2008 that this would happen. It was hoped that the magazine would go to all youth members as well. About the only way to guarantee this was to post it to the addressee, but that can be expensive. The pages of the new style were more colourful and full of photographs of scoot activities and “scouts” being active. But, as I have said, my articles were suspended with a view to them being available on CD in due course. On Friday, 7th August, 2009, I was the guest or “after dinner” speaker at Geelong’s anniversary function. I gathered that Wayne Gunn, the Region Commissioner, hoped that I could retell some of the history of the region. This I could in detail for the period 1967 – 1974 as I found that I had kept some key documents, such as a At the end of year Christmas drinks at BHQ, Bob Taylor, CC, strongly explained the changes that would occur in the regions in 2010 with the districts becoming larger entities, closer to the former areas or regions. Bob also continued to emphasise the movement’s slow improvement in enrolments. Such figures can easily hide the I found myself as an Honorary Commissioner on the distribution list for the monthly email that came from BHQ. This email was always packed with news and events. Who ever introduced it had a winner. 300 loss rate. I found myself at the same Chinese restaurant with the Ellis and Dent adults but this time there was no business meeting for the Venturer section. I attended the 2010 training team weekend for the time that I could spare. I missed Cliff Dent’s elevation to be a Leader Trainer at the flag break ceremony. On the Sunday morning, Bob Browne, now Branch Commissioner for Faith, presented a first class summary of how Scouting should approach its Duty to God. In my opinion, Australian Scouting had never been comfortable in how it presented and followed through on this subject, being wary of offence to the point where prayers and Scouts Owns often lacked any substance. Bob showed us all “the way ahead” in a very confident manner. 301 together took place on Sunday, 10th October, 2010 – known by some as “the tenth of the tenth of the tenth”! Chapter 63 The Committee for the Far Future I had read about this committee being established by Bob Taylor with Margaret Tremewan as its chair. At the training conference, Kinglsey Davis had a copy of one of the first documents to come from it. I was able to obtain one from David Hunt, who, with Lachlan Shields, had analysed and presented a statistical summary of where the movement was now at and where it had been. I was due to attend and got as far as Southern Cross railway station in Melbourne only to find out that engineering works on the line meant that road coaches had been contracted in lieu. Having used such a conveyance to get to Warragul I knew it would add about an hour to the timetable and by then my presence would be almost too late. I phoned Jenny with my apologies. I gathered that the aim set for the committee was to maximise conditions whereby the movement could expand back at least to its peak enrolment but at the very least enable youth members to have access to a geographically convenient scout group. I have been assured that the function was a great success. This story of mine could not be much more up to date as a consequence. And then I heard from Ron Brooks, one of the first Queen Scouts at Warragul in 1964, who is in Victoria, and wishes to catch up with me. I think it will only end with death! An article in the monthly magazine also set out the preliminary results of the geographical study, listing those municipal areas where scout groups needed to be either established or reestablished. It reminded me of similar undertakings by the Anglican Church and the Masonic organisation. Conclusion I have come to the chronological end or point in my scouting life story, with little else to do but keep in contact and give every support that I can to the movement’s future development. Inevitably this will be with a strong streak of nostalgia but it is to be hoped that I too can look forward to the “far future.” The beauty of the committee was that there is now a group to which ideas can be fed and where they can be reviewed without emotion and with some expectation of having branch back up in their possible implementation. The next and last chapter deals with some observations from my sixty years membership with the hope that I can be objective and not live too much in the past. I have had the privilege of having had two meetings with David and one with Lachlan, where I endeavoured to present my thoughts based on nearly sixty years of membership. When I became a scouter, the Boy Scouts Association was not yet fifty years old. It has now had its 100th anniversary! Stop Press. Joan Brad has succeeded Brian Geary as Branch Commissioner for Adult Leader Training and Development. Training will now be “Ace”! The ETSST and ETVU “guys” from Warragul are planning their 50th reunion on 16th March, 2013, the very day of the month that the troop started in 1963 at Crossover! B-P Revue Reunion Jenny and Don Leeson organised a reunion of the producers, casts and “back room” personnel who had been associated with the B-P revues that started with the one in 1965. This get 302 first hip hole! I found out what a “La la” was. I found I could boil water over a fire of sticks. But it rained on the last two days. I could not see how the canvas fly could keep out the water, but it did. Chapter 64 My Scout membership in review: 1952 to 2010 I have thoroughly enjoyed my sixty years, which I have found to be richly rewarding and at the same time, wonderful fun. It is not everyone that is given the sacred opportunity of moulding youth, but I have had it both in my professional career in education and in one of two main spare-time activities, that of Scouting. Like the apocryphal story of the blind-folded person trying to describe what he felt when he was put alongside an elephant, Scouting has so many features that perhaps no two of its members could have the same impressions and experiences. I was eighteen when the group leader of the sponsored group at the school where I had just completed Year 12, Mr. Gerald T. “Beelus” McNamara, invited me to consider being a leader. I thought that this would keep me in touch with “my old school.” I guess that I was rather pleased to be wanted. I was also at a point in life where I had no other commitments or had even commenced my career. The Lochan, Gilwell Park, Gembrook, Victoria By then, I was “hooked” on Scouting. It was only later that I grasped the nature of it all – its sound moral basis of the Law and Promise, its sensible organisation with its sections, groups, districts, areas and the like, and its excellent open-air program of self-sufficiency and “being prepared.” I was lent a copy of Baden-Powell’s “Scouting for Boys.” Why did I open first the chapter on knots. I found myself with twine and broom sticks successfully executing clove hitches, sheet bends and bowlines. These knots worked! I wondered why we wore shorts and shortsleeved shirts, yet met at night in most cases. I shivered on too many occasions that first year, until I found ways of keeping warm. The request, “jumpers off,” seemed to fly in the face of reason. Why not have all the badges sewn on to the jumper rather than the shirt? At the first scout meeting, I admired the scout leader, Les Picken, for his knowledge and confidence. The troop members did not reject me, although I knew it would be a different type of leadership than that of being a prefect in a school where attendance was obligatory. Scouts, being members of a voluntary body, need to be wooed by example. Other aspects of my new found hobby included the educational badge work, hiking, maps and compass, together with the whole range of choral activity through campfires and shows like The Gang Show. I had never camped under canvas and that first Easter at Gilwell was an eye-opener. I dug my These newly learnt scouting skills came in very handy when in 1954 I found myself called-up 303 existence of “multi-gods.” The Jewish, Christian and Islamic religions emphasise the unity of God. The Laws have been changed but is it really any better? The corny “brother to every other scout,” has gone but the old tenth one has no current mention166. for three months National Service at Puckapunyal, where mapping, looking after oneself, knotting and camping all came just at the right time to make my life more comfortable and easier. At the end of 1952 Les Picken announced that he was being transferred to Adelaide. Guess upon whose shoulders fell the scout leader’s role? I had avidly read any scouting books that I could find, such as the “Gilcraft” series. I was in my first year as a teacher in training. Planning scout programs kept me awake in many a boring university lecture, but I might have done better in the examinations if I had paid more attention to the person at the lectern. It was inevitable, considering the times that the movement was founded, that we would be hierarchical in organisation. This reflected the ranks of the services and the general nature of organisations, such as the main stream churches with archbishops and or a pope. There are now significant attempts to review this authority structure. Flatter structures are more the vogue. I was not at first convinced that there were any great benefits from introducing the Joey section, although I have now been converted on this point in view of the very different approach to the training of these younger youth members that their leaders demonstrate. I do not believe that the case to introduce girls was ever presented against an academic or psychological background. I admit that I have never led a scout section that included girls, but I have spent forty years of my life associated with schools that had both boys and girls as students. A training leader leads a session at the campfire circle I must not repeat what is already in the foregoing chapters, but rather look back on some aspects that could have been different. The term “co-education” has been misunderstood. When the school Huntingtower was established in the thirties its headmaster, Boyd Coutts, affirmed that nothing meaningful could be learnt unless both genders were present in the process of learning/teaching. I have already referred to a uniform that seemed to ignore the time of day when meetings were generally called and that when the activity was in day light, it was almost certain that the last gear to be worn was that of the scout uniform. What we needed was both an activity outfit and a warm formal dress one. Perhaps the current one meets those criteria to some extent. All too often, schools have claimed with some virtue that they are “co-educational,” when it has been a matter of economics to build one school not two. If there had been any real faith in the concept by the Education Department of Victoria, then why have Melbourne (boys) High, Mr. G and MacRobertson (girls) remained single-sex schools and most of the schools I All too often, the “powers that be” have made changes that might have been “PC” but really have never led to a rush of enrolments. The Promise has been changed to use the term ‘my God,” which concerns me as it implies the 166 304 A Scout is clean in thought, word and deed taught in until 1970 had separate playgrounds for boys and girls? placed in a log of wood. Campfires developed a whole apparatus of campfire blankets, opening and closing ceremonies and ways to lay and light the fire As a headmaster of some twenty-one years of an independent school, I could not fail to notice that girls matured faster in the middle-school years, did better at studies and also had the undesirable effect of discoursing boys to try both in studies and subjects like drama, music and choir. The movement must get away from the idea that there is promotion and ranks. The most positive approach to instil is that we serve in the role to which we are best suited. Unfortunately, some people have to be branch commissioners! But these people should “serve” the real leaders – the section leaders. All too often, the outstanding scout troop leader finds himself in a district role and suddenly divorced from what he or she does best, that is working directly with youth. Another matter that concerns me is the reduction of “risk” in our activities. This is not a request for irresponsible leadership and wanton disregard for basic matters of safety. The movement “trusted me” from the age of 19 to erect monkey and commando bridges and “flying foxes.” That trust meant that I had to be responsible. My reading of the current Leader Manual would suggest that it would be desirable to have a diploma of engineering to build a flying fox. Humans are very resilient and most (at the Venturer level) have a clear idea of what they are capable. Perhaps Joeys, Cubs and Scouts should not have flying foxes on their agenda! The Hoadley Hall training ground facility But the decision was taken, and there is no going back, but I believe if I had been a leader in a group with boy and girls membership then I would have had single-sex patrols and even single-sex troops! Yes, I know there are “tomboy girls” and “effeminate boys,” but, as they say, one swallow does not make a summer! Because I was active both in Scouting and the Citizen Military Force, it always amused me that I seemed to be always paying out for the former and being paid for my time by the latter. The trouble came when both activities clashed on the same weekend! Back in 1952 any self-respecting Scout would never have dreamed of going into camp without a sheath knife (shades of Paul Hogan in New York in the film, “Crocodile Dundee”) strapped to his belt. Similarly, Scouts aiming for their First Class badge were required to ‘cut down’ a tree. Scouts on their overnight hike were expected to catch, skin and cook a rabbit. Obviously few did. I have written the word, “woodsmoke,” in my notes. There was always a lot of this in Scouting. I am not sure how much there is today. In the same way that there is ritual in church and Masonic matters, so has Scouting developed its own. One “crossed the Rubicon” before commencing a woodbadge training course. Now you get yourself a cup of tea! Gilwell was always represented with an axe I am sure other thoughts will come to me, but Scouting has been and still is a “Great Game.” Graham Farley, LT © Macedon, Victoria February, 2012 305 Chapter 65 A biographical note Graham Farley was born on 14th June, 1933 in England. He came to Australia in 1937, the family settling down in Glen Iris. He attended Malvern Grammar School, now affiliated with Caulfield Grammar School. Following a trip to the UK in 1951, he was enticed to become an “assistant scoutmaster” with his old school group. About the same time he opted for a career as a teacher, commencing a commerce university course with the Education Department of Victoria. By the Blazing Council Firelight and Prayer Tune: ‘Till we meet again By the blazing council firelight We have met in fellowship tonight Round about the whispering trees Guard our golden memories. And so before we close our eyes in sleep Let us pledge each other that we’ll keep Scouting friendships strong and deep ‘Till we meet again As Graham changed schools, which was the pattern for promotion in those days, he kept up his Scouting interest, as well as his membership of the Citizen Military Force, often in partnership! He retired in the rank of colonel. Having been principal of Birchip High School, he accepted the foundation headmastership of Braemar College at Woodend, from which he retired 21 years later in 1996. Hum while prayer is said Prayer We thank Thee for Thy blessings in creation, for the beauty of the earth, the sea, and the sky; for the happiness of our lives, for the peaceful homes and healthful days; for our powers of mind and body; for faithful friends; for the joy of loving and being loved. Graham married Shirley n 1971, and their son, Roger, was born in 1973. Shirley and Graham live in Macedon on five acres – a piece of turf that keeps them busy, when they are not involved with their Church and other “good turns.” And so before we close our eyes in sleep Let us pledge each other that we’ll keep Scouting friendships strong and deep ‘Till we meet again The list below shows the various warrants (certificates of leadership) that he held. He is currently an Honorary Commissioner and still on the training team. Source: Australian Scout Song Book 306 Chapter 66 The Scouting Day (Tune - Perfect Day) Warrants held in Scouting Years and dates approximate From Appointment167 1952 ASM 1953 SM 1955 SM 1956 SM 1958 DSM 1959 RSL 1962 GSM 1963 SSL 1966 SSL 1967 AAC (Training) DSSL HQ Asst. Trg Cmr 1974 Honorary Commissioner ADC (Training) 1983 Asst. Br. Cmr. Training Dev, BHQ When you come to the end of a Scouting day And you sit in the campfire light; And the sky has turned from blue to grey, With the shades of the coming night; Do you think what the end of a good Scouting day th 15 Malvern Can mean in a real boy’s life, When the bugle blows and the flag comes down And there’s peace in this world of strife? 6th St. Well, Kilda this is the end of a ScoutingEnd day,1955 Near the end of our journey, too, And theNorth days that are gone cannot be recalled 1st Mirboo What have they meant to you? Tarwin For we’ve Districtshared the same tent and End side 1958 by side The hills of the old world trod, 6th St. In the sun and rain we’ve done our best Kilda And we’re closer grown to God End 1962 Postscript 1st Warragul End 1965 It is nearly sixty years since I “married” Scouting. 8th Cheam, UKAs explained in the first chapter, I had been approached and encouraged by the th leaders of 15Area Malvern to attend their end-ofGeelong-Nauru year campfire “break-ups.” Maybe I initially Barwon became District interested for the wrong reason – it could be a means to keep in touch with the school that I had attended for twelve BHQ Endyears. 1983 BHQ On Wednesday, 13th February, 1952, Gerald McNamara, Jnr, came to our home for a meal Karawith Kara a copy District of Scouting for Boys for Endme. 1975 The next day I was trying out my skills tying knots, but using broom handles and string! I BHQ attended my first scout meeting the End next 1984 night. By the 3rd March I was in uniform. I had my first weekend camp at Gilwell on 29/30th March. I camped at Gilwell that Easter. I did my Explanatory (Basics) course on 24th May. Ass Trg Cmr, BHQ Truly, I had been sold on Scouting and have never regretted it. 167 Most of these appointments now have modern titles, such as in order, ASL, SL, DL(Scouts), Rover Advisor, GL, AAC, ARG, DL (Venturers), ATC, LT, ADC, ABC, ATC. 307 Anglesea River, 210 Anglican Church, 174, 186, 215, 252, 288, 297, 302 Animism, 264 Annual General Meetings, (AGM), 63, 147, 191, 215, 224, 235, 254, 258, 294, 299 Ansett—ANA, 106 Antarctica, 147 Antonis, Christine, 265 “Aquacat,” 195 Ararat, 226 Area Commissioner, 138, 170, 203, 244 Area Training Panel, 160, 188 Areas, 176 Armoured Personnel Carrier, (APC), 197 Armstrong 500, 69, 190 Armstrong, Barry, 261 Armstrong, Bruce, 103 Armstrong, David and Noelle, 262 Armstrong, Tom, 190 Army Armoured Museum, 196 Army Reserve, See CMF Arundel, UK, 133 Assessors, 36, 54, 70ff, 81 Assistant Area Commissioner for Training, 137 Assistant Branch Commissioner for Training Development (ABC-TD), 252 Assistant Deputy Camp Chief (ADCC), 137, 148 Assistant District Commissioner (ADC), 152 Assistant District Commissioner for Training, 160, 188, 204, 220 Assistant Leader Trainer, (ALT), 270, 283 Assistant Scoutmaster (ASM), 14, 199, 296, 306 Assistant Senior Scout Leader (ASSL), 138 Atkinson, Tommy, 55 Audio-visuals, 170 Austin, Peter, 38 Austin van &c, 40, 45ff, 57, 63, 67, 76, 79, 81, 83, 91ff, 99, 106, 109, 136, 149, 164, 182ff, 255 Australia, 252, 298, 306 Australia, (Ken Bayly), 291 Australia Day Weekend, 41, 53, 59, 158, 243 Australian Boy Scouts Association (ABSA), 17, 174ff, 302 Australian Boy Scouts Song Book, The, 62 Australian Paper Mills &c, 29 Australian Scout, 16, 18, 292, 296 Australian Scout Handbook, 216 Australian War Memorial, 76 Austria, 122 Avonsleigh, 43 Axedale forest, 157ff Axedale Hoadley Hide B-P House, London, 220 B-P Revues, 31, 101ff, 109, 171ff, 186, 189, 250, 255, 302 B-P’s program and aims, 41, 43, 130, 174ff, 199ff Bacchus Marsh, 152, 191 Back, John, 247 Back to Gilwell, 129 Index (Note: Some topics are so similar, such as “church,” “worship” and “Scouts Owns,” that I have put the reference against one or more of them. Similarly, as I spent 1966 in the United Kingdom, I have added the capitals, “UK,” where I think the person or place needs explanation.) Abbott, Graham, 38, Abinger Hammer, UK, 114 Abrecht, Ken, 88, 91ff, 95, 97, 109, 133, 136, 141ff, 152ff, 166, 171, 189ff, 204, 255, 275 ABT narrow gauge railway, 39 Achievement badges, 200, 303 Accolade, 257 ‘Actiomatics,’ 178 Activity camps, 178 Adams, Bruce, 52 Adams, Ian, 64 Adams, Len, 190 Adelaide, 304 Advance Party Report ,(APR), UK, 128, 132ff, 174ff, 198ff Afghanistan, 95 Africa, 271 Agar, Bill, 158, 173 Age ranges, 174 Agg, Peter, 166, 182 Agitator, The, 97 Aims of Scouting &c, 21 Air Scouts, 216 Air Training Corps, 10, 15, 74, 178 Aircraft, passenger, 153 Airey’s Inlet, 193 Akubra scout hat, 280 Albert Park Lake, 243 Albury, 45, 51 Alcohol, 189, 226, 258 Aldhouse, John, UK, 117 Alexandra, 63, 191, 193 All Sections Advanced Courses (ASAC), 239, 242ff, 244, 247, 254 Allambee, 34 Allan, Bob, 98 Allan, Tony, UK, 118, 130 Allard, Mr. and Mrs., 89 Allen, Joan, 137, 148, 271 Allen, Geoff, 137, 271 Allerdice, Harry, UK, 52 Alverez, Don, UK, 132 Ambulance Badge, 77, 81ff Ambulance course, 77, 81ff, 161 Ambulance, converted vehicle, 212 Anderson, Donald, 22 Anderson, G. W. S., Park, (Officer) 10, 20ff, 43, 82ff, 103 Andrews, John, UK, 118 Angahook Park, 133 Anglesea, 137, 160, 231, 270 308 Bell (nee Bonney),Doreen, 189 Bell Park High School, 136, 140, 157, 161, 217 Bellis, Peter, 240 Belmont, 136, 157, 211, 247, 271, 286 Belmont High School, 146 Benalla, 266, 268 Bendigo, 79, 159, 220, 258, 268, 298 Bennett, David, 259 Benporath, George, 52 Bentley Copse, UK, 134 Berets, 132, 147, 162 Berwick, 243 Bessen Theatre, 290 Bill Waters, A Biography, 42 Billy Tea, 10 Binks, Andrew, 196 Birchip, 215, 220, 224, 229 Birchip High School, 215, 217, 273, 306 Black, Eric. R. E., 67, 88, 169, 286 (funeral) Black Forest, Ger., 115, 121, 135 Black or white board, 238, 253, 259 Blackburn, 57 Blackburn Lake, 16 Blackwood, 171, 265 Blair, Bert, 44, 47, 209 Bland, Bill, 28, 36, 38 Block and Tackle, 73 Bloomer, Carol and John, 244, 247, 259 Blount, Marc, 88, 150, 169 Blowhard Hut, 58 Blue Mountains, 46 Blunn, Tony, 21 Boer War Memorial, 250 Bomb Hole, Gilwell, UK, 117 ‘Bond, James,’ 251 Bottle drives, 14 Boulogne, 121 Bourke Street, 299 Boustead, Matthew, 291 Bowie, Bill, 42 Boeing, 727, 156 “Boss” Hurst Light, 215 “’Boss’ Hurst of Geelong and Nauru,” 270 Box Brownie camera, 296 Boxes, equipment, 153 Boy Scouts of America, 135 Boys’ Brigade, 88 Boys’ Field, UK, 116, 199, 251 Brad, Joan, 299, 302 Brad, Russell, 299 Braddock, Alan, UK, 117 Bradley, Glendyn, 38 Braemar College, 17, 120, 228ff, 239, 242ff, 245, 247ff, 250, 252ff, 256, 263ff, 267ff, 270, 274, 290, 306 Branch Commissioners, 169, 176, 247, 305 Branch Commissioner for Training (various titles), 292 Branch Commissioner for the Environment, 261 Branch Commissioner for Faith, 301 Branch Commissioner for Venturers, 300 Baden-Powell, Lady, 129, 145 Baden-Powell Lodge, 280, 283, 295, 299ff Baden-Powell, Lord, (B-P), 14, 36, 41, 61, 66, 112, 116, 170, 203, 222, 234, 239, 241, 250, 262, 267, 271, 280, 283, 293, 298, 303 Baden-Powell, The Hon. Michael, 129, 280, 283 Baden-Powell Society, 16, 32, 112 Badge board, 33 Badge work, 23 Badges, Cubs, Boomerangs, 246 Badges, Tenderfoot, 10 Baerlin, Gerald, UK, 127 Bagpipes, 233 Bairnsdale, 58, 136, 162 (recce.), 164, 166ff, 208, 212ff Ballarat, 62, 143, 225ff, 272, 296 Balsillie, Melville, 67 Barkla, Harry, 231 Baron and Beef restaurant, 235 Barber, D. H. 41 Barlow, John, 235 Barlow, Peter, 235 Barnadoes Boys’ Home, UK, 119 Barnfield, Robert, 22 Barrow Bob, 14, 21, 70, 189, 193ff, 275 Barry’s Reef, 171, 265, 278ff Bartrip, Alison, 103 Batten, Ashley, 209 Barwon River, 157, 212 Basel/Basle RS, Germ., 123 Barwon District, 138, 145, 149ff, 152, 157, 171, 175 Barwon District Senior Scout Troop, (BDSST), 138, 145, 150, 157, 164, 183, 188ff, 197ff, 202, 211, 216. (See BDVU) Barwon District Venturer Unit (BDVU), 216ff, 269 Barwon Guide Division, 171 Basket ball, 72 Bath, Des, 138, 146 Bathurst, 45ff Batten, Ashley, 25 Battle of Actium, 81 Battle of Agincourt, 94 Bayly, Ken, OAM, 33, 55, 104, 156, 173, 234ff, 237, 263, 287ff BBC computer, 261 Be Prepared &c, 303 Beachy, Len, 99 Beaconsfield, 42ff, 49 Bean, Shirley, 286, 289, 298 Beanland, Graham, 261 Beard, Lillian, OAM, 28, 50, 274, 277, 286, 292, 294, 298 Beatles, The, 289 Beebe, Ray, 271, 274 Bega, 76 Belabdelouahab, H., Algeria, 126 Belgrave, 57 Belin, Paul, 165, 172 Bell, Albert, 189 Bell Bay, 107 309 Butcher, John Mr., 22 Butcher, Peter, 259 Butler, Don, 76 Cadby, Randall, 77, 100ff, 106ff, 136ff Cadbury’s, Claremont, 39, 107 Caine Mutiny, 184 Cairns, Nth Queensland, 288 Callister, Doug, 25 Cameron, Don, 133 Commando Bridge, 77 Camp gadgets, 18 Camp paper, 259 Camp sites, UK, 133, 250 Campbell, John, 169 Campbell, Mr. Ian, 45ff Campcraft trainer, 241 Campfire, The, 62 Campfire Circle, Gilwell, Aust, 267, 304 Campfire Circle, Gilwell, UK, 117 Campfire Club, 61, 140, 157 Campfire Leaders Book, The, 61 Campfire Team, 54 Campfire yarns, 61, 203 Campfires, 11, 43, 61ff, 64, 68, 81, 92, 129, 141, 180, 258, 268, 270, 283, 305 Campbell, John, 57 Camping course, 159 Camps, 23, 41, 51, 59 Camper van, 220, 251 Camping for Scouts and Others, 11, 16, 264 Canada, 284 Canadian canoes, 164, 183ff Canberra, 45ff, 76, 136, 262 Cann River, 76 Canoe carrying frame, 206 Canoe shed, 197 Canoes, Canoeing, 69, 163ff, 183ff, 191, 193, 206ff, 213ff Canterbury, UK, 251 Canty, Allan, 95 Cape Otway, 79 Capri car, 206 Capricorn Award, 92 Caravan, 243,, 247 Carey, H. K., Chick, 200, 226 Carland, Bill, 102, 106 Carland, Greg, 102 Carland, Ken, 82ff, 102, 106ff, 108, 141ff, 149, 171, 255, 274 Carle, Catherine, 140, 145 Carlton, 269 Carr, Mr. and Mrs., USA, 222 Casbolt, Don, 88 Casey Airfield, 243 Cashin, Mrs., 29ff Cashin, Colin, 35 Cataract Gorge, 107 Cathedral Hall, Brunswick, 29ff, 34, 43 Cathkin, 196 Branch Executive, 176, 243 Branch Headquarters (BHQ), 88, 161, 169, 280, 283ff, 288ff, 297 516 Collins Street, 243 384 Elizabeth Street, 243 8 Queens Road, 243ff, 247, 269 Barry Street, 243, 269, 275ff, 285ff, 290, 294 Mount Waverley, 282, 290 Branch Headquarters Christmas function, 297, 300 Branch Headquarters monthly newsletter (email), 300 Breydon, Claude, 21, 42ff Brewster, Ken, 50, 54, 92, 169, 238, 247, 272, 280, 295 “Bridge without ropes,” 189, 237 Bridgewater, 186 Bright, 58, 63 Brighton District, 43 Brighton Grammar School Camp, 96, 148, 215 Brisbane, 35, 152, 210, 270, 296 Brisbane Ranges, 150 Britannia Creek, 140, 212 British Army, 286 British Bulldogs, 29 British Phosphate Commission, 137 Brooker, Lee, 240 Brooks, Betty, 272 Brooks, Bill, 86 Brooks, Peter, 45 Brooks, Ron, 68, 75, 78, 84, 96, 107, 109, 255, 302 Brothers of the Sky, 192 Brown, Kirsty, 235, 269ff, 276 Brown, R. A. 200 Brown, Stan, 244 Brown Mountains, 207 Browne, Bob, 301 Brownsea Island, 116, 174, 199, 221ff, 232, 250 Brownsea Island, 1907 campsite, 250 Brucknell, 186 Bruhn, Stan, 27, 32 Bryant, Rod, 137, 146 Bucher, Alan, 17, 21, 24, 32, 45, 49 Buckingham Palace Road, London, 17, 112, 174 Buddhist Temple, Gilwell, UK, 117 Budgets, 168 Buerckner, Ian, 267 Buffalo lawn, 128 Buggy, 96 Bunney, Doreen, 171 Buoyancy vests, 166 Burdekin, Alan, 28 Burgess, Martin, UK, 123 Burnie, 39 Burns, Stewart, 82ff, 96, 101, 255 Bushfires, 169, 219, 225, 248, 300 Bushman’s Thong, 77 Bushnight Song, 42 Buskes, Nicki, 273 Butchardt, Jim, 169, 258 Butcher, Major, 107 Butcher, John, 42, 45, 64 310 Communications, 72, 97, 100, 146, 211 “Como,” 274 Compass, 303 Computers, 281 Constable, Dale, 214 Cook, Peter, 55 Cook’s Badge, 77 Cooke, Maj-Gen Kevin, 259 Cooking methods, 18, 127, 164ff, 179ff, 221 Cooma, 46, 76, 136, 207 Cordell, Charles, 62 Corio District, 148, 254 Cornwell Scout badge, 138 Cording, Rex, 27 Costermans, Leon, 16, 98, 159, 209, 224ff, 234ff, 261, 264, 275 Council Rock, 84, 292, 305 Courses, Explanatory, 14, 271 Preliminary, 14, 271 Mail bag, 14 Training the Team, 126ff Woodbadge, (See Woodbadge courses) 14 Court of Honour, 35, 111, 121, 146, 204 Coutts, Boyd, 304 Coventry, 221 Coverdale, Catherine, 247 Cowdale, Robert, 247 Cowes (cattle), 122 Cox, Esther, 53, 59 Cox, Fred, 88 Creswick Forestry School, 148 Crichton Hide, 203 Cricket, 64 Crocodile Dundee, 10 Crossover, 67, 70, 75, 145, 255, 302 “Crow’s nest,” 153 Croydon, 244 Crutchfield, John, 35, 38 Cub conference, 266 Cub Instructors, 66 Cub Packs, 17, 21, 23, 175 Cub Scouts, 132, 252, 305 Cuckoo Patrol, 199 Cudmore, John, 14 Cumberland River, 49, 171 Cumbrae-Stewart, Graeme, OAM, 278 Dallas Brooks Hall, 262 Dallimore, John, 148 Daly, Tony, 24 Dandenong, 53, 152, 298 Dandenong Jamborees, 83, 152, 298 Darebin Arts Centre, 286 Dart, Squadron Leader, 180 Dash, Alan, 261 Davey, Eric, 253 Davies, Martin, 235, 240, 242ff, 247 Davis, Kingsley, 127, 235, 242, 296, 302 Davis, Norm, 95 Dawson, Bill, 153, 160, 169, 209, 225, 229, 235, 238, Cations, Milton, 194ff, 206 Catt, Patricia, 247 Caulfield Grammar School, 12, 306 Certificates, course, 240, 245, 247 Chalcraft, Michael, 21 Chambers, Don, 210 Change in Scouting, 132, 174ff, 199ff Chaplain, Roman Catholic, UK, 129 Charlton, Bill, UK, 118 Charterhouse, 250 Chateau Tabilk, 196 Cheam, UK, 111ff, 116, 124, 244 Chief Commissioner, Victoria, 155, 169, 176, 237, 247, 252, 258, 280, 283, 289ff, 294, 296, 300 Chief of the General Staff’s conference, 262 Chief Scout, 174ff, 199 Chief’s Approach, 218, 234 Chicago, 222 Chingford, UK, 116, 250, 271 Christensen, Beryl, 227, 230ff Christensen, Carl, 224. 227, 230ff Christie, Colin, 35 Christmas Day, 153 Church of England Boys Society (CEBS) 20ff, 297 Church services, 97,114, 123, 167, 183, 186, 191, 193ff, 206ff, 214, 255, 266, 283 Churchill Patrol, 117 Citizen Military Force, (CMF), 31, 36, 53, 60, 63, 65ff, 72, 74, 140, 157, 178, 192, 195ff, 203ff, 205, 217, 231, 239, 242, 245, 252, 292, 305 City District, 204 City of Melbourne City of Melbourne parade, 299 CityLink, 268, 283 Clarke brothers, 179 Clarke, Elizabeth and John, UK, 112, 221 Clarke, David, UK, 123 Clarke, G. J., 169 Clay shooting, 181 Cleopatra on the Nile Hoadley Hide, 81 Clifford Park, 43ff, 55, 58, 61 Clifford Park Jamboree, 27 Clyde School, 229, 245, 262ff Cobb & Co., 96 Co-education, 263, 304 Cohen Shield, 17, 36, 49, 191, 203, 209, 275 Colac, 183, 205 Colac Colac, 205ff Colledge, Stan and Mrs., 204 Colley, Eric, UK, 116 Collis, Mr. 63 Colonial, The, 119 Colquhoun, J. F., 60 Colvin, Derek, 150 Commando Bridge, 147, 305 Commissioner Stage 3 course, 242 Commissioners’ conference, 169 Commissioners’ course, 253 Committee for the Far Future, (CFF), 201, 241, 296, 302 311 Drysdale, 297 Eacott, Wally, 120 Eade, Brian, 234 Eagle Farm airport, 153 Eagle Point, 164, 166 East Suburban Area, 189 East Tarago Senior Scout Troop (ETSST), (This includes the phrase, “Warragul Senior Scouts), 39, 68, 70ff, 77, 135, 138, 141, 149, 153, 171, 182, 189, 198, 202, 208, 255, 302 East Tarago Venturer Unit (ETVU), 69, 255, 266, 273, 302 East Tarago Senior Scout/Venturer District Scarf, 109 Easter Day & Easter holiday, 230, 266, 275, 279ff,, 303 Easter Day church services &c, 142 Easter camps &c, 11, 36, 43, 54, 59, 70, 188, 191, 209, 234 Easter Monday, 97 Easter Sunday, 71, 114, 142 “Eccles,” The B-P caravan, 129 Echuca, 298 Edale, UK, 114 Eden, 76, 207 Edmonds, Doug, 211, 224, 232, 288 Education Department of Victoria, 111, 134, 263, 306 Edwards, Ann, 240 “Egret” yacht, 213 Eighth (8th) Cheam, UK, 66, 111, 119, 121, 134ff Eighth (8th) Malvern, 244 Eighth (8th) Prahran, 61, 141 Eighth (8th) St. Kilda, 21 Eildon, 57, 63, 193ff Eildon Weir, 191 Eleventh (11th) Esseondon, 287 Eliason, Roy, 231 “Elder Statesman,” 247, 292 “Elevenses,” 142, 245 Elliott, Max, 51 Ellis, Andrew, 283 Ellis, Bruce, 279, 300 Ellis, Dion, CEO, 285, 294 Ellis, Marsha, 279, 300 Elmore Jamboree, 298 Elton, Tom, 100, 107 Elwood, 37, 43, 47, 55, 135 Emerald, 264, 269 Emergency Management Australia, 240 Empire Youth Day, 23 Emu Bay Railway, 39 England & UK, 64, 111, 122, 220, 250, 306 English Channel, 121 Epping Forest, UK, 119 Equipment boxes, 153 Eumeralla camp, Anglesea, 18, 32, 57, 79, 137, 147, 149, 157ff, 170, 182, 189, 191, 203, 209ff, 215, 273 Eumeralla Day, 162, 231, 270 Euroa, 82, 101, 149 Europe, 250, 274 Eurostar, 121 240, 243ff, 253, 256, 259, 261 Dawson, Bram, 103, 153 Dawson, Peter, 211, 217 Daylesford, 84 De Longville, Heather, 64 De Molnar Training Ground, 218, 232, 247, 253, 256, 259 De Vries, Cor, 234 Delacombe dining hall, Gilwell, 240, 258, 283 Delacombe, Sir Rohan, Governor of Victoria, 154 Dent, Cliff, 78, 82, 84, 87, 93, 107, 108, 159, 162, 164, 167, 183ff, 208, 212, 214, 240, 254ff, 265ff, 273ff, 278ff, 283ff, 296, 298ff Dent, Pat, 171, 208, 296, 298ff Dent, Nigel, 171 Dentist, 264 Department of Sustainability and the Environment, (DSE), 272, 278 Deputy Camp Chiefs (DCCs), 199, 272 Derrick, “Bus,” 55, 57, 62, 64, 95, 126, 132, 200, 267 Derwent River, 107 Design for Tomorrow, (DFT), 132, 163, 171, 174ff, 198ff, 204, 216 Devonport, 106 Diamond, Joan, 198 Dinizulu’s beads, 271 Directéur General of the Conseil Provincial du Quebec, 284. Director of Leader Training, UK, 221 Disney World, USA, 135 Displays, 94 District Association (DA), 67, 184 District Commissioner (DC), 17, 21, 66ff, 138, 191, 194ff, 220, 232, 235, 270, 274, 295 District events, 78, 87 District Scout Master (DSM), 36 District Senior Scout Leader (DSSL), 67, 157, 188, 211 District Senior Scout Troops, 175 District warrant committee, 276 Doak, Doug, 270, 273 Don Spring Lodge, The, (see Spring Lodge) Donald, 220, 226 Dorling, Graham, 93, 133, 136, 142, 190, 255, 292 Douglas aircraft, DC9, 153 Dover, Gary, 178 Doveston, Jennifer, 247 Dovey, Mrs., 109 Downes, Mike, 203, 209, 217, 245 Drew, Rodney, 151 Drik Drik, 187 Drouin, 66, 68 Dubbins Hut, 58 Dumbalk, 28 Dunnachie, Ken, 149 Durant, Gary, OAM, 299 Duty to God (See Scouts Owns), 242, 253, 264, 301 Dunn, Vern, USA, 135 Durham, Geoff, 96ff Driver, Roy, 47 312 First (1st) Highton, 138, 143, 146, 161, 190, 197, 204, 227 First (1st) Highton scout hall, 148 First (1st) Koonawarra, 152 First (1st) Leongatha, 152 First (1st) Lindfield, 52 First (1st) Locksley, 78 First (1st) Longwarry, 152 First (1st) Meeniyan, 152 First (1st) Mirboo East, 30 First (1st) Mirboo North, 27, 36, 215 First (1st) Neerim South, 100 First (1st) Nilma North – Lillico, 66, 78 First (1st) Port Fairy, 186 First (1st) Queenstown, 106 First (1st) Upper Ferntree Gully, 213 First (1st) Warragul, 66, 75, 77ff, 81ff, 100ff First (1st) Warragul Scout Hall, 72, 75, 255 First (1st) Wesley College, 61 First (1st) West Geelong, 158 First (1st) Woodend, 235, 246 First Class Badge, 70, 77, 233, 305 Firth, Eric, 234 Fisher, Clive, 87 Fishing, 183, 186, 213 Fitzoy Gardens, 299 Flag Break, 18, 30, 247, 256, 294 Flag Break, 161, 188 Flags &c, 21, 23, 91, 134 Flying, 180 Flying fox, 18, 49, 77, 82, 86, 183, 195, 305 Folkestone, UK, 121, 133 Footscray, 299 Forever April, UK, 134 Forest Drive, 248 Forestry Commission of Victoria (FCV), 32, 41, 48, 70, 96, 149, 171, 184, 210, 272, 278 Forestry School, Creswick, 84, 148 Forrest, 171 Founder (see B-P &c) Founder’s Day, 36 “Four Terrors, The,” 288 Fourth (4th) Belmont, 162, 169 Fourth Caulfield (4th) Caulfield, 18 ff, 45, 58 Fourth (4th) World Training Conference, 126, 129ff, 135 Fowler, Kevin, 240 Fox, Joan, 234 Foxlease Guide Training Centre, UK, 222 France, 121 Frankston Jamboree, 239 Frankston Sea Scout Hall, 54 Fraser National Park, 191, 193ff Freasrson, Alistair, 290, 295 Frearson, Meredith, 273 Freiburg, Germ., 121, 124 French, Tony, 228 Friee, Rita, 239 Fundamentals, 242ff, 249, 303 Furniture vans, 12, 43 Gadget, Gilwell, UK, 118 Expeditions (Rover Moot), 57, 76 Mirboo North, Tasmania, 39 ETSST, Canberra, 76ff ETSST, Adelaide, 78ff ETSST, Hall’s Gap, 83ff ETSST, Tasmania, 106ff, 274 ETSST, Ninety Mile Beach, 133, 293 BDSST, Gippsland Lakes, 164ff BDSST, Glenelg River, 182 BDSST, Goulburn River, 193ff BDSST, Upper Murray River, 205 BDSST, East Gippsland, 212 BDSST, Goulburn river, 220 Explanatory courses, 14, 95, 136, 139, 148, 170, 189, 209, 271 Fagg, Mr. Bert and Fagg families, 217 Falconer, Sue, 155 Fallshaw, Robert, 159 Falstaff Patrol, 53 “Fang,” Cub woodbadge, 116 Farley, Ernest, 88 Farley, Graham, 1ff, 45 Farley Library, 270 Farley, Roger, 215, 246, 248, 251, 262, 306 Farley, Shirley (nee Monkivitch), 207, 215, 241, 243ff, 245, 248, 262, 274, 283, 306 Farmer, Cliff, 249, 258 Farrell, Vera, Eng., 126 Fary, Mr. Lal, 29 Fary, Graham, 35, 38 Fary, Bill, 35 Farrago, 16 “Fast Austin Transport,” 40, Fatana, Gamill, Saudi Arabia, 126 Fathers and Sons’ activities, 85ff, 102ff, 147, 161 Festival of Britain, 111 Field Commissioners, 38, 139, 247, 281, 288 Field Days, 149 Fifteenth (15th) Malvern, 9, 20ff, 54, 61, 63, 71, 150, 193, 278 Fiftieth Anniversary of Scouting, 34 Fifth (5th) Caulfield, 14 Fifth (5th) Port of Spain, 134 Fifth (5th) St. Kilda, 49 “Fifty (50) Years of Scouting in Five Minutes,” 292 Fiji, 170 ‘First Aid Kits,’ 258 First (1st) Alexandra, 159 First (1st) Belmont, 138, 146 First (1st) Birchip, 220, 226 First (1st) Cheam, UK, 111 First (1st) Dumbalk-Mardan, 27, 152 First (1st) Footscray, 24, 32, 45 First (1st) Garfield, 66, 68, 88, 90, 152 First (1st) Gilwell Park Scout Group, 33 First (1st) Gisborne, 246, 279, 290, 295 First (1st) Gisborne scout hall, 295 First (1st) Hampton, 88, 101 First (1st) Highton scout hall, 145, 172 313 Glen Cromie Park, 75 Glen Iris, 306 Glen Nayook Park, 109 Glen Waverley, 295 Glenelg River and expedition, 182ff Global Positioning Systems (GPS), 44 Glover, Cameron, 297 Glover, John, 140ff, 292, 297 “Going-up” ceremonies, 81, 100 God, 264 Godalming, Sussex, UK, 250 Gold rail card or pass, 14, 225 Golden Fleece restaurants, 187, 197, 214 Golders Green Hippodrome, 133, 287 “Goodbye Mr. Chips,” 289 Good Friday, 71, 97, 140, 188, 265, 279 Good Service Awards, 283 Good Turn, 83, 119, 123 Goolwa, 79 Goulburn, 51 Goulburn River, 166, 191, 193ff, 203, 220 Government House, Victoria, 162, 181, 210, 273, 281, 283 Governor of Victoria, 274, 283, 290 Graham, Beverly, 16 Grampians, 190 Grand Howl, 294 Grand Ridge Road, 27 Grant, Geoff, 213 Great Ocean Road, 49 Green, Maj-Gen Ken, 261 Green, Margaret, 235 Greenbank Corroboree, 35ff, 152 Greening, Bruce, 75 Greening, Gary, 75 Grenda, Paul, 23 Greystanes Jamboree, 17 ff, 51 Griffiths Book Store, 204, 215 Griffiths, Jack, 240, 266 Grinter, Heather, 161, 190, 198, 215 Grinter, Max, 150, 204, 215, 273 Group Councils, 60 Group Leader course, 268 Group Scout Masters (GSM and later Group Leader, GL), 14, 44, 48, 57, 60, 67, 78, 87, 118, 152, 179, 190, 4, 224ff, 248, 255, 288, 296, 303 Grover, John, 161 Guide Association, 20, 266 Guider, 140 Guider trainer, 205 Guides (general), 166, 183, 190, 193, 205, 212, 217, 241, 263, 291 Guild Hall, Geelong, 138, 203, 210, 259 Guilford, UK, 113 Guille, Derek (ABC), 281 Guningham, Warren, 35 Gunn, Wayne, 300 Guthega Dam, 46 Guthrie, Val, 23 Gaming, 221, 225, 234 Gang Show, 1961, 50ff Gang Show, Brisbane, 210 Gang Show, London, 101, 133, 171, 221, 273, 286 Gang Show Reunion, 289 Gang Show, The, (Melbourne), 23, 29ff, 34, 37, 43, 50ff, 82, 92, 101, 147, 231, 236ff, 245ff, 262ff, 273, 286ff, 289, 303, Anniversary show, 290, 294ff Gang Show, The Mirboo North, 37 Gangsters, The, 101 Gardner, Bob, 233 Gardner, Ray, 100ff Garnsey, Bruce, 130 Garfield, 66, 68 Garnett, David, UK, 118 Gates, Justin, 270 Geary, Brian, 300, 302 Gedye, A., 169 Geelong, 136, 157, 162, 169, 171, 187, 191, 208, 214, 232, 244, 254, 259, 265, 269ff, 271, 273, 276, 4, 288, 300 Geelong Advertiser, The, 170 Geelong Scouting 100th Anniversary Dinner, 300 Geelong College, The, 266 Geelong Grammar School, 229, 263 Geelong-Nauru Area, 137, 158, 182, 270 Gembrook, 57, 119, 226, 251, 264, 269, 272, 303 General Secretary, 67 Geneva, Switz., 250 Genoa, 213 Gentle Annie, 96 George, Bob (and Jenny), 211, 273 Germany, 121 Ghin Ghin, 191 Gilcraft series of books, 16, 199, 304 Gill, Ray, UK, 122ff Gillman, Brian, UK, 117 Gilwell Chapel, 203, 283 Gilwell handbooks, 25 Gilwell Park, Victoria, 10, 16 ff, 20, 25, 36, 47, 49, 54, 60ff, 64, 71, 81, 83, 95, 141, 189, 191, 199, 209, 215, 225, 232, 239, 242ff, 247, 253ff, 256, 258ff, 262, 264, 268ff, 272, 274, 276, 278, 280, 300, 303, 305 Gilwell Park, UK, 12, 62, 113, 166ff, 126, 132, 199, 221, 250ff, 268, 271 Gilwell Reunion, 33, 41, 47, 50ff, 53, 57ff, 65ff, 136, 140, 157, 162, 169, 188, 203, 215, 237, 243, 248, 261, 270, 280, 294, 299 Gilwell Reunion, UK, 126, 128, 135 Gilwell Scarf, 26 Gippsland, 66, 162 Gippsland Highway, 214 Gippsland Lakes, 162ff, 164ff Girl Guide Association, UK, 135 Girls in Scouting, 132, 174ff, 200, 202, 246, 263, 280, 304 Gisborne, 79, 279, 281 Glazebrook, Tom, AM, 235 314 Hoadley Hall & Training Ground, 218, 232, 271, 278, 283, 305 Hoadley Hide, 36, 43, 69ff, 76, 81, 93, 95, 133, 148, 157ff, 170, 189, 255, 264, 273, 275, 278ff Hoadley Hide Reunion, 275 Hoadley Region, 120 Hobart, 39, 107 Hodges, Ian, 14, 169, 225 Hodgins, Charles, 271 Holden wagon, 107 Holland, Jeanette, OAM, 88 Holland, Tony, 78, 87ff, 91ff, 102, 106ff, 255, 288 Honourable Charges, 270, 272, 283 Honorary Commissioner, 292, 300, 306 Honorary leaders, 298 Hood, Alan, 231 Horsham, 220 Hoskins, Alan, 68 Hotchkin, Alan, 38 Hotham, 58 Houston, Peter, 145, 158 How to Run a Troop, 16 Howard, Peter, 145, 148ff Howard, Ross, 145, 149, 158, 189ff Hoyts Victory Theatre, 273 Hudson, Chris, UK, 112, 123 Hudson, Mike, UK, 123 Hudson, Peter, UK, 121, 123 Hugg, Frau and Herr, Germ., 121 Hughes, Geoff, 22 Hughes, Geoff, Scouter, 88 Hughes, Neil, 100ff, 106ff Hughes, Ray, 259, 274 Hume Highway, 46 Humphries, A. S., 169 Hung, Tony, Hong Kong, 126 Hunt, David (CFF), 302 Hunt, David, (Wesley College), 42ff, 61, 201 Huntingtower School, 304 Hurst, Harold “Boss,” 137, 160, 209ff, 270 Hurstbridge, 23 Hutton, Bryce, 217, 273 Hutton, (Peter), family, 196, 273 Hutton, Ian, NZ, 128ff Hutton, Joshua, 273 Hutton, Kate, 273 Hutton, Meilma, 172, 188, 250, 263, 273 Hutton, Peter, 172, 250, 263, 273 Hutton, Ross (and Chris), 172, 185, 187ff, 204, 273 Imperial Headquarters, UK, 17, 112, 174ff Information Technology, (IT), 281 Ingram, Peter, 247 In My Dreams I’m Going back to Gilwell, 115 Ingwersen, Peter, 182, 184, 187, 189 International Headquarters, 251 International weekend, 132 Islamic worship, Gilwell, UK, 117 Ivanhoe, 277 Investitures, 22, 42, 63, 75, 246, 254, 297 Hackney Song Book, 54, 62 Hague, John, 231 Hair length, 75 Hall, Ernie, 64 Hall, Kevin, 233 Hall’s Gap, 84, 227 “Hamarago-on-the-Hill,” 88 Hamilton, 183 Hamilton, Robert, 178 Hamilton, Ron, 99, 118 Hance, John, 22, 42, 46, 297 Hance, Robert, 21, 38, 42, 297 “Hanzel and Gretel,” 290 Happiest Days of Your Life, The, 36 Hardie, Mrs., 68, 72 Hardie, Mr. “Bon”, 68, 72, 86, 89, 102ff Hardie, Neil, 78, 101ff, 107,, 137 Hardie, Wayne, 68, 71, 75, 78, 82, 84, 90, 102ff, 274 Harley, Les, 233 Harrietville, 58 Harrison, Graeme, 279 Hart, Peter, 55 Hastings, Barbara, 272 Hastings, Donald, 77, 100, 143 Hastings, Ian, 66, 68, 71, 75, 78, 82, 84, 92, 143, 148, 255, 272 Haycroft, Graeme, 68, 70, 75, 78, 84, 100, 108 Haycroft, Vern, 86, 102, 107 Hawsers, 72 Hazlewood, Rex, 61 Headquarters Cmmr. for Senior Scouts, 70 Healesville, 42 Heathcote, 81, 159 Hegarty, David, 35 Hellyer Gorge, 106 Hendrikse, George, 68, 75 “Herald” Melbourne newspaper, 289 Hergstrom, Paul, 145, 147 Hergstrom, Ture, 138, 146 Herring Island, 286 Herring, Lt-Gen., Sir Edmund, 258 Herring Oration, 258 Heyard, Oliver, Rt. Revd., 39 Heywood, 184 Hickman, Alwyn (and Beryl), 244 High Lead, 49 High Plains, 58 Highton, 211 Hike tents, 165, 183, 279 Hikes, 23, 58, 69ff, 76, 81ff, 113, 119, 122, 150, 160, 164, 166, 171, 190, 209, 303, 305 Hill, Fred, MBE, UK, 134 Hillsberg, Keith, 89 Hinkler Patrol, 68, 70 Hints for Senior Scouts and Scouters, 75 Hip holes, 10, 303 History of Training, 269ff Hoadley, “Arch,” 32, 272, 283 Hoadley Area/Region, 237, 290 315 Kelly, Pat, 141 Kelly, Rachel, 244 Kemp, Ken, 55 Kemp, Tony, UK, 130 Kennedy Chapel, 203, 208, 212 Kennedy, W. D., (“Kenno”), 25, 60ff, 203, 218, 272, 283, 287 Kenney, Tom, 64 Kent, John and Mrs., 189, 255 Kent, UK, 121, 134 Kett, Gwynne, 234 Kew Scout Hall, 140 Kiandra, 207 Kidd, Bryan, 247 Kiewa Valley, 63 Killingsworth, Michael, 139, 145, 148 Kilmore East, 159 King, Mr., 54 King, Russell, 184, 187, 189, 195ff, 206ff King, Tom, and family, 183, 193ff, 206, 212ff King River Valley, 63 Kinglake, 160 Kinglake West, 59 Kirchzarten, Germ., 121 Kithcen, fabricated 68, 152 Klep, Kees, 64, 235, 242 Knots, 303 Knott’s Berry Farm, 135 Kodak 127 camera, 296 Kokoda Track, 231 Kombi vans, 153, 193 Kookaburra song, 130 Kyneton, 249 Labertouche, 73, 148, 215, 275, 279 Lake St. Clair, 107 “La la’s,” 303 Lakes Entrance, 76, 164ff, 208 Lambourne, David, 217 Lancefield, 288 Landy, John, 284 Lange, Paul, 187, 195ff Lansdowne Jamboree, 50ff, 59, 69 Lapthorne, David, 283 Lara, 169 Latrobe Valley Bus Company, 96 Launceston, 39, 107 Launching Place, 253 Laws and Promise, 303ff Law, Philip, AC, CBE, 64, 147, 270 Lawrence, A. O., 169 Lawson, Adrian, 149, 158, 162 Lawson, Ossie, and Mrs., 138, 150, 158, 169 Lawrence of Arabia, 101 Lay Reader, 157, 210, 237 Leader Trainer (LT), 215, 270, 283, 301 Leaders’ Manual, 284, 286 Leadership, 78, 168 Leckie, Bert, 21, 42, 44 Leeson, Don, 103, 302 Iolanthe (G & S), 15 Ireland, John, 59, 82, 244 It’s a Great Great Game, 90 It’s a Wonderful Life, 31, 273 Jackson, Ian, 68, 78, 84, 107ff, 255 Jacksons Creek, 16 Jacoby, James, 47, 94, 280, 295 Jamboree 1934 hike maps, 41 Jamborees in general, 52, 63 Jamborees: Clifford Park, 27, 43, 83, 88, 212 Dandenong, (1964/5) 83, 88, 91, 152, 287ff (1977/8) 231 Elmore, 94, 298 Frankston, 137 Greystanes, 9, 17 ff, 51, 156 Jindalee, 151, 152ff, 178, 296 Lansdowne, 50ff, 59, 69 Jamborella, 239 Jarrett, Warren, 235, 237 Jefferson, David, 52, 289, 296 Jehovah, 242 Jellis, Mark, 291 Jenkins, Max, 244 Jensen, Howard, 103ff Jepson, Peter, 35 Jervis, Clem, 82, 107 Jervis, Clem, Snr., 86, 274 Jesus Christ, 242 Jewish Faith, 242 Jindalee Jamboree, Queensland, 151, 157, 178, 296 Jindabyne, 207 Jinjelic, 206 Job, Michael, 88 Joey section, 267, 294, 299, 304ff Johnson, Norman, OBE, 11, 54, 81, 137, 156ff, 159, 169, 204, 209, 215, 221, 225, 237, 240, 248ff, 251, 254, 264 Johnson scout hat, 280 Johnston, Philip, 22 Jones, Daryl, 35, 38 Jones, Ian, 189, 196 Jones, Irwin, Jamaica, 126 Journeys, 233 Juffermans, Frank Jungalow, The, 42 Jungle Book, The, 23, 132, 273 Kadfr, Abdul, 169 Kaleidoscope, 298 Kanderstag, Switz., 116, 251 Kangaroo Flat, 235 Kangaroo Flat High School, 235 Kangaroo Ground, 262 Kangaroo (Wooden), 130 Kara, Alex, 82, 108 Kara Kara District, 218, 220 Keep Looking for a Bluebird, 80 Keith, Gordon, 27 Kelly, David, 183ff 316 Malvern District, 10, 256, 295 Malvern Grammar School, 9, 10, 267, 306 Maps, 113, 160, 191, 303 Marching, 92 Mardan, 28 Maroon epaulettes, 181 Marple, Yvonne, 14 Marriage, 205 Marriott, Geoff, 68 Marriott, Mr. L. 96 Marriott, Peter, 234 Marriott, Russell, 99, 136, 255 Marriott, Tricia, 235 Marshall, Barry, 148, 159, 217ff, 278, 284, 295, 298ff Martin, Peter, 104 “Marwarra,” 87 Maryborough, 225 Marysville, 205 Masonic Centre and Masonry, 262, 280, 283, 302, 305 Mast, ship’s, 152 Masizana, S., Bechuanaland, 129 Maughan, John, 38 Maughan, John, campsite, 33ff, 37, 47, 50, 77 Maver, Jack, 57, 64, 169 May, Robert, 233 McCallum, David, Scot., 126 McCallum, Sandra, 240 McClennan, John, 137 McCoubrie, Graeme, 53, 283 McCowat, Ken, 233 McDowall, Don, 240 McGinley, Rix, 235 McGowan, Vic., 62, 169 McGraw-Hill Book Company, 216 McGuinness, Barbara, 63 McGuinness, Graeme, 22, 42, 45 McKee, Ian, 231 McKellar, “Bosun,” Rolf, 88, 169 McKenzie, Wally, 103 McKinnon, Lyle, 35, 38 McLachlan, Stephen, 183, 196 McMaster, Geoff, 22, 45 Mc Master, Mr., 33 McNamara, G. R., 14 McNamara G. T., 14, 150, 303 McNamara, Mrs. G. T. 14 McPhate, Alan, Dr., 81 Meetings, 67, 160 Melbourne, 110, 156, 178, 214, 252, 262, 264, 284, 294 Melbourne Airport, 270 Melbourne Cricket Ground, 64 Melbourne Gathering, 69, 148, 161, 190 Melbourne Grammar School Cadet Unit, 97 Melbourne Herald, 55 Melbourne High School, 263, 304 Melbourne Symphony Orchestra, 92 Melbourne Walking Club, 41 Memorial wing, 245 Menzies Creek, 57 Leeson, Jenny, 302 Leichardt Patrol, 68 Leith Hill, UK, 134 Lesser, “Narse,” 14, 15, 41, 61, 64, 138, 209, 212, 287 Letter of Introduction, 220 Letters to a Rover, 41 Letts, Gordon, 68, 71, 75 Life jackets, 166 Lime Walk, Gilwell, UK, 117 Lind National Park, 213 Lindenow, 109, 164, 214 Lindsay, Jim and Wendy, 230ff Lindsay, Warwick, 63 Lithgow, Don, 33, 47, 81, 169 Little Cottage in the Wood, 93 Little, Graeme, 145 Lilydale, 141 Liverpool Street RS, UK, 116 Lochan, 25, 84, 117, 303 “Lodge, The,” Eumeralla, 160 “Lodge, The,” Gilwell Park, Gembrook, 218, 234 Log books, 36, 68, 70, 73, 98, 272, 275ff London, 116, 220 London Bridge, Vic., 183 London Bridge RS, 116 London Hotel, 55 Lone Scouts’ site, 81 Long Service awards, 292 Longwarry RS, 96 Lorne, 79, 171 Los Angeles, 135 Lowe, Keith, 145, 158, 181 Lowe, Ted, 150 “Lower Eight, The,” 83 Luftwaffe, 117 Lynas, Mrs., 109 Lyon, Peter, 224, 238 Macafee, Tony, 78, 100 Macarthur, 184 MacAuslan, Catriona, 190 MacAuslan, Ealisaid, 190 MacAuslan, Duncan, 145, 147ff, 150, 155, 158, 161, 186 MacAuslan, Neil, 183, 187, 194, 196 MacAuslan, Peter (and Carmel), 138, 146, 158, 186, 193ff, 196, 204, 227, 230ff, 273 Macedon, 265, 295, 306 Macedon Ranges, 279 MacKenzie, Bruce, 240 Mackie, Ian, 49 Maclean, Jeanette, 157 Maclean, Sir Charles, Bt., 92, 119, 129, 132, 157ff, 174ff, 199 Maclaren, Graham, 16 Maclaren tartan ties and scarves, 161 Maclaren, W. de Bois, 26, 116 MacRobertson’s Girls High School, 263, 304 Mail bag course, 14 Main Hall (White House), UK Gilwell, 116, 271 Mallacoota, 76, 206, 212 317 Murfett, Tom, 64, 169 Murphy, Ray, 231 Murray River, 298 Myers, Trish, 297 Myers, Wayne, 235, 270ff, 276, 292 Myrtleford, 46, 63 Nagambie, 191 Nauru, 137, 270 Nash, Mary and Stephen, UK, 111, 116, 126, 132 Nassin, Mohammed, 95 Nathalia, 284 Nathan, Harold, 49, 63 National Commissioner for Leader Training, 258, 269 National Service, 18, 52, 288, 304 National Trust, 274 Naval and Military Club, The, 156, 245 Neate, Mr. IHQ UK staff, 113 Nelson, 182 Nelson, Greg, USA, 228 New South Wales, 180, 255, 259 New South Wales trip, 45ff, 76 New Year’s Eve & Day, 180, 253 Newbigin, Eric, 209 Newcomb, Arthur, UK, 129 Newell, Andrew, 283 Newell, Cameron, 291 NIMBY, 177 Ninth (9th) St. Kilda, 29ff Nippon Scouts, 179 Nitz, Bryan, 240 Noack, Robert, 35, 38 Nobelius, Peter, 77, 100 Noke, John, 270ff, 280, 283, 299 Nonsuch Park, UK, 133 Noojee, 66, 109, 255 North Arm, 164ff North Geelong High School, 187ff, 203 North Hell’s Gate, 96 North Polar star, 199 Northern Hemisphere, 199 Northway, Donald, 17 Notebooks, 44 Nowa Nowa, 213 Nunawading, 88, 156 Nut, The, 106 Nye, Humphrey, 114 Nyeholt, Marcel, 267 Obelisk Brownsea Is., 250 O’Brien, Ray, 147ff Ocean Beach, 166 Officer, 10, 17 O’Hara, Rodger, OAM, 268 Older boy, The, (See Senior Scouting), 74, 100ff, 110, 119, 176, 189, 198ff ‘Old-timers,’ 265ff, 275, 278 Oldham, Gordon “Tops,” 64 Olney, Ross, 55 Olsen’s Bridge camp, 32 Olympic Games, 142 Methodist Church, 214 Metung, 167 Meyer, Ian, 189 Meyers, Barry, 288 Middleton flag base, 252 Migrants, 45 Mildura, 79, 220, 225 Miller, Keith, 64 Miller, Trevor, 217, 269 Milne, Dick, 64, 212, 219ff, 225, 227, 230ff, 233, 238ff, 243ff, 247ff, 256, 259 Milroy, Leslie, 247 Milsted, Steven, 68, 70, 75, 78ff, 82 Mirboo North, 27, 32, 43, 87, 286 Mirboo North Gang Show, 36 Mirboo North High School, 24, 27, 36, 217 Mirboo North Railway Station, 35 Mirboo North Shire Hall, 37 Mitchell, Alec, 83, 93 Mitchell River, 109, 164, 211ff Mitchell, The Hon. Tom, MLC, 205 Moait, Rosemary, 279 Mohammad, 242 Molesworth, 194 Molineux, Levi, 11, 14 Monahan, Joe, WO1, 284 Monash Freeway, 204 Money, Jim, and Mrs., 138, 150, 157, 169, 203, 210, 244 Monkey Bridge, 25, 299 Monkivitch, Shirley, 193, 205, Monopoly game, 59, 184ff, 206, 213ff Monte Carlo Hoadley Hide, 70ff Moody, Mr. and Mrs., 244 Moore, Barbara, 23 Moore, Ron, 22ff Morehen, Jan, 249 Morning of My Life, The, 260 Mornement, Deryck, 52, 63 Morning of My Life, The, 53 Morris, Bob, 233 Morris Van, UK, 115 Morwell, 29 Mosquitoes, 166, 184 Motton, Robert, 288, 290 Mount Baw Baw, 81 Mount Donna Buang, 49 Mount Eccles, 183 Mount Gambier, 79, 202 Mount Juliet, 170 Mount Kosciusko, 205ff Mount Macedon, 242, 245 Mount Waverley RS, 290 Mountain Ash trees, 48 Mouser, George, 233 “Mud”boree, 27, 61, 88, 91 Mulhouse, Germ., 121 “Munga” box, 165 Murchison Highway, Tas., 106 Murfett, “Murf,” Mrs., 64, 169 318 Picot, Ken, 152 Pigeon Patrol, 33, 50, 199, 248 Pijollet, Phillip, 251 Pike, Stewart, 188ff Pilgrims’ Way, UK, 113 Pink Panther, The, 108 Pioneer Badge, 77 Pioneer badge course, 43, 63, 77 Pioneering, 13, 18, 25, 147, 167, 190, 237 Pirates and theme, 151, 154ff, 265 Plimsolls, 119 Princess Theatre, 263 Poatina, 108 Polglaze, Colonel, 25 Policy, Organisation and Rules, (PO&R), 28ff, 44, 67, 75 Politically correct (PC), 304 Ponsford, Alan, 18, 45 ‘Poo-bahs,’ 179 Poole, UK, 221ff, 250 Poole, Mrs., 102 Poole, Barry, 77, 82, 96 Poole, Norm, 86 Pope, Graham, 64 Port Adelaide, 79 Port Arthur, 39, 107 Port Campbell, 79, 183 Port Fairy, 182, 186 Port Wakefield, 79 Portrait, `133 Potter, Michael, 23 Potter, Revd., W. R., 54 Powelltown, 49 Power point presentations, 170 Prayer for Brotherhood, A, 55, 262 Preliminary courses, 14, 95, 136, 139, 148, 171, 189, 271, 286 Presbyterian Church, 206 Pressure lanterns, 166 Preston, Ron, 22, 42 Pretty, Sandra, 288 Prince of Wales Hotel, 50 Princes Hill High School, 40ff, 59, 66, 82 Princess of Tasmania, 106 Princess Margaret, HRH, 113 Proctor, Michael, 291 Program, course, 238 Program innovative, 253 Progressive Pioneering, `12 Project, woodbadge, 233 Protestant, 284 Protestant Chapel, Gilwell, UK, 119 Public Address systems, (PA), 265 Public Service, 87 Puckapunyal Army Camp, 18, 196, 304 Puffing Billy Preservation Society, 57, 264, 269 Punctuality, 154, 161, 179 Quarter Master (QM), 18, 64, 157 Quebec, 284 Queen’s Guides, 266 Omeo, 58,, 238 On the Crest of a Wave, 144 One Hundredth Year Anniversary Jamboree, 298 One Hundredth (100) Scout Wood Badge, 150 One Naught One (101) Committee, 296 Open groups, 28 Orbost, 76, 213 Organ Pipes National Park, 16 Ormond College, 16 Orphanage camp, 32 Otway Foresters Group, 203 Overhead projectors, 170, 209, 225, 262 Owls Patrol, 199 Pack Holiday Centre, 81 Pakes, Ian, 38 Palais Theatre, St. Kilda, 55, 101, 236, 245, 263, 273, 286ff Pallin, Paddy, 52 Palmer, Robert, 22, 42, 45, 55, 59 Panama Canal, 134 Paper drives, 23 Papua New-Guinea, 95 Parfett, Stanley, 247 Parish, Bill, 66, 82 Park, Alston, 284, 289 Parker, Dr. Charles, 190, 193ff, 204, 207ff Parker, Greg, 158 Parker, Ted and Mrs. Edna, 161ff, 169 Parliament House, 299 Pathfinder Scouts, Germ., 123 Patrol boxes, 51 Patrol camping, 17 Patrol cooking, 18 Patrol Leaders (PL) 21, 35, 68, 154ff, 175 Patrol Leaders training course, 161 Patrols, 199 Patterson, Lindsay, 189ff Pax Hill, 296 Pearce, Derry, 54 Pearce, Garry, 54, 60 Peckers Patrol, 199 Peebles, Max, 55 Penang, 61 Penfold, Alan, 68 Pennants, Hoadley Hide &c, A Grade &c, 11, 69, 71, 81, 93, 99, 142, 159, 188, 255, 266, 273, 275 Perry, Kevin, 214 Personal Leader Advisors/Trainers &cPLAs), 256, 269, 300 Peter Principle, The, 232 Petter, Jim, 233 “Phelps, Mrs.,” 224, 234, 253, 259 Philippines, 95 Philippines Gang Show trip, 287 Phillips, W. G., 169 Pianist, 172 Pianta, Paul, 82ff, 101, 143, 171, 204 Picken, Les, 10, 15, 303ff “Picking up sticks,” 152 319 Rover Den, 47, 54 Rover dinner, 63 Rover Leader, 44, 51, 64, 232 Rover Mate, 43 Rover Mate course, 43 Rover Moot, 55, 57ff Rover Preliminary course, 43 Rover Squire, 41 Rover Scouts, 42 Rovering to Success, 41 Rovers, Rovering &c., 18, 24, 39ff, 44, 157, 175, 199, 203, 263, 265, 273, 279 Rowlands, Barry, 145, 147 Royal Australian Electrical and Mechanical Engineers, (RAEME), 197 Royal Military College, Duntroon, 76 “Royal Purples,” 100 Rubicon, Crossing the, 53, 305 Ruppin, David, 147, 149 Running a Scout Group, 60 Running a Senior Scout Troop, 67 Russell, (Tom) E. H. C., Scout Hall/Troop Room, 25, 223ff, 234, 248, 261, 267, 272 Ruth, 273 Sale, 137 Salvation Army, 248 St. Albans, UK, 129 St. Bernard’s Roman Catholic Parish Hall, 172 St. Bede’s Anglican Church, Elwood, 20ff St. George’s Day Service, 23 St. Dunstan’s Church of England, Cheam, UK, 111, 134 St. John’s Ambulance organisation, 150 St. John’s Anglican Church, Malvern, 10, 267 St. Kilda Scout District, 21, 63 St. Patrick’s College, Ballarat, 62 St. Paul’s Anglican Cathedral, 23 St. Paul’s Anglican Church, Warragul, 66 St. Stephens’ Anglican Church, Belmont, 157, 205, 217 Sailor Maker’s Whipping, 73 Salt, Trevor, 184ff, 190, 196 Saunders, Rodney, 68, 75 Scales, John, 23 Scandinavia, 126 Scarfe, Ron, 233 Scarves, 67, 75, 109, Aust., 126, 147, 155, 200, World, 254, Branch, 265, ETTST 274; 295 Schaunslandbahn, Germ., 123 Schwarzwald, Germ.,121 Scotch College &c, Senior Scouts, 99, 188, 204, 215 Scotland, 190, 300 Scout Awards Scheme, 202, 216 Scout Hat (s), 22, 32, 132, 201, 297 Scout Heritage, 270, 272, 274, 277, 292, 298 Scout Hymn, 8 Scout Law and Promise, 9, 10, 21, 132 Scout Task Force, 261 Scout Shop, 10, 16, 28, 38, 161, 210, 243 Scout Shop, Geelong, 203, 244 Scout Transporter, 145 Queen’s Scouts, 38, 43, 69, 76ff, 81, 84, 108, 119, 162, 181, 189ff, 200, 210, 215, 255, 267, 270, 273, 281, 290, 295, 302 Queensland, 35ff, 180 Queenstown, Tas., 39, 106 Quirk, Howard, 22 RAAF Activity camp, 178ff RAAF Butterworth, 61 RAAF East Sale, 208 RAAF Museum, 181 RAAF Point Cook, 178ff RAAMC Training Depot, 53 RAF – Royal Air Force, 286 Raft race, 157, 188 Rail strike, 167 Rail trails, 71 Ranger Guides, 140 Rapkins, Jim, 152 Ravenhall, Dr. Clare, 298 Ravenhall, John (and Sally,) 234, 239, 242ff, 247, 252ff, 254, 258, 261, 267ff, 269, 280, 284, 298 Ray, Denise, 104 “Razor blades,” 226 Reader, Ralph, 31, 133, 173, 220, 263, 273, 286ff Recognition of Prior Learning (RPL), 256, 273 Reconnaissance, 96, 191, 193, 205, 211 Reeves, Shirley, 240 Region Commissioner, 300 Regions, 176 Rehearsals, 53, 172 Reigate Hill, UK, 113 Religious Policy, 201 Renmark, 79 Rich, Peter, 27, 33ff, 36 Richardson, Alan, UK, 111, 123 Richmond, Tas., 39, 107 Ringwood, 58, 140, 300 Risson, Major-General Sir Robert, 55 River Yarra, 23, 286 Robbins, Irene, BEM, 53, 59 Roberts, Gary, 162, 164ff, 181ff, 186, 189 Roberts, Herb, 183 Roberts, Peter, 166, 182 Robertson, Neil, UK, 117 Robin Hood Park, 73, 82 Robinson, Barbara, 143 Robinson, Derek, UK, 117 Robinson, Ken, 41, 45, 49, 53, 55, 59, 77 Rock and roll, 180 Rocky Cape, 106 Rodda, Jessica, 273 Roddick, Revd. Reg, 20, 23 Rogers, Peter, 145, 158, 182 Rokeby, 87 Roman Catholic Church &c, 174, 253, 284 Rossiter, J., 169 Rotary International, 175 Rover Chalet, Warburton, 48, 55 Rover Crew, 238 320 Shoalhaven Gorge, 45ff Showtime, 147 Silver Acorn, 278 Silver Kangaroo, 283 Silver Koala, 278 Silver woodbadge beads, 292 Simpendorfer, Les, 96 Simpson, Harry, 233 Singapore, 262 Singing, 186, 235, 258, 295 Sixth (6th) Rover Woodbadge course, 47 Sixth (6th) St. Kilda, 21, 29, 34, 38ff, 43, 46, 49, 51, 53, 57, 60, 63, 77, 297, 299 Sixth (6th) St. Kilda Rover Crew, 72, 275 Sky hooks, 51 Slutzkin, Colin, 240 Smartness and Good Order session, 127 Smith, “Beaver,” 159 Smith, Lyne, 161 Smith, Terry, 233 Smoking, 73, 74, 106, 189 Snape, Ian, 68, 70, 75, 255 Snoopers, 11 Snow weekend Snowgum, 28, 161 Snowy Mountains and Scheme, 45ff Snowy River, 207 Socials, 36, 87 Soccer Cup, World Final, 121 Sock tops, 39 Solomon’s Store, 170 Somerama, 148 Somers Gate, 292 Somers, Lord, 283 Somers Walk, 83, 220 Songs/singing, 62 Sorrell, Tas., 39 Soulsby, Glen, 214 Sound of Music,122 Soutar, Jon, 75, 78, 96 South African Constabulary, 74, 293 South Australia, 235, 2327 South Korea, 95 South Pole, 199 South Yarra, 274 Southampton, 110 Southern Cross constellation, 199 Southern Ocean, 216 Spencer, Geoff, 82, 96, 108, 143 Spence, Cyril, 184 Spencer Street railway station, (now Southern Cross), 81, 167, 225, 244, 259, 302 Spiritual Development, 262 Sponsored groups, 10, 20 Spring, Don, 33, 62, 248 Spring Lodge, 47, 234, 248, 253, 261, 268, 270 Sputnik, 44 Square tent, 279 SS Oriana, 110 Scout Troops, 175, 246 Scout and Guide Graduate Association (SAGGA), 112, 127, 221, 224, 235 Scouter, UK, 112 Scout Laws, 201 Scout library, 212 Scoutmaster (SM) or Scout Leader (SL), 10, 14, 20, 22, 63, 71, 304 Scouting for Boys, 9, 61, 174, 199, 303 Scouts Australia, 200 Scouts Australia Institute of Training (SAIT), 232, 269, 271 Scouts Owns and yarns, 59, 92, 111, 118, 129, 134ff, 215, 227, 234, 242ff, 258ff, 261, 264, 271, 276, 301 Scripture Union, 264, 283 Sea Lake, 220 Sea Scouts, 21, 216 Second Class badge, 23 Second (2nd) Australian Scout Venture, 88, 178ff, 300 Second (2nd) Belmont, 137, 146, 155 Second (2nd) Belmont Campsite, 147 Second (2nd) Hampton, 88 Second (2nd) Warragul, 66, 78, 82, 87, 100ff, 162, 255, 288 Sedgeley, John, 57 Selby, 57 Senior Scout Conference, UK, 112 Senior Scout Preliminary course, 189 Senior Scouts &c, 24, 33, 36, 43, 51, 66ff, 72, 134, 136ff, 142, 145, 153ff, 157, 164, 174ff, 181, 189, 199, 202, (see ‘Venturers’ from here on), 255, 265, 272 Senior Scouts, UK, 111 Senior Teacher, 188 Seven Creeks, 59, 63, 82, 101, 149 Seventeenth (17th) Geelong, 204 Seventeenth (17th) GL/Cmmr WB course, 227 Seventh (7th) Australian Jamboree, 88ff Seventh (7th) Australian Jamboree Song, 105 Seventh (7th) World Rover Moot, 55, 57ff Seventy-Five Years of Scouting, 144, 272 Seventy-fifth anniversary of training, 269 Seymour, 191 Shannon Vale, 58 Sharp, Harold, 231 Sharp, Vic, 235, 244, 247 Shaw, Alex, 129 Shaw, Dave, 57 She Oak River, 171 Sheath knives, 10, 305 Sheedy, Dian, 294, 296 Shepherd, Robert, 184, 187 Sheppard, Michael, 100, 107 Shepparton, 230, 239 Shere, UK, 111 Sherrand, David, 55 Shields, Lachlan, 302 Ship’s mast, 152 Shire of South Barwon, 198 321 Taggerty, 41 Tallarook, 196 Talmalmo, 206 Tam O’Shanters, 147 Tanjil Bren, 70 Tanke, George, 47 Tanzania, 129 Tape recorders, 170, 233, 248 Tarago Scout District, 66, 153 Taree, 255 Tarwin District, 36 Tasmania, 39,41, 43, 105ff Tasmanian Tourist Bureau, 39 Taylor, Andrew, 286 Taylor, Bob, 296, 300, 302 Taylor, Horace, GC, (UK), 117 Taylor, Graeme (and Aileen), 170, 172, 178, 190, 203, 211, 224, 244, 273 Taylor, Ian, 22, 42 Taylor, John, 111 Taylor, Rod, 111 Tebbutt, Merv, 233, 244ff Technical and Further Education (TAFE), 273, 275 Tenderfoot badge &c, 10, 19, 21, 28 Tent poles, 51 Tents, hike, 165, 183, 263 Tents, square or auto, 179 Tentage, 72 Tenth (10th) Malvern, 50, 238, 280, 295 Tenth (10th) Medium Regiment, RAA, 136, 195 Terangaville, 191, 194ff Territorial Army, 119 Test cricket, 248 Thailand Gang Show trip, 287 Thanksgiving Day, 228 That Song in my Heart, 168 Therfield School., UK, 134 Thetford, Paul, 145, 148, 150, 155, 162, 172 Third (3rd) Highton, 193 Third (3rd) Portland, 184 Third (3rd) St. Kilda, 21, 49 Thirteenth (13th) GL/Cmmr WB course, 224 Thom, Carol, 247 Thomas, Paul, 225, 243, 280 Thomson, Aline, 235 Thomson, Allan, 95, 139, 150, 169, 247 Thomson, Graeme, 22, 42 Thomson, Ian, 66, 68, 71, 75 Thomson, Peter, 46 Thomson River, Dam, 214 Thompson, Hon., Lindsay, 222 Thurman, John, 12, 61, 117, 126ff “Tim,” 219 Timber tramways, 49 Timbercorp, 297 Titcumb, Maureen, 234 Todeschini, George, 217, 224, 230ff, 233, 247 Tomahawk Creek, 43 Tommy’s Hut, 59 SS Oronsay, 134 SS Taroona, 39 S.S.L’s Guide, The Australian, 52 Stage 1 course, 209 Stage 3 course, 230 Stage 4 course, (was Woodbadge Part 2), 217 Starved Rock, USA, 222 State Electricity Commission of Victoria (SEC), 103, 295 “Statics,” 208 Statue of “The Boy Scout,” USA, 222 Staves, 17 ff Spears, Brendan, 267 Stephens, Sir Ninian, 262 Stephenson, Harry, 42 Stermole, Ernie, 240 Stevens, Revd., Fr., Geoff, 142 Stevens, Ivan, 47 Stevenson, Ray, 240 Stewart, Mrs. Betty, 55, 289ff Stidston, David, 141 Stidston, “Mac,” 274, 294 Stockade, Germ., 122 Stone, Revd. Alex, 17 Stone, Athol, 57 Stoneman, Eric, 233 Story of Gilwell in Victoria, The, 242, 276 Stoves, cooking, UK, 113, 132 Stradbroke Cup, 11, 17, 21, 36, 49, 191, 203, 209, 275 Stratford, 76 Strathbogie ranges, 59, 63 Strathmore, 242ff, 258 Strzelecki Ranges, 83 Strathbogie Ranges, 149, 160 Stringer, Lawrence, 112 Striped paint, 18 Stunts, (Challenges) 36, 65, 68, 70, 97, 145 Sturt Patrol, 68 Sub-camps, 178 Suez Canal, 134 Summers, Joan, OAM, PSM, 268 Sunburn, 122 Sunset Valley, 97 Suspension bridge, 244 Sutherland, Jim, Group Captain, 178 Sutton Street, 66 Swaffield, Narelle, 266 Swan, Clark, 213, 217 Swan Hill, 161 Swanston Street, 299 Sweden, 174 Sweeney, H., Shield, 24 Swift’s Creek, 224, 238 Swinton, Bob, 70, 93, 95ff, 142ff, 169, 188ff, 209, 274 Switzer, Geoff, 95, 238 Switzerland, 123, 251 Sydney, 46, 51ff, 136, 262 Sydney Symphony Orchestra, 156 Symon, C. C., 200 T-shirts, maroon, 164, 183 322 Uniforms, 22, 23, 28, 36, 38, 48, 74, 154ff, 171, 176, 199ff, 220, 235, 246, 271, 273ff, 278ff, 281, 292, 298, 299, 303ff Union House, 64, 284 United Kingdom, 174, 220, 224, 262, 266, 274 Uniting Church, 174, 295 University of Melbourne, The, 9, 32, 64, 284 “Unlocking the Land,” 96, 275 Upper Murray River, 205ff Valena, Eddy, 100 Valentines Mansions, 12 Valiant station wagons, 140, 149, 193, 206 Vatican II Vaughan, John, 22 Venturer Badge, 77 Venturer Course, 49, 268 Venturer Scouts, inc., UK, 74 132 Venturer Scouts, Aust., (Venturing), 175ff, 190, 198, 202, 305 Venturer Support Team, 266, 278 Venturer Overnight Camps (VOCs), 70, 96, 265ff, 275 Venturers, 216, 246, 255, 263, 270, 291, 298, 300 Ventures, 156 Verschure, J., Netherlands, 126 VFL Park, 242 Vic Roads, 235 Vicar, 66 Victor Harbour, 79 Victoria, 61, 63, 269, 289, 303 Victoria Palace, 182 Victoria RS, UK, 121 Victorian Certificate of Education (VCE), 266 Victorian Railways, (V Line), 14, 30, 214, 225 Victorian Scout, 16, 18, 239 Victory Theatre, St. Kilda, 273 Vigil, 41 “Vinelander” train, 225 Voigtlander camera, 83 Viva van, 206 Vivian, Joe, UK, 117 Wade, Lynton, 232 Wagga Wagga, 235 Wake, Phillip, 180 Waldron, Doug, 279ff Walker, Colin, 68, 70, 75, 78, 96, 255 Walker, Mrs. 66 Wall blackboard, 204 Wallace, Andrew, 271 Walsh, Maj-Gen Michael, UK, 262 Walter, Keith, 52 Waltham Abbey, UK, 129 Waltzing Matilda, 130 Wangaratta, 63 “Warratabargo,” 153 Warburton, 48, 55, 71, 140, 212 Warby Springs, 46 Warracknabeal, 220 Warrnambool, 148, 183 Warrandyte, 23 Tomorrow’s Guide, 135, 200 Tong, Revd., Norm, 266 Tooboorac, 197 Tooth, Revd. George, 49, 57 Torquay, 242 Total Fire Bans (TFBs), 261 Tourniquet lashings, 188 Tower (Dandenong Jamboree), 88ff, 91ff, 109, 152 Tower Hill, 186 Towong Hall, 205 Tracey, Richard, 284 Trafalgar, 29 Trailer, 164,, 19 Train travel 51 Training courses, general, 189 Training Ground, Gilwell, UK, 117 Training handbooks, UK, 128, 199, 297 Training handbooks, Aust., 223, 297 Training history, 269 Training the Team course, 225, 234, 239 Training the Team, UK, 126ff, 135 Training Team, 129, 252 Training Team conferences, 137 Training Team monthly meetings, 156, 230 Training Team 75th Anniversary Reunion, 271 Training Team weekends and days, 188, 204, 208, 215, 230, 237, 239, 242ff, 247, 249, 254, 258, 261ff, 264, 266ff, 268ff, 273ff, 276, 283, 294, 299ff Transactional Analysis, 244 Traverse, 48 Trease, Graham, 27 Trease, Harold, 27 Trease, Len, 27 Trease, Neil, 27 Trease, Ron, 27 Trees of Victoria, 16 Trembath, Mr., 29ff Tremewan, Margaret, 240, 302 Trentham, 171, 278ff Triangulation, 43 “Tribal elder,” 292 Trinidad, 134 Troop Leader, (TL), 35, 53, 95, 111, 184, 211ff, 272 Tulk, Lewis, 247, 271 Tullah, 106 Tullawalla camp site, 193, 209 Tumult, 206 Turner, Fred, 240 Turnham, Stewart, 267 Turnham, Trevor, 265 Twelve Apostles, 183 Twenty-One Years of Scouting – The official history of the Boy Scout movement from its inception, 199 Twenty-third (23rd) GL/Cmr woodbadge course, 232 Two (2nd) Field Regiment, RAA, 284 Tyler, Tony, 229 323 Wolf Cubs, (also Cubs), 132, 252 Wombat State Forest, 265, 279 Wood Badge courses, &c, 271, 305 Parts 1 and 3, 161, 233 Commissioner, 202 Cub, 189 GL/Commissioners, 159, 190, 209, 218, 223, 224, 229ff, 232, 237, 247, 252, 256, 259 Project, 233 Scout, 25, 64, 95, 150, 157, 248 Senior Scout/Venturer, 113, 116, 135 Rover Mate, 43 Rover, 47 Wood, Judy, 240 Wood, Wally, UK, 134 Wood Wood, 79 Woodend, 228, 266, 269, 279, 306 Woodhouse, Chris, 100 Woodsmoke, 305 Working Bees, 83 Works and Services Camp, 154 World Bureau & scarf, Geneva, 116, 130, 251, 254, 264 World Emblem, 176, 201ff World Jamboree, Sydney, 262 World Scout Conference, Melbourne, 262 World War I, 199 World War II, 45, 199, 294 Worpel, Gerd, 194 Worship, UK, 123 Wright, Bill, 21 Wright, Lynda, 269 Wycheproof, 220 Wycliffe Bible College, 262 Wynyard, 106 Yachting, 186, 194, 214 Yallourn, 66 Yankee Gully, 139, 145 Yarra Junction, 70ff, 141 Yarra River, 204 Yarrongobilly Caves, 207 Yea, 191, 193ff Yorkshire Dales, 114 You Yangs, 169 You’re the Fellow for Me, 198 Warragul (Also see ETSST) 60, 64, 66, 70, 75, 79, 87, 110, 145, 153, 164, 182, 208, 215, 254ff, 264, 272ff, 275ff, 286, 302 Warragul Artillery Training Depot, 36 Warragul Combined Schools Cadet Unit, 66 Warragul District Ambulance Service, 81 Warragul Guide and Brownie groups, 102ff Warragul High School, 65ff Warragul Methodist Church Hall, 102 Warragul Presbyterian Church Hall, 102 Warragul Roman Catholic Church Hall, 102 Warrants, 15, 157, 211, 245, 252, 306ff Warrnambool, 79 Water certificates, 212 Water activities, 253, 273 Water truck, 159 Waters, Bill, 41ff, 44, 47, 57ff Waters, W. F. Bogong Ski Lodge/Chalet, 42, 58 Watts, Wally, 44, 47 Wehbey, Joe, Syria, 126 Weller, Harry, 52 Wells, Eddie, 212 Wells, William Dr., 261, 265 Wensleydale coal mine, 160 Wescott, Elton, and family, 212, 217, 220 Wesley College, 40ff, 45ff, 48, 60ff, 212, 219, 239 West Side Story, 85 Western Australia, 163 Westaway, Neil, 52, 97, 247, 252ff Westminster Abbey, 113, 135 Whipping (ropes), 73 Whiteley, Marcia, 244 Whitfield, 63 White Wolves patrol, UK, 126 Whitten, J. H., 169 Whittlesea, 268 Who Wants to Say ‘Goodnight’?, 151 Wide games, 12, 112 Williams, Chris, 186ff, 194ff, 206 Williams, David, 111 Williams , Brian and Jane, 185, 196, 206ff Williams, Harold, 10, 37 Williams, Kenneth, 247 Willis, Jon, 286, 288, 290 Wilkinson, Ada, 235 Wilson, Barry, 22, 42, 63 Wilson, “Blue,” 81 Wilson, Dudley, 33, 42ff, 47, 50, 54, 62, 141, 145, 245, 248 Wilson, John, 244 Wilson, Mrs. George, 84 Wilson, George, 84 Wilson, Kent, 66, 82, 89 Wilson’s Promontory, 214 Wimbledon, 112 Windsor Castle, 119 Windsor Hotel, 263 Wittental, Germ., 121 Woggles, 200 324 Songs Scout Hymn, 8 It’s a Wonderful Life, 31 Prayer for Brotherhood, 56 Keep Looking for a Bluebird, 80 It’s a Great Game, 90 7th Australian Jamboree Song, 105 On the Crest of a Wave, 144 Who Wants to Say ‘Goodnight’?, 151 That Song in My Heart, 168 Brothers of the Sky, 192 You’re the Fellow for Me, 198 Thanksgiving Day, 228 Accolade, 257 Morning of My Life, 260 Australia, 291 By the Blazing Council Firelight, 306 The Scouting Day, 307 Thursday, 18th July, 2013 325